Skip to main content

Full text of "The Catcher in The Rye"

See other formats


THE  CATCHER  IN  THE  RYE 
by  J.D.  Salinger 


TO 

MY 

MOTHER 


1 


If  you  really  want  to  hear  about  it,  the  first  thing  you’ll  probably  want  to  know  is 
where  I  was  born,  an  what  my  lousy  childhood  was  like,  and  how  my  parents  were 
occupied  and  all  before  they  had  me,  and  all  that  David  Copperfield  kind  of  crap,  but  I 
don't  feel  like  going  into  it,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth.  In  the  first  place,  that  stuff 
bores  me,  and  in  the  second  place,  my  parents  would  have  about  two  hemorrhages  apiece 
if  I  told  anything  pretty  personal  about  them.  They're  quite  touchy  about  anything  like 
that,  especially  my  father.  They’re  nice  and  all— I'm  not  saying  that— but  they're  also 
touchy  as  hell.  Besides,  I'm  not  going  to  tell  you  my  whole  goddam  autobiography  or 
anything.  I'll  just  tell  you  about  this  madman  stuff  that  happened  to  me  around  last 
Christmas  just  before  I  got  pretty  run-down  and  had  to  come  out  here  and  take  it  easy.  I 
mean  that's  all  I  told  D.B.  about,  and  he's  my  brother  and  all.  He's  in  Hollywood.  That 
isn’t  too  far  from  this  crumby  place,  and  he  comes  over  and  visits  me  practically  every 
week  end.  He's  going  to  drive  me  home  when  I  go  home  next  month  maybe.  He  just  got  a 
Jaguar.  One  of  those  little  English  jobs  that  can  do  around  two  hundred  miles  an  hour.  It 
cost  him  damn  near  four  thousand  bucks.  He's  got  a  lot  of  dough,  now.  He  didn’t  use  to. 
He  used  to  be  just  a  regular  writer,  when  he  was  home.  He  wrote  this  terrific  book  of 
short  stories,  The  Secret  Goldfish,  in  case  you  never  heard  of  him.  The  best  one  in  it  was 
"The  Secret  Goldfish."  It  was  about  this  little  kid  that  wouldn’t  let  anybody  look  at  his 
goldfish  because  he’d  bought  it  with  his  own  money.  It  killed  me.  Now  he's  out  in 
Hollywood,  D.B.,  being  a  prostitute.  If  there's  one  thing  I  hate,  it's  the  movies.  Don't  even 
mention  them  to  me. 

Where  I  want  to  start  telling  is  the  day  I  left  Pencey  Prep.  Pencey  Prep  is  this 
school  that's  in  Agerstown,  Pennsylvania.  You  probably  heard  of  it.  You've  probably  seen 
the  ads,  anyway.  They  advertise  in  about  a  thousand  magazines,  always  showing  some 
hotshot  guy  on  a  horse  jumping  over  a  fence.  Like  as  if  all  you  ever  did  at  Pencey  was 
play  polo  all  the  time.  I  never  even  once  saw  a  horse  anywhere  near  the  place.  And 
underneath  the  guy  on  the  horse's  picture,  it  always  says:  "Since  1888  we  have  been 
molding  boys  into  splendid,  clear- thinking  young  men."  Strictly  for  the  birds.  They  don't 
do  any  damn  more  molding  at  Pencey  than  they  do  at  any  other  school.  And  I  didn’t  know 
anybody  there  that  was  splendid  and  clear-thinking  and  all.  Maybe  two  guys.  If  that 
many.  And  they  probably  came  to  Pencey  that  way. 

Anyway,  it  was  the  Saturday  of  the  football  game  with  Saxon  Hall.  The  game 
with  Saxon  Hall  was  supposed  to  be  a  very  big  deal  around  Pencey.  It  was  the  last  game 


of  the  year,  and  you  were  supposed  to  commit  suicide  or  something  if  old  Pencey  didn’t 
win.  I  remember  around  three  o’clock  that  afternoon  I  was  standing  way  the  hell  up  on 
top  of  Thomsen  Hill,  right  next  to  this  crazy  cannon  that  was  in  the  Revolutionary  War 
and  all.  You  could  see  the  whole  field  from  there,  and  you  could  see  the  two  teams 
bashing  each  other  all  over  the  place.  You  couldn’t  see  the  grandstand  too  hot,  but  you 
could  hear  them  all  yelling,  deep  and  terrific  on  the  Pencey  side,  because  practically  the 
whole  school  except  me  was  there,  and  scrawny  and  faggy  on  the  Saxon  Hall  side, 
because  the  visiting  team  hardly  ever  brought  many  people  with  them. 

There  were  never  many  girls  at  all  at  the  football  games.  Only  seniors  were 
allowed  to  bring  girls  with  them.  It  was  a  terrible  school,  no  matter  how  you  looked  at  it. 

I  like  to  be  somewhere  at  least  where  you  can  see  a  few  girls  around  once  in  a  while,  even 
if  they're  only  scratching  their  arms  or  blowing  their  noses  or  even  just  giggling  or 
something.  Old  Selma  Thurmer— she  was  the  headmaster's  daughter— showed  up  at  the 
games  quite  often,  but  she  wasn’t  exactly  the  type  that  drove  you  mad  with  desire.  She 
was  a  pretty  nice  girl,  though.  I  sat  next  to  her  once  in  the  bus  from  Agerstown  and  we 
sort  of  struck  up  a  conversation.  I  liked  her.  She  had  a  big  nose  and  her  nails  were  all 
bitten  down  and  bleedy-looking  and  she  had  on  those  damn  falsies  that  point  all  over  the 
place,  but  you  felt  sort  of  sorry  for  her.  What  I  liked  about  her,  she  didn’t  give  you  a  lot  of 
horse  manure  about  what  a  great  guy  her  father  was.  She  probably  knew  what  a  phony 
slob  he  was. 

The  reason  I  was  standing  way  up  on  Thomsen  Hill,  instead  of  down  at  the  game, 
was  because  I’d  just  got  back  from  New  York  with  the  fencing  team.  I  was  the  goddam 
manager  of  the  fencing  team.  Very  big  deal.  We’d  gone  in  to  New  York  that  morning  for 
this  fencing  meet  with  McBurney  School.  Only,  we  didn’t  have  the  meet.  I  left  all  the 
foils  and  equipment  and  stuff  on  the  goddam  subway.  It  wasn't  all  my  fault.  I  had  to  keep 
getting  up  to  look  at  this  map,  so  we’d  know  where  to  get  off.  So  we  got  back  to  Pencey 
around  two-thirty  instead  of  around  dinnertime.  The  whole  team  ostracized  me  the  whole 
way  back  on  the  train.  It  was  pretty  funny,  in  a  way. 

The  other  reason  I  wasn't  down  at  the  game  was  because  I  was  on  my  way  to  say 
good-by  to  old  Spencer,  my  history  teacher.  He  had  the  grippe,  and  I  figured  I  probably 
wouldn't  see  him  again  till  Christmas  vacation  started.  He  wrote  me  this  note  saying  he 
wanted  to  see  me  before  I  went  home.  He  knew  I  wasn’t  coming  back  to  Pencey. 

I  forgot  to  tell  you  about  that.  They  kicked  me  out.  I  wasn’t  supposed  to  come 
back  after  Christmas  vacation  on  account  of  I  was  flunking  four  subjects  and  not  applying 
myself  and  all.  They  gave  me  frequent  warning  to  start  applying  myself— especially 
around  midterms,  when  my  parents  came  up  for  a  conference  with  old  Thurmer— but  I 
didn’t  do  it.  So  I  got  the  ax.  They  give  guys  the  ax  quite  frequently  at  Pencey.  It  has  a 
very  good  academic  rating,  Pencey.  It  really  does. 

Anyway,  it  was  December  and  all,  and  it  was  cold  as  a  witch's  teat,  especially  on 
top  of  that  stupid  hill.  I  only  had  on  my  reversible  and  no  gloves  or  anything.  The  week 
before  that,  somebody'd  stolen  my  camel’s-hair  coat  right  out  of  my  room,  with  my  fur- 
lined  gloves  right  in  the  pocket  and  all.  Pencey  was  full  of  crooks.  Quite  a  few  guys  came 
from  these  very  wealthy  families,  but  it  was  full  of  crooks  anyway.  The  more  expensive  a 
school  is,  the  more  crooks  it  has— I'm  not  kidding.  Anyway,  I  kept  standing  next  to  that 
crazy  cannon,  looking  down  at  the  game  and  freezing  my  ass  off.  Only,  I  wasn't  watching 
the  game  too  much.  What  I  was  really  hanging  around  for,  I  was  trying  to  feel  some  kind 


of  a  good-by.  I  mean  I’ve  left  schools  and  places  I  didn’t  even  know  I  was  leaving  them.  I 
hate  that.  I  don't  care  if  it's  a  sad  good-by  or  a  bad  goodby,  but  when  I  leave  a  place  I  like 
to  know  I’m  leaving  it.  If  you  don't,  you  feel  even  worse. 

I  was  lucky.  All  of  a  sudden  I  thought  of  something  that  helped  make  me  know  I 
was  getting  the  hell  out.  I  suddenly  remembered  this  time,  in  around  October,  that  I  and 
Robert  Tichener  and  Paul  Campbell  were  chucking  a  football  around,  in  front  of  the 
academic  building.  They  were  nice  guys,  especially  Tichener.  It  was  just  before  dinner 
and  it  was  getting  pretty  dark  out,  but  we  kept  chucking  the  ball  around  anyway.  It  kept 
getting  darker  and  darker,  and  we  could  hardly  see  the  ball  any  more,  but  we  didn’t  want 
to  stop  doing  what  we  were  doing.  Finally  we  had  to.  This  teacher  that  taught  biology, 

Mr.  Zambesi,  stuck  his  head  out  of  this  window  in  the  academic  building  and  told  us  to 
go  back  to  the  dorm  and  get  ready  for  dinner.  If  I  get  a  chance  to  remember  that  kind  of 
stuff,  I  can  get  a  good-by  when  I  need  one— at  least,  most  of  the  time  I  can.  As  soon  as  I 
got  it,  I  turned  around  and  started  running  down  the  other  side  of  the  hill,  toward  old 
Spencer's  house.  He  didn't  live  on  the  campus.  He  lived  on  Anthony  Wayne  Avenue. 

I  ran  all  the  way  to  the  main  gate,  and  then  I  waited  a  second  till  I  got  my  breath.  I 
have  no  wind,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth.  I’m  quite  a  heavy  smoker,  for  one  thing— that 
is,  I  used  to  be.  They  made  me  cut  it  out.  Another  thing,  I  grew  six  and  a  half  inches  last 
year.  That’s  also  how  I  practically  got  t.b.  and  came  out  here  for  all  these  goddam 
checkups  and  stuff.  I'm  pretty  healthy,  though. 

Anyway,  as  soon  as  I  got  my  breath  back  I  ran  across  Route  204.  It  was  icy  as  hell 
and  I  damn  near  fell  down.  I  don't  even  know  what  I  was  running  for— I  guess  I  just  felt 
like  it.  After  I  got  across  the  road,  I  felt  like  I  was  sort  of  disappearing.  It  was  that  kind  of 
a  crazy  afternoon,  terrifically  cold,  and  no  sun  out  or  anything,  and  you  felt  like  you  were 
disappearing  every  time  you  crossed  a  road. 

Boy,  I  rang  that  doorbell  fast  when  I  got  to  old  Spencer's  house.  I  was  really 
frozen.  My  ears  were  hurting  and  I  could  hardly  move  my  fingers  at  all.  "C’mon,  c’mon," 

I  said  right  out  loud,  almost,  "somebody  open  the  door."  Finally  old  Mrs.  Spencer 
opened,  it.  They  didn’t  have  a  maid  or  anything,  and  they  always  opened  the  door 
themselves.  They  didn’t  have  too  much  dough. 

"Holden!"  Mrs.  Spencer  said.  "How  lovely  to  see  you!  Come  in,  dear!  Are  you 
frozen  to  death?"  I  think  she  was  glad  to  see  me.  She  liked  me.  At  least,  I  think  she  did. 

Boy,  did  I  get  in  that  house  fast.  "How  are  you,  Mrs.  Spencer?"  I  said.  "How's  Mr. 
Spencer?" 

"Let  me  take  your  coat,  dear,"  she  said.  She  didn’t  hear  me  ask  her  how  Mr. 
Spencer  was.  She  was  sort  of  deaf. 

She  hung  up  my  coat  in  the  hall  closet,  and  I  sort  of  brushed  my  hair  back  with 
my  hand.  I  wear  a  crew  cut  quite  frequently  and  I  never  have  to  comb  it  much.  "How've 
you  been,  Mrs.  Spencer?"  I  said  again,  only  louder,  so  she’d  hear  me. 

"I've  been  just  fine,  Holden."  She  closed  the  closet  door.  "How  have  you  been?" 
The  way  she  asked  me,  I  knew  right  away  old  Spencer’d  told  her  I’d  been  kicked  out. 

"Fine,"  I  said.  "How's  Mr.  Spencer?  He  over  his  grippe  yet?" 

"Over  it!  Holden,  he's  behaving  like  a  perfect— I  don’t  know  what.  .  .  He’s  in  his 
room,  dear.  Go  right  in." 


2 


They  each  had  their  own  room  and  all.  They  were  both  around  seventy  years  old, 
or  even  more  than  that.  They  got  a  bang  out  of  things,  though— in  a  haif-assed  way,  of 
course.  I  know  that  sounds  mean  to  say,  but  I  don’t  mean  it  mean.  I  just  mean  that  I  used 
to  think  about  old  Spencer  quite  a  lot,  and  if  you  thought  about  him  too  much,  you 
wondered  what  the  heck  he  was  still  living  for.  I  mean  he  was  all  stooped  over,  and  he 
had  very  terrible  posture,  and  in  class,  whenever  he  dropped  a  piece  of  chalk  at  the 
blackboard,  some  guy  in  the  first  row  always  had  to  get  up  and  pick  it  up  and  hand  it  to 
him.  That's  awful,  in  my  opinion.  But  if  you  thought  about  him  just  enough  and  not  too 
much,  you  could  figure  it  out  that  he  wasn’t  doing  too  bad  for  himself.  For  instance,  one 
Sunday  when  some  other  guys  and  I  were  over  there  for  hot  chocolate,  he  showed  us  this 
old  beat-up  Navajo  blanket  that  he  and  Mrs.  Spencer’d  bought  off  some  Indian  in 
Yellowstone  Park.  You  could  tell  old  Spencer’d  got  a  big  bang  out  of  buying  it.  That's 
what  I  mean.  You  take  somebody  old  as  hell,  like  old  Spencer,  and  they  can  get  a  big 
bang  out  of  buying  a  blanket. 

His  door  was  open,  but  I  sort  of  knocked  on  it  anyway,  just  to  be  polite  and  all.  I 
could  see  where  he  was  sitting.  He  was  sitting  in  a  big  leather  chair,  all  wrapped  up  in 
that  blanket  I  just  told  you  about.  He  looked  over  at  me  when  I  knocked.  "Who's  that?"  he 
yelled.  "Caulfield?  Come  in,  boy."  He  was  always  yelling,  outside  class.  It  got  on  your 
nerves  sometimes. 

The  minute  I  went  in,  I  was  sort  of  sorry  I’d  come.  He  was  reading  the  Atlantic 
Monthly,  and  there  were  pills  and  medicine  all  over  the  place,  and  everything  smelled 
like  Vicks  Nose  Drops.  It  was  pretty  depressing.  I'm  not  too  crazy  about  sick  people, 
anyway.  What  made  it  even  more  depressing,  old  Spencer  had  on  this  very  sad,  ratty  old 
bathrobe  that  he  was  probably  born  in  or  something.  I  don’t  much  like  to  see  old  guys  in 
their  pajamas  and  bathrobes  anyway.  Their  bumpy  old  chests  are  always  showing.  And 
their  legs.  Old  guys'  legs,  at  beaches  and  places,  always  look  so  white  and  unhairy. 

"Hello,  sir,"  I  said.  "I  got  your  note.  Thanks  a  lot."  He’d  written  me  this  note  asking  me  to 
stop  by  and  say  good-by  before  vacation  started,  on  account  of  I  wasn't  coming  back. 
"You  didn’t  have  to  do  all  that.  I’d  have  come  over  to  say  good-by  anyway." 

"Have  a  seat  there,  boy,"  old  Spencer  said.  He  meant  the  bed. 

I  sat  down  on  it.  "How's  your  grippe,  sir?" 

"M’boy,  if  I  felt  any  better  I’d  have  to  send  for  the  doctor,"  old  Spencer  said.  That 
knocked  him  out.  He  started  chuckling  like  a  madman.  Then  he  finally  straightened 
himself  out  and  said,  "Why  aren’t  you  down  at  the  game?  I  thought  this  was  the  day  of  the 
big  game." 

"It  is.  I  was.  Only,  I  just  got  back  from  New  York  with  the  fencing  team,"  I  said. 
Boy,  his  bed  was  like  a  rock. 

He  started  getting  serious  as  hell.  I  knew  he  would.  "So  you're  leaving  us,  eh?"  he 

said. 

"Yes,  sir.  I  guess  I  am." 

He  started  going  into  this  nodding  routine.  You  never  saw  anybody  nod  as  much 
in  your  life  as  old  Spencer  did.  You  never  knew  if  he  was  nodding  a  lot  because  he  was 
thinking  and  all,  or  just  because  he  was  a  nice  old  guy  that  didn't  know  his  ass  from  his 
elbow. 


"What  did  Dr.  Thurmer  say  to  you,  boy?  I  understand  you  had  quite  a  little  chat." 

"Yes,  we  did.  We  really  did.  I  was  in  his  office  for  around  two  hours,  I  guess." 

"What’ d  he  say  to  you?" 

"Oh.  .  .  well,  about  Life  being  a  game  and  all.  And  how  you  should  play  it 
according  to  the  rules.  He  was  pretty  nice  about  it.  I  mean  he  didn’t  hit  the  ceiling  or 
anything.  He  just  kept  talking  about  Life  being  a  game  and  all.  You  know." 

"Life  is  a  game,  boy.  Life  is  a  game  that  one  plays  according  to  the  rules." 

"Yes,  sir.  I  know  it  is.  I  know  it." 

Game,  my  ass.  Some  game.  If  you  get  on  the  side  where  all  the  hot-shots  are,  then 
it's  a  game,  all  right— I'll  admit  that.  But  if  you  get  on  the  other  side,  where  there  aren’t 
any  hot-shots,  then  what's  a  game  about  it?  Nothing.  No  game.  "Has  Dr.  Thurmer  written 
to  your  parents  yet?"  old  Spencer  asked  me. 

"He  said  he  was  going  to  write  them  Monday." 

"Have  you  yourself  communicated  with  them?" 

"No,  sir,  I  haven’t  communicated  with  them,  because  I'll  probably  see  them 
Wednesday  night  when  I  get  home." 

"And  how  do  you  think  they'll  take  the  news?" 

"Well.  .  .  they'll  be  pretty  irritated  about  it,"  I  said.  "They  really  will.  This  is  about 
the  fourth  school  I've  gone  to."  I  shook  my  head.  I  shake  my  head  quite  a  lot.  "Boy!"  I 
said.  I  also  say  "Boy!"  quite  a  lot.  Partly  because  I  have  a  lousy  vocabulary  and  partly 
because  I  act  quite  young  for  my  age  sometimes.  I  was  sixteen  then,  and  I'm  seventeen 
now,  and  sometimes  I  act  like  I’m  about  thirteen.  It's  really  ironical,  because  I’m  six  foot 
two  and  a  half  and  I  have  gray  hair.  I  really  do.  The  one  side  of  my  head— the  right  side— 
is  full  of  millions  of  gray  hairs.  I've  had  them  ever  since  I  was  a  kid.  And  yet  I  still  act 
sometimes  like  I  was  only  about  twelve.  Everybody  says  that,  especially  my  father.  It's 
partly  true,  too,  but  it  isn't  all  true.  People  always  think  something's  all  true.  I  don't  give  a 
damn,  except  that  I  get  bored  sometimes  when  people  tell  me  to  act  my  age.  Sometimes  I 
act  a  lot  older  than  I  am— I  really  do— but  people  never  notice  it.  People  never  notice 
anything. 

Old  Spencer  started  nodding  again.  He  also  started  picking  his  nose.  He  made  out 
like  he  was  only  pinching  it,  but  he  was  really  getting  the  old  thumb  right  in  there.  I  guess 
he  thought  it  was  all  right  to  do  because  it  was  only  me  that  was  in  the  room.  I  didn’t  care, 
except  that  it's  pretty  disgusting  to  watch  somebody  pick  their  nose. 

Then  he  said,  "I  had  the  privilege  of  meeting  your  mother  and  dad  when  they  had 
their  little  chat  with  Dr.  Thurmer  some  weeks  ago.  They're  grand  people." 

"Yes,  they  are.  They're  very  nice." 

Grand.  There's  a  word  I  really  hate.  It's  a  phony.  I  could  puke  every  time  I  hear  it. 

Then  all  of  a  sudden  old  Spencer  looked  like  he  had  something  very  good, 
something  sharp  as  a  tack,  to  say  to  me.  He  sat  up  more  in  his  chair  and  sort  of  moved 
around.  It  was  a  false  alarm,  though.  All  he  did  was  lift  the  Atlantic  Monthly  off  his  lap 
and  try  to  chuck  it  on  the  bed,  next  to  me.  He  missed.  It  was  only  about  two  inches  away, 
but  he  missed  anyway.  I  got  up  and  picked  it  up  and  put  it  down  on  the  bed.  All  of  a 
sudden  then,  I  wanted  to  get  the  hell  out  of  the  room.  I  could  feel  a  terrific  lecture  coming 
on.  I  didn’t  mind  the  idea  so  much,  but  I  didn’t  feel  like  being  lectured  to  and  smell  Vicks 
Nose  Drops  and  look  at  old  Spencer  in  his  pajamas  and  bathrobe  all  at  the  same  time.  I 
really  didn't. 


It  started,  all  right.  "What's  the  matter  with  you,  boy?"  old  Spencer  said.  He  said  it 
pretty  tough,  too,  for  him.  "How  many  subjects  did  you  carry  this  term?" 

"Five,  sir." 

"Five.  And  how  many  are  you  failing  in?" 

"Four."  I  moved  my  ass  a  little  bit  on  the  bed.  It  was  the  hardest  bed  I  ever  sat  on. 
"I  passed  English  all  right,"  I  said,  "because  I  had  all  that  Beowulf  and  Lord  Randal  My 
Son  stuff  when  I  was  at  the  Whooton  School.  I  mean  I  didn’t  have  to  do  any  work  in 
English  at  all  hardly,  except  write  compositions  once  in  a  while." 

He  wasn't  even  listening.  He  hardly  ever  listened  to  you  when  you  said 
something. 

"I  flunked  you  in  history  because  you  knew  absolutely  nothing." 

"I  know  that,  sir.  Boy,  I  know  it.  You  couldn’t  help  it." 

"Absolutely  nothing,"  he  said  over  again.  That's  something  that  drives  me  crazy. 
When  people  say  something  twice  that  way,  after  you  admit  it  the  first  time.  Then  he  said 
it  three  times.  "But  absolutely  nothing.  I  doubt  very  much  if  you  opened  your  textbook 
even  once  the  whole  term.  Did  you?  Tell  the  truth,  boy." 

"Well,  I  sort  of  glanced  through  it  a  couple  of  times,"  I  told  him.  I  didn’t  want  to 
hurt  his  feelings.  He  was  mad  about  history. 

"You  glanced  through  it,  eh?"  he  said— very  sarcastic.  "Your,  ah,  exam  paper  is 
over  there  on  top  of  my  chiffonier.  On  top  of  the  pile.  Bring  it  here,  please." 

It  was  a  very  dirty  trick,  but  I  went  over  and  brought  it  over  to  him— I  didn’t  have 
any  alternative  or  anything.  Then  I  sat  down  on  his  cement  bed  again.  Boy,  you  can't 
imagine  how  sorry  I  was  getting  that  I’d  stopped  by  to  say  good-by  to  him. 

He  started  handling  my  exam  paper  like  it  was  a  turd  or  something.  "We  studied 
the  Egyptians  from  November  4th  to  December  2nd,"  he  said.  "You  chose  to  write  about 
them  for  the  optional  essay  question.  Would  you  care  to  hear  what  you  had  to  say?" 

"No,  sir,  not  very  much,"  I  said. 

He  read  it  anyway,  though.  You  can't  stop  a  teacher  when  they  want  to  do 
something.  They  just  do  it. 

The  Egyptians  were  an  ancient  race  of  Caucasians  residing  in 
one  of  the  northern  sections  of  Africa.  The  latter  as  we  all 
know  is  the  largest  continent  in  the  Eastern  Hemisphere. 

I  had  to  sit  there  and  listen  to  that  crap.  It  certainly  was  a  dirty  trick. 

The  Egyptians  are  extremely  interesting  to  us  today  for 
various  reasons.  Modern  science  would  still  like  to  know  what 
the  secret  ingredients  were  that  the  Egyptians  used  when  they 
wrapped  up  dead  people  so  that  their  faces  would  not  rot  for 
innumerable  centuries.  This  interesting  riddle  is  still  quite 
a  challenge  to  modern  science  in  the  twentieth  century. 

He  stopped  reading  and  put  my  paper  down.  I  was  beginning  to  sort  of  hate  him. 
"Your  essay,  shall  we  say,  ends  there,"  he  said  in  this  very  sarcastic  voice.  You  wouldn’t 


think  such  an  old  guy  would  be  so  sarcastic  and  all.  "However,  you  dropped  me  a  little 
note,  at  the  bottom  of  the  page,"  he  said. 

"I  know  I  did,"  I  said.  I  said  it  very  fast  because  I  wanted  to  stop  him  before  he 
started  reading  that  out  loud.  But  you  couldn’t  stop  him.  He  was  hot  as  a  firecracker. 

DEAR  MR.  SPENCER  [he  read  out  loud].  That  is  all  I  know  about 
the  Egyptians.  I  can't  seem  to  get  very  interested  in  them 
although  your  lectures  are  very  interesting.  It  is  all  right 
with  me  if  you  flunk  me  though  as  I  am  flunking  everything 
else  except  English  anyway. 

Respectfully  yours,  HOLDEN  CAULFIELD. 

He  put  my  goddam  paper  down  then  and  looked  at  me  like  he’d  just  beaten  hell 
out  of  me  in  ping-pong  or  something.  I  don’t  think  I'll  ever  forgive  him  for  reading  me 
that  crap  out  loud.  I  wouldn’t've  read  it  out  loud  to  him  if  he’d  written  it— I  really  wouldn’t. 
In  the  first  place,  I'd  only  written  that  damn  note  so  that  he  wouldn't  feel  too  bad  about 
flunking  me. 

"Do  you  blame  me  for  flunking  you,  boy?"  he  said. 

"No,  sir!  I  certainly  don’t,"  I  said.  I  wished  to  hell  he’d  stop  calling  me  "boy"  all 
the  time. 

He  tried  chucking  my  exam  paper  on  the  bed  when  he  was  through  with  it.  Only, 
he  missed  again,  naturally.  I  had  to  get  up  again  and  pick  it  up  and  put  it  on  top  of  the 
Atlantic  Monthly.  It's  boring  to  do  that  every  two  minutes. 

"What  would  you  have  done  in  my  place?"  he  said.  "Tell  the  truth,  boy." 

Well,  you  could  see  he  really  felt  pretty  lousy  about  flunking  me.  So  I  shot  the 
bull  for  a  while.  I  told  him  I  was  a  real  moron,  and  all  that  stuff.  I  told  him  how  I 
would've  done  exactly  the  same  thing  if  I’d  been  in  his  place,  and  how  most  people  didn’t 
appreciate  how  tough  it  is  being  a  teacher.  That  kind  of  stuff.  The  old  bull. 

The  funny  thing  is,  though,  I  was  sort  of  thinking  of  something  else  while  I  shot 
the  bull.  I  live  in  New  York,  and  I  was  thinking  about  the  lagoon  in  Central  Park,  down 
near  Central  Park  South.  I  was  wondering  if  it  would  be  frozen  over  when  I  got  home, 
and  if  it  was,  where  did  the  ducks  go.  I  was  wondering  where  the  ducks  went  when  the 
lagoon  got  all  icy  and  frozen  over.  I  wondered  if  some  guy  came  in  a  truck  and  took  them 
away  to  a  zoo  or  something.  Or  if  they  just  flew  away. 

I'm  lucky,  though.  I  mean  I  could  shoot  the  old  bull  to  old  Spencer  and  think 
about  those  ducks  at  the  same  time.  It's  funny.  You  don't  have  to  think  too  hard  when  you 
talk  to  a  teacher.  All  of  a  sudden,  though,  he  interrupted  me  while  I  was  shooting  the  bull. 
He  was  always  interrupting  you. 

"How  do  you  feel  about  all  this,  boy?  I’d  be  very  interested  to  know.  Very 
interested." 

"You  mean  about  my  flunking  out  of  Pencey  and  all?"  I  said.  I  sort  of  wished  he’d 
cover  up  his  bumpy  chest.  It  wasn’t  such  a  beautiful  view. 

"If  I’m  not  mistaken,  I  believe  you  also  had  some  difficulty  at  the  Whooton 
School  and  at  Elkton  Hills."  He  didn’t  say  it  just  sarcastic,  but  sort  of  nasty,  too. 

"I  didn’t  have  too  much  difficulty  at  Elkton  Hills,"  I  told  him.  "I  didn't  exactly 
flunk  out  or  anything.  I  just  quit,  sort  of." 


"Why,  may  I  ask?" 

"Why?  Oh,  well  it's  a  long  story,  sir.  I  mean  it's  pretty  complicated."  I  didn’t  feel 
like  going  into  the  whole  thing  with  him.  He  wouldn’t  have  understood  it  anyway.  It 
wasn't  up  his  alley  at  all.  One  of  the  biggest  reasons  I  left  Elkton  Hills  was  because  I  was 
surrounded  by  phonies.  That's  all.  They  were  coming  in  the  goddam  window.  For 
instance,  they  had  this  headmaster,  Mr.  Haas,  that  was  the  phoniest  bastard  I  ever  met  in 
my  life.  Ten  times  worse  than  old  Thurmer.  On  Sundays,  for  instance,  old  Haas  went 
around  shaking  hands  with  everybody's  parents  when  they  drove  up  to  school.  He’d  be 
charming  as  hell  and  all.  Except  if  some  boy  had  little  old  funny-looking  parents.  You 
should've  seen  the  way  he  did  with  my  roommate's  parents.  I  mean  if  a  boy's  mother  was 
sort  of  fat  or  corny-looking  or  something,  and  if  somebody's  father  was  one  of  those  guys 
that  wear  those  suits  with  very  big  shoulders  and  corny  black-and-white  shoes,  then  old 
Hans  would  just  shake  hands  with  them  and  give  them  a  phony  smile  and  then  he’d  go 
talk,  for  maybe  a  half  an  hour,  with  somebody  else's  parents.  I  can’t  stand  that  stuff.  It 
drives  me  crazy.  It  makes  me  so  depressed  I  go  crazy.  I  hated  that  goddam  Elkton  Hills. 

Old  Spencer  asked  me  something  then,  but  I  didn’t  hear  him.  I  was  thinking  about 
old  Haas.  "What,  sir?"  I  said. 

"Do  you  have  any  particular  qualms  about  leaving  Pencey?" 

"Oh,  I  have  a  few  qualms,  all  right.  Sure.  .  .  but  not  too  many.  Not  yet,  anyway.  I 
guess  it  hasn’t  really  hit  me  yet.  It  takes  things  a  while  to  hit  me.  All  I'm  doing  right  now 
is  thinking  about  going  home  Wednesday.  I’m  a  moron." 

"Do  you  feel  absolutely  no  concern  for  your  future,  boy?" 

"Oh,  I  feel  some  concern  for  my  future,  all  right.  Sure.  Sure,  I  do."  I  thought  about 
it  for  a  minute.  "But  not  too  much,  I  guess.  Not  too  much,  I  guess." 

"You  will,"  old  Spencer  said.  "You  will,  boy.  You  will  when  it's  too  late." 

I  didn’t  like  hearing  him  say  that.  It  made  me  sound  dead  or  something.  It  was 
very  depressing.  "I  guess  I  will,"  I  said. 

"I’d  like  to  put  some  sense  in  that  head  of  yours,  boy.  I'm  trying  to  help  you.  I’m 
trying  to  help  you,  if  I  can." 

He  really  was,  too.  You  could  see  that.  But  it  was  just  that  we  were  too  much  on 
opposite  sides  ot  the  pole,  that's  all.  "I  know  you  are,  sir,"  I  said.  "Thanks  a  lot.  No 
kidding.  I  appreciate  it.  I  really  do."  I  got  up  from  the  bed  then.  Boy,  I  couldn’t've  sat 
there  another  ten  minutes  to  save  my  life.  "The  thing  is,  though,  I  have  to  get  going  now. 

I  have  quite  a  bit  of  equipment  at  the  gym  I  have  to  get  to  take  home  with  me.  I  really 
do."  He  looked  up  at  me  and  started  nodding  again,  with  this  very  serious  look  on  his 
face.  I  felt  sorry  as  hell  for  him,  all  of  a  sudden.  But  I  just  couldn’t  hang  around  there  any 
longer,  the  way  we  were  on  opposite  sides  of  the  pole,  and  the  way  he  kept  missing  the 
bed  whenever  he  chucked  something  at  it,  and  his  sad  old  bathrobe  with  his  chest 
showing,  and  that  grippy  smell  of  Vicks  Nose  Drops  all  over  the  place.  "Look,  sir.  Don’t 
worry  about  me,"  I  said.  "I  mean  it.  I'll  be  all  right.  I'm  just  going  through  a  phase  right 
now.  Everybody  goes  through  phases  and  all,  don’t  they?" 

"I  don’t  know,  boy.  I  don't  know." 

I  hate  it  when  somebody  answers  that  way.  "Sure.  Sure,  they  do,"  I  said.  "I  mean 
it,  sir.  Please  don't  worry  about  me."  I  sort  of  put  my  hand  on  his  shoulder.  "Okay?"  I 
said. 


Wouldn’t  you  like  a  cup  of  hot  chocolate  before  you  go?  Mrs.  Spencer  would  be- 


"I  would,  I  really  would,  but  the  thing  is,  I  have  to  get  going.  I  have  to  go  right  to 
the  gym.  Thanks,  though.  Thanks  a  lot,  sir." 

Then  we  shook  hands.  And  all  that  crap.  It  made  me  feel  sad  as  hell,  though. 

"Til  drop  you  a  line,  sir.  Take  care  of  your  grippe,  now." 

"Good-by,  boy." 

After  I  shut  the  door  and  started  back  to  the  living  room,  he  yelled  something  at 
me,  but  I  couldn’t  exactly  hear  him.  I'm  pretty  sure  he  yelled  "Good  luck!"  at  me, 

I  hope  to  hell  not.  I’d  never  yell  "Good  luck!"  at  anybody.  It  sounds  terrible,  when 
you  think  about  it. 


3 


I'm  the  most  terrific  liar  you  ever  saw  in  your  life.  It's  awful.  If  I'm  on  my  way  to 
the  store  to  buy  a  magazine,  even,  and  somebody  asks  me  where  I'm  going,  I'm  liable  to 
say  I'm  going  to  the  opera.  It's  terrible.  So  when  I  told  old  Spencer  I  had  to  go  to  the  gym 
and  get  my  equipment  and  stuff,  that  was  a  sheer  lie.  I  don’t  even  keep  my  goddam 
equipment  in  the  gym. 

Where  I  lived  at  Pencey,  I  lived  in  the  Ossenburger  Memorial  Wing  of  the  new 
donns.  It  was  only  for  juniors  and  seniors.  I  was  a  junior.  My  roommate  was  a  senior.  It 
was  named  after  this  guy  Ossenburger  that  went  to  Pencey.  He  made  a  pot  of  dough  in 
the  undertaking  business  after  he  got  out  of  Pencey.  What  he  did,  he  started  these 
undertaking  parlors  all  over  the  country  that  you  could  get  members  of  your  family 
buried  for  about  five  bucks  apiece.  You  should  see  old  Ossenburger.  He  probably  just 
shoves  them  in  a  sack  and  dumps  them  in  the  river.  Anyway,  he  gave  Pencey  a  pile  of 
dough,  and  they  named  our  wing  alter  him.  The  first  football  game  of  the  year,  he  came 
up  to  school  in  this  big  goddam  Cadillac,  and  we  all  had  to  stand  up  in  the  grandstand  and 
give  him  a  locomotive— that's  a  cheer.  Then,  the  next  morning,  in  chapel,  be  made  a 
speech  that  lasted  about  ten  hours.  He  started  off  with  about  fifty  corny  jokes,  just  to 
show  us  what  a  regular  guy  he  was.  Very  big  deal.  Then  he  started  telling  us  how  he  was 
never  ashamed,  when  he  was  in  some  kind  of  trouble  or  something,  to  get  right  down  his 
knees  and  pray  to  God.  He  told  us  we  should  always  pray  to  God— talk  to  Him  and  all — 
wherever  we  were.  He  told  us  we  ought  to  think  of  Jesus  as  our  buddy  and  all.  He  said  he 
talked  to  Jesus  all  the  time.  Even  when  he  was  driving  his  car.  That  killed  me.  I  just  see 
the  big  phony  bastard  shifting  into  first  gear  and  asking  Jesus  to  send  him  a  few  more 
stiffs.  The  only  good  part  of  his  speech  was  right  in  the  middle  of  it.  He  was  telling  us  all 
about  what  a  swell  guy  he  was,  what  a  hot-shot  and  all,  then  all  of  a  sudden  this  guy 
sitting  in  the  row  in  front  of  me,  Edgar  Marsalla,  laid  this  terrific  fart.  It  was  a  very  crude 
thing  to  do,  in  chapel  and  all,  but  it  was  also  quite  amusing.  Old  Marsalla.  He  damn  near 
blew  the  roof  off.  Hardly  anybody  laughed  out  loud,  and  old  Ossenburger  made  out  like 
he  didn’t  even  hear  it,  but  old  Thurmer,  the  headmaster,  was  sitting  right  next  to  him  on 
the  rostrum  and  all,  and  you  could  tell  he  heard  it.  Boy,  was  he  sore.  He  didn’t  say 
anything  then,  but  the  next  night  he  made  us  have  compulsory  study  hall  in  the  academic 
building  and  he  came  up  and  made  a  speech.  He  said  that  the  boy  that  had  created  the 


disturbance  in  chapel  wasn’t  fit  to  go  to  Pencey.  We  tried  to  get  old  Marsalla  to  rip  off 
another  one,  right  while  old  Thurmer  was  making  his  speech,  but  be  wasn't  in  the  right 
mood.  Anyway,  that's  where  I  lived  at  Pencey.  Old  Ossenburger  Memorial  Wing,  in  the 
new  dorms. 

It  was  pretty  nice  to  get  back  to  my  room,  after  I  left  old  Spencer,  because 
everybody  was  down  at  the  game,  and  the  heat  was  on  in  our  room,  for  a  change.  It  felt 
sort  of  cosy.  I  took  off  my  coat  and  my  tie  and  unbuttoned  my  shirt  collar;  and  then  I  put 
on  this  hat  that  I’d  bought  in  New  York  that  morning.  It  was  this  red  hunting  hat,  with  one 
of  those  very,  very  long  peaks.  I  saw  it  in  the  window  of  this  sports  store  when  we  got  out 
of  the  subway,  just  after  I  noticed  I’d  lost  all  the  goddam  foils.  It  only  cost  me  a  buck. 

The  way  I  wore  it,  I  swung  the  old  peak  way  around  to  the  back— very  corny.  I’ll  admit, 
but  I  liked  it  that  way.  I  looked  good  in  it  that  way.  Then  I  got  this  book  I  was  reading 
and  sat  down  in  my  chair.  There  were  two  chairs  in  every  room.  I  had  one  and  my 
roommate,  Ward  Stradlater,  had  one.  The  arms  were  in  sad  shape,  because  everybody 
was  always  sitting  on  them,  but  they  were  pretty  comfortable  chairs. 

The  book  I  was  reading  was  this  book  I  took  out  of  the  library  by  mistake.  They 
gave  me  the  wrong  book,  and  I  didn’t  notice  it  till  I  got  back  to  my  room.  They  gave  me 
Out  of  Africa,  by  Isak  Dinesen.  I  thought  it  was  going  to  stink,  but  it  didn’t.  It  was  a  very 
good  book.  I'm  quite  illiterate,  but  I  read  a  lot.  My  favorite  author  is  my  brother  D.B.,  and 
my  next  favorite  is  Ring  Lardner.  My  brother  gave  me  a  book  by  Ring  Lardner  for  my 
birthday,  just  before  I  went  to  Pencey.  It  had  these  very  funny,  crazy  plays  in  it,  and  then 
it  had  this  one  story  about  a  traffic  cop  that  falls  in  love  with  this  very  cute  girl  that's 
always  speeding.  Only,  he's  married,  the  cop,  so  be  can't  marry  her  or  anything.  Then  this 
girl  gets  killed,  because  she's  always  speeding.  That  story  just  about  killed  me.  What  I 
like  best  is  a  book  that's  at  least  funny  once  in  a  while.  I  read  a  lot  of  classical  books,  like 
The  Return  of  the  Native  and  all,  and  I  like  them,  and  I  read  a  lot  of  war  books  and 
mysteries  and  all,  but  they  don’t  knock  me  out  too  much.  What  really  knocks  me  out  is  a 
book  that,  when  you’re  all  done  reading  it,  you  wish  the  author  that  wrote  it  was  a  terrific 
friend  of  yours  and  you  could  call  him  up  on  the  phone  whenever  you  felt  like  it.  That 
doesn’t  happen  much,  though.  I  wouldn’t  mind  calling  this  Isak  Dinesen  up.  And  Ring 
Lardner,  except  that  D.B.  told  me  he's  dead.  You  take  that  book  Of  Human  Bondage,  by 
Somerset  Maugham,  though.  I  read  it  last  summer.  It's  a  pretty  good  book  and  all,  but  I 
wouldn't  want  to  call  Somerset  Maugham  up.  I  don’t  know,  He  just  isn’t  the  kind  of  guy 
I’d  want  to  call  up,  that's  all.  I’d  rather  call  old  Thomas  Hardy  up.  I  like  that  Eustacia  Vye. 

Anyway,  I  put  on  my  new  hat  and  sat  down  and  started  reading  that  book  Out  of 
Africa.  I’d  read  it  already,  but  I  wanted  to  read  certain  parts  over  again.  I’d  only  read 
about  three  pages,  though,  when  I  heard  somebody  coming  through  the  shower  curtains. 
Even  without  looking  up,  I  knew  right  away  who  it  was.  It  was  Robert  Ackley,  this  guy 
that  roomed  right  next  to  me.  There  was  a  shower  right  between  every  two  rooms  in  our 
wing,  and  about  eighty-five  times  a  day  old  Ackley  barged  in  on  me.  He  was  probably  the 
only  guy  in  the  whole  donn,  besides  me,  that  wasn't  down  at  the  game.  He  hardly  ever 
went  anywhere.  He  was  a  very  peculiar  guy.  He  was  a  senior,  and  he’d  been  at  Pencey  the 
whole  four  years  and  all,  but  nobody  ever  called  him  anything  except  "Ackley."  Not  even 
Herb  Gale,  his  own  roommate,  ever  called  him  "Bob"  or  even  "Ack."  If  he  ever  gets 
married,  his  own  wife’ll  probably  call  him  "Ackley."  He  was  one  of  these  very,  very  tall, 
round-shouldered  guys— he  was  about  six  four— with  lousy  teeth.  The  whole  time  he 


roomed  next  to  me,  I  never  even  once  saw  him  brush  his  teeth.  They  always  looked 
mossy  and  awful,  and  he  damn  near  made  you  sick  if  you  saw  him  in  the  dining  room 
with  his  mouth  full  of  mashed  potatoes  and  peas  or  something.  Besides  that,  he  had  a  lot 
of  pimples.  Not  just  on  his  forehead  or  his  chin,  like  most  guys,  but  all  over  his  whole 
face.  And  not  only  that,  he  had  a  terrible  personality.  He  was  also  sort  of  a  nasty  guy.  I 
wasn’t  too  crazy  about  him,  to  tell  you  the  truth. 

I  could  feel  him  standing  on  the  shower  ledge,  right  behind  my  chair,  taking  a 
look  to  see  if  Stradlater  was  around.  He  hated  Stradlater's  guts  and  he  never  came  in  the 
room  if  Stradlater  was  around.  He  hated  everybody's  guts,  damn  near. 

He  came  down  off  the  shower  ledge  and  came  in  the  room.  "Hi,"  he  said.  He 
always  said  it  like  he  was  terrifically  bored  or  terrifically  tired.  He  didn’t  want  you  to 
think  he  was  visiting  you  or  anything.  He  wanted  you  to  think  he’d  come  in  by  mistake, 
for  God’s  sake. 

"Hi,"  I  said,  but  I  didn’t  look  up  from  my  book.  With  a  guy  like  Ackley,  if  you 
looked  up  from  your  book  you  were  a  goner.  You  were  a  goner  anyway,  but  not  as  quick 
if  you  didn’t  look  up  right  away. 

He  started  walking  around  the  room,  very  slow  and  all,  the  way  he  always  did, 
picking  up  your  personal  stuff  off  your  desk  and  chiffonier.  He  always  picked  up  your 
personal  stuff  and  looked  at  it.  Boy,  could  he  get  on  your  nerves  sometimes.  "How  was 
the  fencing?"  he  said.  He  just  wanted  me  to  quit  reading  and  enjoying  myself.  He  didn’t 
give  a  damn  about  the  fencing.  "We  win,  or  what?"  he  said. 

"Nobody  won,"  I  said.  Without  looking  up,  though. 

"What?"  he  said.  He  always  made  you  say  everything  twice. 

"Nobody  won,"  I  said.  I  sneaked  a  look  to  see  what  he  was  fiddling  around  with 
on  my  chiffonier.  He  was  looking  at  this  picture  of  this  girl  I  used  to  go  around  with  in 
New  York,  Sally  Hayes.  He  must've  picked  up  that  goddam  picture  and  looked  at  it  at 
least  five  thousand  times  since  I  got  it.  He  always  put  it  back  in  the  wrong  place,  too, 
when  he  was  finished.  He  did  it  on  purpose.  You  could  tell. 

"Nobody  won,"  he  said.  "How  come?" 

"I  left  the  goddam  foils  and  stuff  on  the  subway."  I  still  didn’t  look  up  at  him. 

"On  the  subway,  for  Chrissake!  Ya  lost  them,  ya  mean?" 

"We  got  on  the  wrong  subway.  I  had  to  keep  getting  up  to  look  at  a  goddam  map 
on  the  wall." 

He  came  over  and  stood  right  in  my  light.  "Hey,"  I  said.  "I've  read  this  same 
sentence  about  twenty  times  since  you  came  in." 

Anybody  else  except  Ackley  would've  taken  the  goddam  hint.  Not  him,  though. 
"Think  they'll  make  ya  pay  for  em?"  he  said. 

"I  don’t  know,  and  I  don't  give  a  damn.  How  'bout  sitting  down  or  something, 
Ackley  kid?  You're  right  in  my  goddam  light."  He  didn’t  like  it  when  you  called  him 
"Ackley  kid."  He  was  always  telling  me  I  was  a  goddam  kid,  because  I  was  sixteen  and 
he  was  eighteen.  It  drove  him  mad  when  I  called  him  "Ackley  kid." 

He  kept  standing  there.  He  was  exactly  the  kind  of  a  guy  that  wouldn’t  get  out  of 
your  light  when  you  asked  him  to.  He'd  do  it,  finally,  but  it  took  him  a  lot  longer  if  you 
asked  him  to.  "What  the  hellya  reading?"  he  said. 

"Goddam  book." 


He  shoved  my  book  back  with  his  hand  so  that  he  could  see  the  name  of  it.  "Any 
good?"  he  said. 

"This  sentence  I'm  reading  is  terrific."  I  can  be  quite  sarcastic  when  I'm  in  the 
mood.  He  didn’t  get  It,  though.  He  started  walking  around  the  room  again,  picking  up  all 
my  personal  stuff,  and  Stradlater’s.  Finally,  I  put  my  book  down  on  the  floor.  You 
couldn’t  read  anything  with  a  guy  like  Ackley  around.  It  was  impossible. 

I  slid  way  the  hell  down  in  my  chair  and  watched  old  Ackley  making  himself  at 
home.  I  was  feeling  sort  of  tired  from  the  trip  to  New  York  and  all,  and  I  started  yawning. 
Then  I  started  horsing  around  a  little  bit.  Sometimes  I  horse  around  quite  a  lot,  just  to 
keep  from  getting  bored.  What  I  did  was,  I  pulled  the  old  peak  of  my  hunting  hat  around 
to  the  front,  then  pulled  it  way  down  over  my  eyes.  That  way,  I  couldn’t  see  a  goddam 
thing.  "I  think  I'm  going  blind,"  I  said  in  this  very  hoarse  voice.  "Mother  darling, 
everything's  getting  so  dark  in  here." 

"You're  nuts.  I  swear  to  God,"  Ackley  said. 

"Mother  darling,  give  me  your  hand,  Why  won’t  you  give  me  your  hand?" 

"For  Chrissake,  grow  up." 

I  started  groping  around  in  front  of  me,  like  a  blind  guy,  but  without  getting  up  or 
anything.  I  kept  saying,  "Mother  darling,  why  won’t  you  give  me  your  hand?"  I  was  only 
horsing  around,  naturally.  That  stuff  gives  me  a  bang  sometimes.  Besides,  I  know  it 
annoyed  hell  out  of  old  Ackley.  He  always  brought  out  the  old  sadist  in  me.  I  was  pretty 
sadistic  with  him  quite  often.  Finally,  I  quit,  though.  I  pulled  the  peak  around  to  the  back 
again,  and  relaxed. 

"Who  belongsa  this?"  Ackley  said.  He  was  holding  my  roommate's  knee 
supporter  up  to  show  me.  That  guy  Ackley'd  pick  up  anything.  He’d  even  pick  up  your 
jock  strap  or  something.  I  told  him  it  was  Stradlater's.  So  he  chucked  it  on  Stradlater's 
bed.  He  got  it  off  Stradlater's  chiffonier,  so  he  chucked  it  on  the  bed. 

He  came  over  and  sat  down  on  the  ann  of  Stradlater's  chair.  He  never  sat  down  in 
a  chair.  Just  always  on  the  arm.  "Where  the  hellja  get  that  hat?"  he  said. 

"New  York." 

"How  much?" 

"A  buck." 

"You  got  robbed."  He  started  cleaning  his  goddam  fingernails  with  the  end  of  a 
match.  He  was  always  cleaning  his  fingernails.  It  was  funny,  in  a  way.  His  teeth  were 
always  mossy-looking,  and  his  ears  were  always  dirty  as  hell,  but  he  was  always  cleaning 
his  fingernails.  I  guess  he  thought  that  made  him  a  very  neat  guy.  He  took  another  look  at 
my  hat  while  he  was  cleaning  them.  "Up  home  we  wear  a  hat  like  that  to  shoot  deer  in, 
for  Chrissake,"  he  said.  "That’s  a  deer  shooting  hat." 

"Like  hell  it  is."  I  took  it  off  and  looked  at  it.  I  sort  of  closed  one  eye,  like  I  was 
taking  aim  at  it.  "This  is  a  people  shooting  hat,"  I  said.  "I  shoot  people  in  this  hat." 

"Your  folks  know  you  got  kicked  out  yet?" 

"Nope." 

"Where  the  hell's  Stradlater  at,  anyway?" 

"Down  at  the  game.  He's  got  a  date."  I  yawned.  I  was  yawning  all  over  the  place. 
For  one  thing,  the  room  was  too  damn  hot.  It  made  you  sleepy.  At  Pencey,  you  either 
froze  to  death  or  died  of  the  heat. 


"The  great  Stradlater,"  Ackley  said.  "—Hey.  Lend  me  your  scissors  a  second, 
willya?  Ya  got  'em  handy?" 

"No.  I  packed  them  already.  They're  way  in  the  top  of  the  closet." 

"Get  'em  a  second,  willya?"  Ackley  said,  "I  got  this  hangnail  I  want  to  cut  off." 

He  didn't  care  if  you'd  packed  something  or  not  and  had  it  way  in  the  top  of  the 
closet.  I  got  them  for  him  though.  I  nearly  got  killed  doing  it,  too.  The  second  I  opened 
the  closet  door,  Stradlater's  tennis  racket— in  its  wooden  press  and  all— fell  right  on  my 
head.  It  made  a  big  clunk,  and  it  hurt  like  hell.  It  damn  near  killed  old  Ackley,  though.  He 
started  laughing  in  this  very  high  falsetto  voice.  He  kept  laughing  the  whole  time  I  was 
taking  down  my  suitcase  and  getting  the  scissors  out  for  him.  Something  like  that— a  guy 
getting  hit  on  the  head  with  a  rock  or  something— tickled  the  pants  off  Ackley.  "You  have 
a  damn  good  sense  of  humor,  Ackley  kid,"  I  told  him.  "You  know  that?"  I  handed  him  the 
scissors.  "Lemine  be  your  manager.  I'll  get  you  on  the  goddam  radio."  I  sat  down  in  my 
chair  again,  and  he  started  cutting  his  big  horny-looking  nails.  "How  'bout  using  the  table 
or  something?"  I  said.  "Cut  'em  over  the  table,  willya?  I  don’t  feel  like  walking  on  your 
crumby  nails  in  my  bare  feet  tonight."  He  kept  right  on  cutting  them  over  the  floor, 
though.  What  lousy  manners.  I  mean  it. 

"Who's  Stradlater's  date?"  he  said.  He  was  always  keeping  tabs  on  who  Stradlater 
was  dating,  even  though  he  hated  Stradlater's  guts. 

"I  don't  know.  Why?" 

"No  reason.  Boy,  I  can't  stand  that  sonuvabitch.  He's  one  sonuvabitch  I  really  can't 

stand." 

"He's  crazy  about  you.  He  told  me  he  thinks  you're  a  goddam  prince,"  I  said.  I  call 
people  a  "prince"  quite  often  when  I'm  horsing  around.  It  keeps  me  from  getting  bored  or 
something. 

"He's  got  this  superior  attitude  all  the  time,"  Ackley  said.  "I  just  can't  stand  the 
sonuvabitch.  You'd  think  he—" 

"Do  you  mind  cutting  your  nails  over  the  table,  hey?"  I  said.  "I've  asked  you  about 

fifty—" 

"He's  got  this  goddam  superior  attitude  all  the  time,"  Ackley  said.  "I  don’t  even 
think  the  sonuvabitch  is  intelligent.  He  thinks  he  is.  He  thinks  he's  about  the  most—" 

"Ackley!  For  Chrissake.  Willya  please  cut  your  crumby  nails  over  the  table?  I've 
asked  you  fifty  times." 

He  started  cutting  his  nails  over  the  table,  for  a  change.  The  only  way  he  ever  did 
anything  was  if  you  yelled  at  him. 

I  watched  him  for  a  while.  Then  I  said,  "The  reason  you’re  sore  at  Stradlater  is 
because  he  said  that  stuff  about  brushing  your  teeth  once  in  a  while.  He  didn’t  mean  to 
insult  you,  for  cryin’  out  loud.  He  didn’t  say  it  right  or  anything,  but  he  didn’t  mean 
anything  insulting.  All  he  meant  was  you’d  look  better  and  feel  better  if  you  sort  of 
brushed  your  teeth  once  in  a  while." 

"I  brush  my  teeth.  Don’t  gimme  that." 

"No,  you  don't.  I've  seen  you,  and  you  don't,"  I  said.  I  didn’t  say  it  nasty,  though.  I 
felt  sort  of  sorry  for  him,  in  a  way.  I  mean  it  isn't  too  nice,  naturally,  if  somebody  tells 
you  you  don't  brush  your  teeth.  "Stradlater’s  all  right  He's  not  too  bad,"  I  said.  "You  don’t 
know  him,  thats  the  trouble." 

"I  still  say  he's  a  sonuvabitch.  He's  a  conceited  sonuvabitch." 


"He's  conceited,  but  he's  very  generous  in  some  things.  He  really  is,"  I  said. 

"Look.  Suppose,  for  instance,  Stradlater  was  wearing  a  tie  or  something  that  you  liked. 
Say  he  had  a  tie  on  that  you  liked  a  helluva  lot— I'm  just  giving  you  an  example,  now. 

You  know  what  he’d  do?  He’d  probably  take  it  off  and  give  it  ta  you.  He  really  would. 
Or— you  know  what  he’d  do?  He’d  leave  it  on  your  bed  or  something.  But  he’d  give  you 
the  goddam  tie.  Most  guys  would  probably  just— " 

"Hell,"  Ackley  said.  "If  I  had  his  dough,  I  would,  too." 

"No,  you  wouldn’t."  I  shook  my  head.  "No,  you  wouldn’t,  Ackley  kid.  If  you  had 
his  dough,  you'd  be  one  of  the  biggest—" 

"Stop  calling  me  'Ackley  kid,’  God  damn  it.  I’m  old  enough  to  be  your  lousy 

father." 

"No,  you're  not."  Boy,  he  could  really  be  aggravating  sometimes.  He  never  missed 
a  chance  to  let  you  know  you  were  sixteen  and  he  was  eighteen.  "In  the  first  place,  I 
wouldn't  let  you  in  my  goddam  family,"  I  said. 

"Well,  just  cut  out  calling  me—" 

All  of  a  sudden  the  door  opened,  and  old  Stradlater  barged  in,  in  a  big  hurry.  He 
was  always  in  a  big  hurry.  Everything  was  a  very  big  deal.  He  came  over  to  me  and  gave 
me  these  two  playful  as  hell  slaps  on  both  cheeks— which  is  something  that  can  be  very 
annoying.  ’Listen,"  he  said.  "You  going  out  anywheres  special  tonight?" 

"I  don't  know.  I  might.  What  the  hell's  it  doing  out— snowing?"  He  had  snow  all 
over  his  coat. 

"Yeah.  Listen.  If  you're  not  going  out  anyplace  special,  how  'bout  lending  me 
your  hound's-tooth  jacket?" 

"Who  won  the  game?"  I  said. 

"It's  only  the  half.  We’re  leaving,"  Stradlater  said.  "No  kidding,  you  gonna  use 
your  hound's-tooth  tonight  or  not?  I  spilled  some  crap  all  over  my  gray  flannel." 

"No,  but  I  don't  want  you  stretching  it  with  your  goddam  shoulders  and  all,"  I 
said.  We  were  practically  the  same  heighth,  but  he  weighed  about  twice  as  much  as  I  did. 
He  had  these  very  broad  shoulders. 

"I  won’t  stretch  it."  He  went  over  to  the  closet  in  a  big  hurry.  "How'sa  boy, 
Ackley?"  he  said  to  Ackley.  He  was  at  least  a  pretty  friendly  guy,  Stradlater.  It  was  partly 
a  phony  kind  of  friendly,  but  at  least  he  always  said  hello  to  Ackley  and  all. 

Ackley  just  sort  of  grunted  when  he  said  "How'sa  boy?"  He  wouldn’t  answer  him, 
but  he  didn’t  have  guts  enough  not  to  at  least  grunt.  Then  he  said  to  me,  "I  think  I'll  get 
going.  See  ya  later." 

"Okay,"  I  said.  He  never  exactly  broke  your  heart  when  he  went  back  to  his  own 

room. 

Old  Stradlater  started  taking  off  his  coat  and  tie  and  all.  "I  think  maybe  I'll  take  a 
fast  shave,"  he  said.  He  had  a  pretty  heavy  beard.  He  really  did. 

"Where's  your  date?"  I  asked  him. 

"She's  waiting  in  the  Annex."  He  went  out  of  the  room  with  his  toilet  kit  and 
towel  under  his  arm.  No  shirt  on  or  anything.  He  always  walked  around  in  his  bare  torso 
because  he  thought  he  had  a  damn  good  build.  He  did,  too.  I  have  to  admit  it. 


4 


I  didn’t  have  anything  special  to  do,  so  I  went  down  to  the  can  and  chewed  the  rag 
with  him  while  he  was  shaving.  We  were  the  only  ones  in  the  can,  because  everybody 
was  still  down  at  the  game.  It  was  hot  as  hell  and  the  windows  were  all  steamy.  There 
were  about  ten  washbowls,  all  right  against  the  wall.  Stradlater  had  the  middle  one.  I  sat 
down  on  the  one  right  next  to  him  and  started  turning  the  cold  water  on  and  off— this 
nervous  habit  I  have.  Stradlater  kept  whistling  ’Song  of  India"  while  he  shaved.  He  had 
one  of  those  very  piercing  whistles  that  are  practically  never  in  tune,  and  he  always 
picked  out  some  song  that's  hard  to  whistle  even  if  you're  a  good  whistler,  like  "Song  of 
India"  or  "Slaughter  on  Tenth  Avenue."  He  could  really  mess  a  song  up. 

You  remember  I  said  before  that  Ackley  was  a  slob  in  his  personal  habits?  Well, 
so  was  Stradlater,  but  in  a  different  way.  Stradlater  was  more  of  a  secret  slob.  He  always 
looked  all  right,  Stradlater,  but  for  instance,  you  should've  seen  the  razor  he  shaved 
himself  with.  It  was  always  rusty  as  hell  and  full  of  lather  and  hairs  and  crap.  He  never 
cleaned  it  or  anything.  He  always  looked  good  when  he  was  finished  fixing  himself  up, 
but  he  was  a  secret  slob  anyway,  if  you  knew  him  the  way  I  did.  The  reason  he  fixed 
himself  up  to  look  good  was  because  he  was  madly  in  love  with  himself.  He  thought  he 
was  the  handsomest  guy  in  the  Western  Hemisphere.  He  was  pretty  handsome,  too— I'll 
admit  it.  But  he  was  mostly  the  kind  of  a  handsome  guy  that  if  your  parents  saw  his 
picture  in  your  Year  Book,  they'd  right  away  say,  "Who's  this  boy?"  I  mean  he  was 
mostly  a  Year  Book  kind  of  handsome  guy.  I  knew  a  lot  of  guys  at  Pencey  I  thought  were 
a  lot  handsomer  than  Stradlater,  but  they  wouldn't  look  handsome  if  you  saw  their 
pictures  in  the  Year  Book.  They'd  look  like  they  had  big  noses  or  their  ears  stuck  out.  I've 
had  that  experience  frequently. 

Anyway,  I  was  sitting  on  the  washbowl  next  to  where  Stradlater  was  shaving,  sort 
of  turning  the  water  on  and  off.  I  still  had  my  red  hunting  hat  on,  with  the  peak  around  to 
the  back  and  all.  I  really  got  a  bang  out  of  that  hat. 

"Hey,"  Stradlater  said.  "Wanna  do  me  a  big  favor?" 

"What?"  I  said.  Not  too  enthusiastic.  He  was  always  asking  you  to  do  him  a  big 
favor.  You  take  a  very  handsome  guy,  or  a  guy  that  thinks  he's  a  real  hot-shot,  and  they're 
always  asking  you  to  do  them  a  big  favor.  Just  because  they're  crazy  about  themseif,  they 
think  you're  crazy  about  them,  too,  and  that  you're  just  dying  to  do  them  a  favor.  It's  sort 
of  funny,  in  a  way. 

"You  goin’  out  tonight?"  he  said. 

"I  might.  I  might  not.  I  don’t  know.  Why?" 

"I  got  about  a  hundred  pages  to  read  for  history  for  Monday,"  he  said.  "How  'bout 
writing  a  composition  for  me,  for  English?  I'll  be  up  the  creek  if  I  don't  get  the  goddam 
thing  in  by  Monday,  the  reason  I  ask.  How  'bout  it?" 

It  was  very  ironical.  It  really  was. 

"I'm  the  one  that's  flunking  out  of  the  goddam  place,  and  you're  asking  me  to 
write  you  a  goddam  composition,"  I  said. 

"Yeah,  I  know.  The  thing  is,  though,  I'll  be  up  the  creek  if  I  don’t  get  it  in.  Be  a 
buddy.  Be  a  buddyroo.  Okay?" 

I  didn’t  answer  him  right  away.  Suspense  is  good  for  some  bastards  like 
Stradlater. 

"What  on?"  I  said. 


"Anything.  Anything  descriptive.  A  room.  Or  a  house.  Or  something  you  once 
lived  in  or  something—  you  know.  Just  as  long  as  it's  descriptive  as  hell."  He  gave  out  a 
big  yawn  while  he  said  that.  Which  is  something  that  gives  me  a  royal  pain  in  the  ass.  I 
mean  if  somebody  yawns  right  while  they're  asking  you  to  do  them  a  goddam  favor.  "Just 
don’t  do  it  too  good,  is  all,"  he  said.  "That  sonuvabitch  Hartzell  thinks  you're  a  hot-shot  in 
English,  and  he  knows  you're  my  roommate.  So  I  mean  don't  stick  all  the  commas  and 
stuff  in  the  right  place." 

That’s  something  else  that  gives  me  a  royal  pain.  I  mean  if  you’re  good  at  writing 
compositions  and  somebody  starts  talking  about  commas.  Stradlater  was  always  doing 
that.  He  wanted  you  to  think  that  the  only  reason  he  was  lousy  at  writing  compositions 
was  because  he  stuck  all  the  commas  in  the  wrong  place.  He  was  a  little  bit  like  Ackley, 
that  way.  I  once  sat  next  to  Ackley  at  this  basketball  game.  We  had  a  terrific  guy  on  the 
team,  Howie  Coyle,  that  could  sink  them  from  the  middle  of  the  floor,  without  even 
touching  the  backboard  or  anything.  Ackley  kept  saying,  the  whole  goddam  game,  that 
Coyle  had  a  perfect  build  for  basketball.  God,  how  I  hate  that  stuff. 

I  got  bored  sitting  on  that  washbowl  after  a  while,  so  I  backed  up  a  few  feet  and 
started  doing  this  tap  dance,  just  for  the  hell  of  it.  I  was  just  amusing  myself.  I  can't  really 
tap-dance  or  anything,  but  it  was  a  stone  floor  in  the  can,  and  it  was  good  for  tap-dancing. 
I  started  imitating  one  of  those  guys  in  the  movies.  In  one  of  those  musicals.  I  hate  the 
movies  like  poison,  but  I  get  a  bang  imitating  them.  Old  Stradlater  watched  me  in  the 
mirror  while  he  was  shaving.  All  I  need's  an  audience.  I'm  an  exhibitionist.  "I'm  the 
goddarn  Governor’s  son,"  I  said.  I  was  knocking  myself  out.  Tap-dancing  all  over  the 
place.  "He  doesn’t  want  me  to  be  a  tap  dancer.  He  wants  me  to  go  to  Oxford.  But  it's  in 
my  goddam  blood,  tap-dancing."  Old  Stradlater  laughed.  He  didn’t  have  too  bad  a  sense 
of  humor.  "It's  the  opening  night  of  the  Ziegfeld  Follies."  I  was  getting  out  of  breath.  I 
have  hardly  any  wind  at  all.  "The  leading  man  can't  go  on.  He's  drunk  as  a  bastard.  So 
who  do  they  get  to  take  his  place?  Me,  that's  who.  The  little  ole  goddam  Governor's  son." 

"Where’dja  get  that  hat?"  Stradlater  said.  He  meant  my  hunting  hat.  He’d  never 
seen  it  before. 

I  was  out  of  breath  anyway,  so  I  quit  horsing  around.  I  took  off  my  hat  and  looked 
at  it  for  about  the  ninetieth  time.  "I  got  it  in  New  York  this  morning.  For  a  buck.  Ya  like 
it?" 

Stradlater  nodded.  "Sharp,"  he  said.  He  was  only  flattering  me,  though,  because 
right  away  he  said,  "Fisten.  Are  ya  gonna  write  that  composition  for  me?  I  have  to 
know." 

"If  I  get  the  time,  I  will.  If  I  don't,  I  won't,"  I  said.  I  went  over  and  sat  down  at  the 
washbowl  next  to  him  again.  "Who's  your  date?"  I  asked  him.  "Fitzgerald?" 

"Hell,  no!  I  told  ya.  I'm  through  with  that  pig." 

"Yeah?  Give  her  to  me,  boy.  No  kidding.  She's  my  type." 

"Take  her  .  .  .  She's  too  old  for  you." 

All  of  a  sudden— for  no  good  reason,  really,  except  that  I  was  sort  of  in  the  mood 
for  horsing  around— I  felt  like  jumping  off  the  washbowl  and  getting  old  Stradlater  in  a 
half  nelson.  That’s  a  wrestling  hold,  in  case  you  don’t  know,  where  you  get  the  other  guy 
around  the  neck  and  choke  him  to  death,  if  you  feel  like  it.  So  I  did  it.  I  landed  on  him 
like  a  goddam  panther. 


"Cut  it  out,  Holden,  for  Chrissake!"  Stradlater  said.  He  didn’t  feel  like  horsing 
around.  He  was  shaving  and  all.  "Wuddaya  wanna  make  me  do— cut  my  goddam  head 
off?" 

I  didn’t  let  go,  though.  I  had  a  pretty  good  half  nelson  on  him.  "Liberate  yourself 
from  my  viselike  grip."  I  said. 

"Je-sus  Christ."  He  put  down  his  razor,  and  all  of  a  sudden  jerked  his  arms  up  and 
sort  of  broke  my  hold  on  him.  He  was  a  very  strong  guy.  I'm  a  very  weak  guy.  "Now,  cut 
out  the  crap,"  he  said.  He  started  shaving  himself  all  over  again.  He  always  shaved 
himself  twice,  to  look  gorgeous.  With  his  crumby  old  razor. 

"Who  is  your  date  if  it  isn’t  Fitzgerald?"  I  asked  him.  I  sat  down  on  the  washbowl 
next  to  him  again.  "That  Phyllis  Smith  babe?" 

"No.  It  was  supposed  to  he,  but  the  arrangements  got  all  screwed  up.  I  got  Bud 
Thaw's  girl's  roommate  now  .  .  .  Hey.  I  almost  forgot.  She  knows  you." 

"Who  does?"  I  said. 

"My  date." 

"Yeah?"  I  said.  "What’s  her  name?"  I  was  pretty  interested. 

"I'm  thinking  .  .  .  Uh.  Jean  Gallagher." 

Boy,  I  nearly  dropped  dead  when  he  said  that. 

"Jane  Gallagher,"  I  said.  I  even  got  up  from  the  washbowl  when  he  said  that.  I 
damn  near  dropped  dead.  "You're  damn  right  I  know  her.  She  practically  lived  right  next 
door  to  me,  the  summer  before  last.  She  had  this  big  damn  Doberman  pinscher.  That's 
how  I  met  her.  Her  dog  used  to  keep  coming  over  in  our—" 

"You're  right  in  my  light,  Holden,  for  Chrissake,"  Stradlater  said.  "Ya  have  to 
stand  right  there?" 

Boy,  was  I  excited,  though.  I  really  was. 

"Where  is  she?"  I  asked  him.  "I  oughta  go  down  and  say  hello  to  her  or 
something.  Where  is  she?  In  the  Annex?" 

"Yeah." 

"How'd  she  happen  to  mention  me?  Does  she  go  to  B.M.  now?  She  said  she  might 
go  there.  She  said  she  might  go  to  Shipley,  too.  I  thought  she  went  to  Shipley.  How'd  she 
happen  to  mention  me?"  I  was  pretty  excited.  I  really  was. 

"I  don’t  know,  for  Chrissake.  Lift  up,  willya?  You're  on  my  towel,"  Stradlater 
said.  I  was  sitting  on  his  stupid  towel. 

"Jane  Gallagher,"  I  said.  I  couldn’t  get  over  it.  "Jesus  H.  Christ." 

Old  Stradlater  was  putting  Vitalis  on  his  hair.  My  Vitalis. 

"She's  a  dancer,"  I  said.  "Ballet  and  all.  She  used  to  practice  about  two  hours 
every  day,  right  in  the  middle  of  the  hottest  weather  and  all.  She  was  worried  that  it  might 
make  her  legs  lousy— all  thick  and  all.  I  used  to  play  checkers  with  her  all  the  time." 

"You  used  to  play  what  with  her  all  the  time?" 

"Checkers." 

"Checkers,  for  Chrissake!" 

"Yeah.  She  wouldn’t  move  any  of  her  kings.  What  she’d  do,  when  she’d  get  a  king, 
she  wouldn’t  move  it.  She’d  just  leave  it  in  the  back  row.  She’d  get  them  all  lined  up  in  the 
back  row.  Then  she’d  never  use  them.  She  just  liked  the  way  they  looked  when  they  were 
all  in  the  back  row." 

Stradlater  didn’t  say  anything.  That  kind  of  stuff  doesn't  interest  most  people. 


"Her  mother  belonged  to  the  same  club  we  did,"  I  said.  "I  used  to  caddy  once  in  a 
while,  just  to  make  some  dough.  I  caddy'd  for  her  mother  a  couple  of  times.  She  went 
around  in  about  a  hundred  and  seventy,  for  nine  holes." 

Stradlater  wasn’t  hardly  listening.  He  was  combing  his  gorgeous  locks. 

"I  oughta  go  down  and  at  least  say  hello  to  her,"  I  said. 

"Why  don’tcha?" 

"I  will,  in  a  minute." 

He  started  parting  his  hair  all  over  again.  It  took  him  about  an  hour  to  comb  his 

hair. 

"Her  mother  and  father  were  divorced.  Her  mother  was  married  again  to  some 
booze  hound,"  I  said.  "Skinny  guy  with  hairy  legs.  I  remember  him.  He  wore  shorts  all 
the  time.  Jane  said  he  was  supposed  to  be  a  playwright  or  some  goddam  thing,  but  all  I 
ever  saw  him  do  was  booze  all  the  time  and  listen  to  every  single  goddam  mystery 
program  on  the  radio.  And  run  around  the  goddam  house,  naked.  With  Jane  around,  and 
all." 

"Yeah?"  Stradlater  said.  That  really  interested  him.  About  the  booze  hound 
running  around  the  house  naked,  with  Jane  around.  Stradlater  was  a  very  sexy  bastard. 

"She  had  a  lousy  childhood.  I'm  not  kidding." 

That  didn't  interest  Stradlater,  though.  Only  very  sexy  stuff  interested  him. 

"Jane  Gallagher.  Jesus  ...  I  couldn’t  get  her  off  my  mind.  I  really  couldn’t.  "I 
oughta  go  down  and  say  hello  to  her,  at  least." 

"Why  the  hell  don'tcha,  instead  of  keep  saying  it?"  Stradlater  said. 

I  walked  over  to  the  window,  but  you  couldn't  see  out  of  it,  it  was  so  steamy  from 
all  the  heat  in  the  can..  "I'm  not  in  the  mood  right  now,"  I  said.  I  wasn't,  either.  You  have 
to  be  in  the  mood  for  those  things.  "I  thought  she  went  to  Shipley.  I  could've  sworn  she 
went  to  Shipley."  I  walked  around  the  can  for  a  little  while.  I  didn’t  have  anything  else  to 
do.  "Did  she  enjoy  the  game?"  I  said. 

"Yeah,  I  guess  so.  I  don’t  know." 

"Did  she  tell  you  we  used  to  play  checkers  all  the  time,  or  anything?" 

"I  don’t  know.  For  Chrissake,  I  only  just  met  her,"  Stradlater  said.  He  was  finished 
combing  his  goddam  gorgeous  hair.  He  was  putting  away  all  his  crumby  toilet  articles. 

"Listen.  Give  her  my  regards,  willya?" 

"Okay,"  Stradlater  said,  but  I  knew  he  probably  wouldn’t.  You  take  a  guy  like 
Stradlater,  they  never  give  your  regards  to  people. 

He  went  back  to  the  room,  but  I  stuck  around  in  the  can  for  a  while,  thinking 
about  old  Jane.  Then  I  went  back  to  the  room,  too. 

Stradlater  was  putting  on  his  tie,  in  front  of  the  mirror,  when  I  got  there.  He  spent 
around  half  his  goddam  life  in  front  of  the  mirror.  I  sat  down  in  my  chair  and  sort  of 
watched  him  for  a  while. 

"Hey,"  I  said.  "Don’t  tell  her  I  got  kicked  out,  willya?" 

"Okay." 

That  was  one  good  thing  about  Stradlater.  Y ou  didn’t  have  to  explain  every 
goddam  little  thing  with  him,  the  way  you  had  to  do  with  Ackley.  Mostly,  I  guess, 
because  he  wasn’t  too  interested.  That’s  really  why.  Ackley,  it  was  different.  Ackley  was 
a  very  nosy  bastard. 

He  put  on  my  hound’s-tooth  jacket. 


"Jesus,  now,  try  not  to  stretch  it  all  over  the  place"  I  said.  I’d  only  worn  it  about 

twice. 

"I  won’t.  Where  the  hell's  my  cigarettes?" 

"On  the  desk."  He  never  knew  where  he  left  anything.  "Under  your  muffler."  He 
put  them  in  his  coat  pocket— my  coat  pocket. 

I  pulled  the  peak  of  my  hunting  hat  around  to  the  front  all  of  a  sudden,  for  a 
change.  I  was  getting  sort  of  nervous,  all  of  a  sudden.  I'm  quite  a  nervous  guy.  "Listen, 
where  ya  going  on  your  date  with  her?"  I  asked  him.  "Ya  know  yet?" 

"I  don't  know.  New  York,  if  we  have  time.  She  only  signed  out  for  nine-thirty,  for 
Chrissake." 

I  didn’t  like  the  way  he  said  it,  so  I  said,  "The  reason  she  did  that,  she  probably 
just  didn’t  know  what  a  handsome,  channing  bastard  you  are.  If  she’d  known,  she 
probably  would've  signed  out  for  nine -thirty  in  the  morning." 

"Goddam  right,"  Stradlater  said.  You  couldn't  rile  him  too  easily.  He  was  too 
conceited.  "No  kidding,  now.  Do  that  composition  for  me,"  he  said.  He  had  his  coat  on, 
and  he  was  all  ready  to  go.  "Don’t  knock  yourself  out  or  anything,  but  just  make  it 
descriptive  as  hell.  Okay?" 

I  didn’t  answer  him.  I  didn’t  feel  like  it.  All  I  said  was,  "Ask  her  if  she  still  keeps 
all  her  kings  in  the  back  row." 

"Okay,"  Stradlater  said,  but  I  knew  he  wouldn't.  "Take  it  easy,  now."  He  banged 
the  hell  out  of  the  room. 

I  sat  there  for  about  a  half  hour  after  he  left.  I  mean  I  just  sat  in  my  chair,  not 
doing  anything.  I  kept  thinking  about  Jane,  and  about  Stradlater  having  a  date  with  her 
and  all.  It  made  me  so  nervous  I  nearly  went  crazy.  I  already  told  you  what  a  sexy  bastard 
Stradlater  was. 

All  of  a  sudden,  Ackley  barged  back  in  again,  through  the  damn  shower  curtains, 
as  usual.  For  once  in  my  stupid  life,  I  was  really  glad  to  see  him.  He  took  my  mind  off  the 
other  stuff. 

He  stuck  around  till  around  dinnertime,  talking  about  all  the  guys  at  Pencey  that 
he  hated  their  guts,  and  squeezing  this  big  pimple  on  his  chin.  He  didn’t  even  use  his 
handkerchief.  I  don’t  even  think  the  bastard  had  a  handkerchief,  if  you  want  to  know  the 
truth.  I  never  saw  him  use  one,  anyway. 


5 


We  always  had  the  same  meal  on  Saturday  nights  at  Pencey.  It  was  supposed  to 
be  a  big  deal,  because  they  gave  you  steak.  I’ll  bet  a  thousand  bucks  the  reason  they  did 
that  was  because  a  lot  of  guys’  parents  came  up  to  school  on  Sunday,  and  old  Thurmer 
probably  figured  everybody's  mother  would  ask  their  darling  boy  what  he  had  for  dinner 
last  night,  and  he’d  say,  "Steak."  What  a  racket.  You  should've  seen  the  steaks.  They  were 
these  little  hard,  dry  jobs  that  you  could  hardly  even  cut.  You  always  got  these  very 
lumpy  mashed  potatoes  on  steak  night,  and  for  dessert  you  got  Brown  Betty,  which 
nobody  ate,  except  maybe  the  little  kids  in  the  lower  school  that  didn’t  know  any  better— 
and  guys  like  Ackley  that  ate  everything. 


It  was  nice,  though,  when  we  got  out  of  the  dining  room.  There  were  about  three 
inches  of  snow  on  the  ground,  and  it  was  still  coming  down  like  a  madman.  It  looked 
pretty  as  hell,  and  we  all  started  throwing  snowballs  and  horsing  around  all  over  the 
place.  It  was  very  childish,  but  everybody  was  really  enjoying  themselves. 

I  didn’t  have  a  date  or  anything,  so  I  and  this  friend  of  mine,  Mai  Brossard,  that 
was  on  the  wrestling  team,  decided  we’d  take  a  bus  into  Agerstown  and  have  a  hamburger 
and  maybe  see  a  lousy  movie.  Neither  of  us  felt  like  sitting  around  on  our  ass  all  night.  I 
asked  Mai  if  he  minded  if  Ackley  came  along  with  us.  The  reason  I  asked  was  because 
Ackley  never  did  anything  on  Saturday  night,  except  stay  in  his  room  and  squeeze  his 
pimples  or  something.  Mai  said  he  didn’t  mind  but  that  he  wasn't  too  crazy  about  the  idea. 
He  didn’t  like  Ackley  much.  Anyway,  we  both  went  to  our  rooms  to  get  ready  and  all, 
and  while  I  was  putting  on  my  galoshes  and  crap,  I  yelled  over  and  asked  old  Ackley  if 
he  wanted  to  go  to  the  movies.  He  could  hear  me  all  right  through  the  shower  curtains, 
but  he  didn’t  answer  me  right  away.  He  was  the  kind  of  a  guy  that  hates  to  answer  you 
right  away.  Finally  he  came  over,  through  the  goddam  curtains,  and  stood  on  the  shower 
ledge  and  asked  who  was  going  besides  me.  He  always  had  to  know  who  was  going.  I 
swear,  if  that  guy  was  shipwrecked  somewhere,  and  you  rescued  him  in  a  goddam  boat, 
he’d  want  to  know  who  the  guy  was  that  was  rowing  it  before  he’d  even  get  in.  I  told  him 
Mai  Brossard  was  going.  He  said,  "That  bastard  .  .  .  All  right.  Wait  a  second."  You’d 
think  he  was  doing  you  a  big  favor. 

It  took  him  about  five  hours  to  get  ready.  While  he  was  doing  it,  I  went  over  to 
my  window  and  opened  it  and  packed  a  snowball  with  my  bare  hands.  The  snow  was 
very  good  for  packing.  I  didn’t  throw  it  at  anything,  though.  I  started  to  throw  it.  At  a  car 
that  was  parked  across  the  street.  But  I  changed  my  mind.  The  car  looked  so  nice  and 
white.  Then  I  started  to  throw  it  at  a  hydrant,  but  that  looked  too  nice  and  white,  too. 
Finally  I  didn’t  throw  it  at  anything.  All  I  did  was  close  the  window  and  walk  around  the 
room  with  the  snowball,  packing  it  harder.  A  little  while  later,  I  still  had  it  with  me  when 
I  and  Brossnad  and  Ackley  got  on  the  bus.  The  bus  driver  opened  the  doors  and  made  me 
throw  it  out.  I  told  him  I  wasn’t  going  to  chuck  it  at  anybody,  but  he  wouldn’t  believe  me. 
People  never  believe  you. 

Brossard  and  Ackley  both  had  seen  the  picture  that  was  playing,  so  all  we  did,  we 
just  had  a  couple  of  hamburgers  and  played  the  pinball  machine  for  a  little  while,  then 
took  the  bus  back  to  Pencey.  I  didn’t  care  about  not  seeing  the  movie,  anyway.  It  was 
supposed  to  be  a  comedy,  with  Cary  Grant  in  it,  and  all  that  crap.  Besides,  I’d  been  to  the 
movies  with  Brossard  and  Ackley  before.  They  both  laughed  like  hyenas  at  stuff  that 
wasn't  even  funny.  I  didn’t  even  enjoy  sitting  next  to  them  in  the  movies. 

It  was  only  about  a  quarter  to  nine  when  we  got  back  to  the  dorm.  Old  Brossard 
was  a  bridge  fiend,  and  he  started  looking  around  the  dorm  for  a  game.  Old  Ackley 
parked  himself  in  my  room,  just  for  a  change.  Only,  instead  of  sitting  on  the  arm  of 
Stradlater's  chair,  he  laid  down  on  my  bed,  with  his  face  right  on  my  pillow  and  all.  He 
started  talking  in  this  very  monotonous  voice,  and  picking  at  all  his  pimples.  I  dropped 
about  a  thousand  hints,  but  I  couldn’t  get  rid  of  him.  All  he  did  was  keep  talking  in  this 
very  monotonous  voice  about  some  babe  he  was  supposed  to  have  had  sexual  intercourse 
with  the  summer  before.  He'd  already  told  me  about  it  about  a  hundred  times.  Every  time 
he  told  it,  it  was  different.  One  minute  he’d  be  giving  it  to  her  in  his  cousin's  Buick,  the 
next  minute  he’d  be  giving  it  to  her  under  some  boardwalk.  It  was  all  a  lot  of  crap, 


naturally.  He  was  a  virgin  if  ever  I  saw  one.  I  doubt  if  he  ever  even  gave  anybody  a  feel. 
Anyway,  finally  I  had  to  come  right  out  and  tell  him  that  I  had  to  write  a  composition  for 
Stradlater,  and  that  he  had  to  clear  the  hell  out,  so  I  could  concentrate.  He  finally  did,  but 
he  took  his  time  about  it,  as  usual.  After  he  left,  I  put  on  my  pajamas  and  bathrobe  and 
my  old  hunting  hat,  and  started  writing  the  composition. 

The  thing  was,  I  couldn’t  think  of  a  room  or  a  house  or  anything  to  describe  the 
way  Stradlater  said  he  had  to  have.  I'm  not  too  crazy  about  describing  rooms  and  houses 
anyway.  So  what  I  did,  I  wrote  about  my  brother  Allie's  baseball  mitt.  It  was  a  very 
descriptive  subject.  It  really  was.  My  brother  Allie  had  this  left-handed  fielder's  mitt.  He 
was  left-handed.  The  thing  that  was  descriptive  about  it,  though,  was  that  he  had  poems 
written  all  over  the  fingers  and  the  pocket  and  everywhere.  In  green  ink.  He  wrote  them 
on  it  so  that  he’d  have  something  to  read  when  he  was  in  the  field  and  nobody  was  up  at 
bat.  He’s  dead  now.  He  got  leukemia  and  died  when  we  were  up  in  Maine,  on  July  18, 
1946.  You'd  have  liked  him.  He  was  two  years  younger  than  I  was,  but  he  was  about  fifty 
times  as  intelligent.  He  was  terrifically  intelligent.  His  teachers  were  always  writing 
letters  to  my  mother,  telling  her  what  a  pleasure  it  was  having  a  boy  like  Allie  in  their 
class.  And  they  weren’t  just  shooting  the  crap.  They  really  meant  it.  But  it  wasn’t  just  that 
he  was  the  most  intelligent  member  in  the  family.  He  was  also  the  nicest,  in  lots  of  ways. 
He  never  got  mad  at  anybody.  People  with  red  hair  are  supposed  to  get  mad  very  easily, 
but  Allie  never  did,  and  he  had  very  red  hair.  I’ll  tell  you  what  kind  of  red  hair  he  had.  I 
started  playing  golf  when  I  was  only  ten  years  old.  I  remember  once,  the  summer  I  was 
around  twelve,  teeing  off  and  all,  and  having  a  hunch  that  if  I  turned  around  all  of  a 
sudden,  I’d  see  Allie.  So  I  did,  and  sure  enough,  he  was  sitting  on  his  bike  outside  the 
fence— there  was  this  fence  that  went  all  around  the  course— and  he  was  sitting  there, 
about  a  hundred  and  fifty  yards  behind  me,  watching  me  tee  off.  That's  the  kind  of  red 
hair  he  had.  God,  he  was  a  nice  kid,  though.  He  used  to  laugh  so  hard  at  something  he 
thought  of  at  the  dinner  table  that  he  just  about  fell  off  his  chair.  I  was  only  thirteen,  and 
they  were  going  to  have  me  psychoanalyzed  and  all,  because  I  broke  all  the  windows  in 
the  garage.  I  don't  blame  them.  I  really  don't.  I  slept  in  the  garage  the  night  he  died,  and  I 
broke  all  the  goddam  windows  with  my  fist,  just  for  the  hell  of  it.  I  even  tried  to  break  all 
the  windows  on  the  station  wagon  we  had  that  summer,  but  my  hand  was  already  broken 
and  everything  by  that  time,  and  I  couldn't  do  it.  It  was  a  very  stupid  thing  to  do,  I’ll 
admit,  but  I  hardly  didn't  even  know  I  was  doing  it,  and  you  didn’t  know  Allie.  My  hand 
still  hurts  me  once  in  a  while  when  it  rains  and  all,  and  I  can't  make  a  real  fist  any  more— 
not  a  tight  one,  I  mean— but  outside  of  that  I  don’t  care  much.  I  mean  I'm  not  going  to  be  a 
goddam  surgeon  or  a  violinist  or  anything  anyway. 

Anyway,  that's  what  I  wrote  Stradlater's  composition  about.  Old  Allie's  baseball 
mitt.  I  happened  to  have  it  with  me,  in  my  suitcase,  so  I  got  it  out  and  copied  down  the 
poems  that  were  written  on  it.  All  I  had  to  do  was  change  Allie's  name  so  that  nobody 
would  know  it  was  my  brother  and  not  Stradlater's.  I  wasn’t  too  crazy  about  doing  it,  but  I 
couldn’t  think  of  anything  else  descriptive.  Besides,  I  sort  of  liked  writing  about  it.  It  took 
me  about  an  hour,  because  I  had  to  use  Stradlater's  lousy  typewriter,  and  it  kept  jamming 
on  me.  The  reason  I  didn’t  use  my  own  was  because  I’d  lent  it  to  a  guy  down  the  hall. 

It  was  around  ten-thirty,  I  guess,  when  I  finished  it.  I  wasn’t  tired,  though,  so  I 
looked  out  the  window  for  a  while.  It  wasn't  snowing  out  any  more,  but  every  once  in  a 
while  you  could  hear  a  car  somewhere  not  being  able  to  get  started.  You  could  also  hear 


old  Ackley  snoring.  Right  through  the  goddam  shower  curtains  you  could  hear  him.  He 
had  sinus  trouble  and  he  couldn't  breathe  too  hot  when  he  was  asleep.  That  guy  had  just 
about  everything.  Sinus  trouble,  pimples,  lousy  teeth,  halitosis,  crumby  fingernails.  You 
had  to  feel  a  little  sorry  for  the  crazy  sonuvabitch. 


6 


Some  things  are  hard  to  remember.  I'm  thinking  now  of  when  Stradlater  got  back 
from  his  date  with  Jane.  I  mean  I  can't  remember  exactly  what  I  was  doing  when  I  heard 
his  goddam  stupid  footsteps  coming  down  the  corridor.  I  probably  was  still  looking  out 
the  window,  but  I  swear  I  can't  remember.  I  was  so  damn  worried,  that's  why.  When  I 
really  worry  about  something,  I  don’t  just  fool  around.  I  even  have  to  go  to  the  bathroom 
when  I  worry  about  something.  Only,  I  don’t  go.  I'm  too  worried  to  go.  I  don’t  want  to 
interrupt  my  worrying  to  go.  If  you  knew  Stradlater,  you'd  have  been  worried,  too.  I'd 
double-dated  with  that  bastard  a  couple  of  times,  and  I  know  what  I'm  talking  about.  He 
was  unscrupulous.  He  really  was. 

Anyway,  the  corridor  was  all  linoleum  and  all,  and  you  could  hear  his  goddam 
footsteps  coming  right  towards  the  room.  I  don’t  even  remember  where  I  was  sitting  when 
he  came  in— at  the  window,  or  in  my  chair  or  his.  I  swear  I  can’t  remember. 

He  came  in  griping  about  how  cold  it  was  out.  Then  he  said,  "Where  the  hell  is 
everybody?  It's  like  a  goddam  morgue  around  here."  I  didn’t  even  bother  to  answer  him. 

If  he  was  so  goddam  stupid  not  to  realize  it  was  Saturday  night  and  everybody  was  out  or 
asleep  or  home  for  the  week  end,  I  wasn’t  going  to  break  my  neck  telling  him.  He  started 
getting  undressed.  He  didn’t  say  one  goddam  word  about  Jane.  Not  one.  Neither  did  1. 1 
just  watched  him.  All  he  did  was  thank  me  for  letting  him  wear  my  hound's-tooth.  He 
hung  it  up  on  a  hanger  and  put  it  in  the  closet. 

Then  when  he  was  taking  off  his  tie,  he  asked  me  if  I'd  written  his  goddam 
composition  for  him.  I  told  him  it  was  over  on  his  goddam  bed.  He  walked  over  and  read 
it  while  he  was  unbuttoning  his  shirt.  He  stood  there,  reading  it,  and  sort  of  stroking  his 
bare  chest  and  stomach,  with  this  very  stupid  expression  on  his  face.  He  was  always 
stroking  his  stomach  or  his  chest.  He  was  mad  about  himself. 

All  of  a  sudden,  he  said,  "For  Chrissake,  Holden.  This  is  about  a  goddam  baseball 

glove." 

"So  what?"  I  said.  Cold  as  hell. 

"Wuddaya  mean  so  what?  I  told  ya  it  had  to  be  about  a  goddam  room  or  a  house 
or  something." 

"You  said  it  had  to  be  descriptive.  What  the  hell's  the  difference  if  it's  about  a 
baseball  glove?" 

"God  damn  it."  He  was  sore  as  hell.  He  was  really  furious.  "You  always  do 
everything  backasswards."  He  looked  at  me.  "No  wonder  you’re  flunking  the  hell  out  of 
here,"  he  said.  "You  don’t  do  one  damn  thing  the  way  you're  supposed  to.  I  mean  it.  Not 
one  damn  thing." 

"All  right,  give  it  back  to  me,  then,"  I  said.  I  went  over  and  pulled  it  right  out  of 
his  goddam  hand.  Then  I  tore  it  up. 

"What  the  hellja  do  that  for?"  he  said. 


I  didn’t  even  answer  him.  I  just  threw  the  pieces  in  the  wastebasket.  Then  I  lay 
down  on  my  bed,  and  we  both  didn’t  say  anything  for  a  long  time.  He  got  all  undressed, 
down  to  his  shorts,  and  I  lay  on  my  bed  and  lit  a  cigarette.  You  weren’t  allowed  to  smoke 
in  the  donn,  but  you  could  do  it  late  at  night  when  everybody  was  asleep  or  out  and 
nobody  could  smell  the  smoke.  Besides,  I  did  it  to  annoy  Stradlater.  It  drove  him  crazy 
when  you  broke  any  rules.  He  never  smoked  in  the  dorm.  It  was  only  me. 

He  still  didn’t  say  one  single  solitary  word  about  Jane.  So  finally  I  said,  "You're 
back  pretty  goddam  late  if  she  only  signed  out  for  nine-thirty.  Did  you  make  her  be  late 
signing  in?" 

He  was  sitting  on  the  edge  of  his  bed,  cutting  his  goddam  toenails,  when  I  asked 
him  that.  "Coupla  minutes,"  he  said.  "Who  the  hell  signs  out  for  nine-thirty  on  a  Saturday 
night?"  God,  how  I  hated  him. 

"Did  you  go  to  New  York?"  I  said. 

"Ya  crazy?  How  the  hell  could  we  go  to  New  York  if  she  only  signed  out  for 
nine-thirty?" 

"That's  tough." 

He  looked  up  at  me.  "Listen,"  he  said,  "if  you're  gonna  smoke  in  the  room,  how 
'bout  going  down  to  the  can  and  do  it?  You  may  be  getting  the  hell  out  of  here,  but  I  have 
to  stick  around  long  enough  to  graduate." 

I  ignored  him.  I  really  did.  I  went  right  on  smoking  like  a  madman.  All  I  did  was 
sort  of  turn  over  on  my  side  and  watched  him  cut  his  damn  toenails.  What  a  school.  You 
were  always  watching  somebody  cut  their  damn  toenails  or  squeeze  their  pimples  or 
something. 

"Did  you  give  her  my  regards?"  I  asked  him. 

"Yeah." 

The  hell  he  did,  the  bastard. 

"What’ d  she  say?"  I  said.  "Did  you  ask  her  if  she  still  keeps  all  her  kings  in  the 
back  row?" 

"No,  I  didn't  ask  her.  What  the  hell  ya  think  we  did  all  night— play  checkers,  for 
Chrissake?" 

I  didn’t  even  answer  him.  God,  how  I  hated  him. 

"If  you  didn’t  go  to  New  York,  where’d  ya  go  with  her?"  I  asked  him,  after  a  little 
while.  I  could  hardly  keep  my  voice  from  shaking  all  over  the  place.  Boy,  was  I  getting 
nervous.  I  just  had  a  feeling  something  had  gone  funny. 

He  was  finished  cutting  his  damn  toenails.  So  he  got  up  from  the  bed,  in  just  his 
damn  shorts  and  all,  and  started  getting  very  damn  playful.  He  came  over  to  my  bed  and 
started  leaning  over  me  and  taking  these  playful  as  hell  socks  at  my  shoulder.  "Cut  it 
out,"  I  said.  "Where’d  you  go  with  her  if  you  didn’t  go  to  New  York?" 

"Nowhere.  We  just  sat  in  the  goddam  car."  He  gave  me  another  one  of  those 
playtul  stupid  little  socks  on  the  shoulder. 

"Cut  it  out,"  I  said.  "Whose  car?" 

"Ed  Banky's." 

Ed  Banky  was  the  basketball  coach  at  Pencey.  Old  Stradlater  was  one  of  his  pets, 
because  he  was  the  center  on  the  team,  and  Ed  Banky  always  let  him  borrow  his  car  when 
he  wanted  it.  It  wasn’t  allowed  for  students  to  borrow  faculty  guys'  cars,  but  all  the 


athletic  bastards  stuck  together.  In  every  school  I've  gone  to,  all  the  athletic  bastards  stick 
together. 

Stradlater  kept  taking  these  shadow  punches  down  at  my  shoulder.  He  had  his 
toothbrush  in  his  hand,  and  he  put  it  in  his  mouth.  "What’d  you  do?"  I  said.  "Give  her  the 
time  in  Ed  Banky's  goddam  car?"  My  voice  was  shaking  something  awful. 

"What  a  thing  to  say.  Want  me  to  wash  your  mouth  out  with  soap?" 

"Did  you?" 

"That's  a  professional  secret,  buddy." 

This  next  part  I  don't  remember  so  hot.  All  I  know  is  I  got  up  from  the  bed,  like  I 
was  going  down  to  the  can  or  something,  and  then  I  tried  to  sock  him,  with  all  my  might, 
right  smack  in  the  toothbrush,  so  it  would  split  his  goddam  throat  open.  Only,  I  missed.  I 
didn't  connect.  All  I  did  was  sort  of  get  him  on  the  side  of  the  head  or  something.  It 
probably  hurt  him  a  little  bit,  but  not  as  much  as  I  wanted.  It  probably  would've  hurt  him 
a  lot,  but  I  did  it  with  my  right  hand,  and  I  can't  make  a  good  fist  with  that  hand.  On 
account  of  that  injury  I  told  you  about. 

Anyway,  the  next  thing  I  knew,  I  was  on  the  goddam  floor  and  he  was  sitting  on 
my  chest,  with  his  face  all  red.  That  is,  he  had  his  goddam  knees  on  my  chest,  and  he 
weighed  about  a  ton.  He  had  hold  of  my  wrists,  too,  so  I  couldn't  take  another  sock  at 
him.  I’d've  killed  him. 

"What  the  hell's  the  matter  with  you?"  he  kept  saying,  and  his  stupid  race  kept 
getting  redder  and  redder. 

"Get  your  lousy  knees  off  my  chest,"  I  told  him.  I  was  almost  bawling.  I  really 
was.  "Go  on,  get  off  a  me,  ya  crumby  bastard." 

He  wouldn’t  do  it,  though.  He  kept  holding  onto  my  wrists  and  I  kept  calling  him 
a  sonuvabitch  and  all,  for  around  ten  hours.  I  can  hardly  even  remember  what  all  I  said  to 
him.  I  told  him  he  thought  he  could  give  the  time  to  anybody  he  felt  like.  I  told  him  he 
didn't  even  care  if  a  girl  kept  all  her  kings  in  the  back  row  or  not,  and  the  reason  he  didn’t 
care  was  because  he  was  a  goddam  stupid  moron.  He  hated  it  when  you  called  a  moron. 
All  morons  hate  it  when  you  call  them  a  moron. 

"Shut  up,  now,  Holden,"  he  said  with  his  big  stupid  red  face,  "just  shut  up,  now." 

"You  don't  even  know  if  her  first  name  is  Jane  or  Jean,  ya  goddam  moron!" 

"Now,  shut  up,  Holden,  God  damn  it— I'm  warning  ya,"  he  said— I  really  had  him 
going.  "If  you  don't  shut  up,  I'm  gonna  slam  ya  one." 

"Get  your  dirty  stinking  moron  knees  off  my  chest." 

"If  I  letcha  up,  will  you  keep  your  mouth  shut?" 

I  didn’t  even  answer  him. 

He  said  it  over  again.  "Holden.  If  I  letcha  up,  willya  keep  your  mouth  shut?" 

"Yes." 

He  got  up  off  me,  and  I  got  up,  too.  My  chest  hurt  like  hell  from  his  dirty  knees. 
"You're  a  dirty  stupid  sonuvabitch  of  a  moron,"  I  told  him. 

That  got  him  really  mad.  He  shook  his  big  stupid  finger  in  my  face.  "Holden,  God 
damn  it,  I'm  warning  you,  now.  For  the  last  time.  If  you  don't  keep  your  yap  shut,  I'm 
gonna—" 

"Why  should  I?"  I  said— I  was  practically  yelling.  "That’s  just  the  trouble  with  all 
you  morons.  You  never  want  to  discuss  anything.  That's  the  way  you  can  always  tell  a 
moron.  They  never  want  to  discuss  anything  intellig — " 


Then  he  really  let  one  go  at  me,  and  the  next  thing  I  knew  I  was  on  the  goddam 
floor  again.  I  don’t  remember  if  he  knocked  me  out  or  not,  but  I  don’t  think  so.  It's  pretty 
hard  to  knock  a  guy  out,  except  in  the  goddam  movies.  But  my  nose  was  bleeding  all 
over  the  place.  When  I  looked  up  old  Stradlater  was  standing  practically  right  on  top  of 
me.  He  had  his  goddam  toilet  kit  under  his  arm.  "Why  the  hell  don’tcha  shut  up  when  I 
tellya  to?"  he  said.  He  sounded  pretty  nervous.  He  probably  was  scared  he’d  fractured  my 
skull  or  something  when  I  hit  the  floor.  It's  too  bad  I  didn’t.  "You  asked  for  it,  God  damn 
it,"  he  said.  Boy,  did  he  look  worried. 

I  didn’t  even  bother  to  get  up.  I  just  lay  there  in  the  floor  for  a  while,  and  kept 
calling  him  a  moron  sonuvabitch.  I  was  so  mad,  I  was  practically  bawling. 

"Listen.  Go  wash  your  face,"  Stradlater  said.  "Ya  hear  me?" 

I  told  him  to  go  wash  his  own  moron  face— which  was  a  pretty  childish  thing  to 
say,  but  I  was  mad  as  hell.  I  told  him  to  stop  off  on  the  way  to  the  can  and  give  Mrs. 
Schmidt  the  time.  Mrs.  Schmidt  was  the  janitor’s  wife.  She  was  around  sixty-five. 

I  kept  sitting  there  on  the  floor  till  I  heard  old  Stradlater  close  the  door  and  go 
down  the  corridor  to  the  can.  Then  I  got  up.  I  couldn’t  find  my  goddam  hunting  hat 
anywhere.  Finally  I  found  it.  It  was  under  the  bed.  I  put  it  on,  and  turned  the  old  peak 
around  to  the  back,  the  way  I  liked  it,  and  then  I  went  over  and  took  a  look  at  my  stupid 
face  in  the  mirror.  You  never  saw  such  gore  in  your  life.  I  had  blood  all  over  my  mouth 
and  chin  and  even  on  my  pajamas  and  bath  robe.  It  partly  scared  me  and  it  partly 
fascinated  me.  All  that  blood  and  all  sort  of  made  me  look  tough.  I’d  only  been  in  about 
two  fights  in  my  life,  and  I  lost  both  of  them.  I'm  not  too  tough.  I'm  a  pacifist,  if  you  want 
to  know  the  truth. 

I  had  a  feeling  old  Ackley'd  probably  heard  all  the  racket  and  was  awake.  So  I 
went  through  the  shower  curtains  into  his  room,  just  to  see  what  the  hell  he  was  doing.  I 
hardly  ever  went  over  to  his  room.  It  always  had  a  funny  stink  in  it,  because  he  was  so 
crumby  in  his  personal  habits. 


7 


A  tiny  bit  of  light  came  through  the  shower  curtains  and  all  from  our  room,  and  I 
could  see  him  lying  in  bed.  I  knew  damn  well  he  was  wide  awake.  "Ackley?"  I  said. 
"Y'awake?" 

"Yeah." 

It  was  pretty  dark,  and  I  stepped  on  somebody's  shoe  on  the  floor  and  damn  near 
fell  on  my  head.  Ackley  sort  of  sat  up  in  bed  and  leaned  on  his  arm.  He  had  a  lot  of  white 
stuff  on  his  face,  for  his  pimples.  He  looked  sort  of  spooky  in  the  dark.  "What  the  hellya 
doing,  anyway?"  I  said. 

"Wuddaya  mean  what  the  hell  am  I  doing?  I  was  tryna  sleep  before  you  guys 
started  making  all  that  noise.  What  the  hell  was  the  fight  about,  anyhow?" 

"Where's  the  light?"  I  couldn’t  find  the  light.  I  was  sliding  my  hand  all  over  the 

wall. 

"Wuddaya  want  the  light  for?  .  .  .  Right  next  to  your  hand." 

I  finally  found  the  switch  and  turned  It  on.  Old  Ackley  put  his  hand  up  so  the  light 
wouldn’t  hurt  his  eyes. 


"Jesus!"  he  said.  "What  the  hell  happened  to  you?"  He  meant  all  the  blood  and  all. 

"I  had  a  little  goddam  tiff  with  Stradlater,"  I  said.  Then  I  sat  down  on  the  floor. 
They  never  had  any  chairs  in  their  room.  I  don’t  know  what  the  hell  they  did  with  their 
chairs.  "Listen,"  I  said,  "do  you  feel  like  playing  a  little  Canasta?"  He  was  a  Canasta 
fiend. 

"You're  still  bleeding,  for  Chrissake.  You  better  put  something  on  it." 

"It'll  stop.  Listen.  Ya  wanna  play  a  little  Canasta  or  don’tcha?" 

"Canasta,  for  Chrissake.  Do  you  know  what  time  it  is,  by  any  chance?" 

"It  isn't  late.  It's  only  around  eleven,  eleven-thirty." 

"Only  around!"  Ackley  said.  "Listen.  I  gotta  get  up  and  go  to  Mass  in  the 
morning,  for  Chrissake.  You  guys  start  hollering  and  fighting  in  the  middle  of  the 
goddam— What  the  hell  was  the  fight  about,  anyhow?" 

"It's  a  long  story.  I  don’t  wanna  bore  ya,  Ackley.  I'm  thinking  of  your  welfare,"  I 
told  him.  I  never  discussed  my  personal  life  with  him.  In  the  first  place,  he  was  even 
more  stupid  than  Stradlater.  Stradlater  was  a  goddam  genius  next  to  Ackley.  "Hey,"  I 
said,  "is  it  okay  if  I  sleep  in  Ely's  bed  tonight?  He  won’t  be  back  till  tomorrow  night,  will 
he?"  I  knew  damn  well  he  wouldn’t.  Ely  went  home  damn  near  every  week  end. 

"I  don’t  know  when  the  hell  he's  coming  back,"  Ackley  said. 

Boy,  did  that  annoy  me.  "What  the  hell  do  you  mean  you  don’t  know  when  he's 
coming  back?  He  never  comes  back  till  Sunday  night,  does  he?" 

"No,  but  for  Chrissake,  I  can't  just  tell  somebody  they  can  sleep  in  his  goddam 
bed  if  they  want  to." 

That  killed  me.  I  reached  up  from  where  I  was  sitting  on  the  floor  and  patted  him 
on  the  goddam  shoulder.  "You're  a  prince,  Ackley  kid,"  I  said.  "You  know  that?" 

"No,  I  mean  it— I  can’t  just  tell  somebody  they  can  sleep  in—" 

"You're  a  real  prince.  You're  a  gentleman  and  a  scholar,  kid,"  I  said.  He  really 
was,  too.  "Do  you  happen  to  have  any  cigarettes,  by  any  chance?— Say  'no'  or  I'll  drop 
dead." 

"No,  I  don't,  as  a  matter  of  fact.  Listen,  what  the  hell  was  the  fight  about?" 

I  didn’t  answer  him.  All  I  did  was,  I  got  up  and  went  over  and  looked  out  the 
window.  I  felt  so  lonesome,  all  of  a  sudden.  I  almost  wished  I  was  dead. 

"What  the  hell  was  the  fight  about,  anyhow?"  Ackley  said,  for  about  the  fiftieth 
time.  He  certainly  was  a  bore  about  that. 

"About  you,"  I  said. 

"About  me,  for  Chrissake?" 

"Yeah.  I  was  defending  your  goddam  honor.  Stradlater  said  you  had  a  lousy 
personality.  I  couldn’t  let  him  get  away  with  that  stuff." 

That  got  him  excited.  "He  did?  No  kidding?  He  did?" 

I  told  him  I  was  only  kidding,  and  then  I  went  over  and  laid  down  on  Ely's  bed. 
Boy,  did  I  feel  rotten.  I  felt  so  damn  lonesome. 

"This  room  stinks,"  I  said.  "I  can  smell  your  socks  from  way  over  here.  Don'tcha 
ever  send  them  to  the  laundry?" 

"If  you  don’t  like  it,  you  know  what  you  can  do,"  Ackley  said.  What  a  witty  guy. 
"How  'bout  turning  off  the  goddam  light?" 

I  didn’t  turn  it  off  right  away,  though.  I  just  kept  laying  there  on  Ely's  bed, 
thinking  about  Jane  and  all.  It  just  drove  me  stark  staring  mad  when  I  thought  about  her 


and  Stradlater  parked  somewhere  in  that  fat-assed  Ed  Banky's  car.  Every  time  I  thought 
about  it,  I  felt  like  jumping  out  the  window.  The  thing  is,  you  didn’t  know  Stradlater.  I 
knew  him.  Most  guys  at  Pencey  just  talked  about  having  sexual  intercourse  with  girls  all 
the  time— like  Ackley,  for  instance— but  old  Stradlater  really  did  it.  I  was  personally 
acquainted  with  at  least  two  girls  he  gave  the  time  to.  That’s  the  truth. 

"Tell  me  the  story  of  your  fascinating  life,  Ackley  kid,"  I  said. 

"How  ’bout  turning  off  the  goddam  light?  I  gotta  get  up  for  Mass  in  the  morning." 

I  got  up  and  turned  it  off,  if  it  made  him  happy.  Then  I  laid  down  on  Ely's  bed 

again. 

"What' re  ya  gonna  do— sleep  in  Ely's  bed?"  Ackley  said.  He  was  the  perfect  host, 

boy. 

"I  may.  I  may  not.  Don’t  worry  about  it." 

"I'm  not  worried  about  it.  Only,  I’d  hate  like  hell  if  Ely  came  in  all  of  a  sudden  and 
found  some  guy—" 

"Relax.  I'm  not  gonna  sleep  here.  I  wouldn’t  abuse  your  goddam  hospitality." 

A  couple  of  minutes  later,  he  was  snoring  like  mad.  I  kept  laying  there  in  the  dark 
anyway,  though,  trying  not  to  think  about  old  Jane  and  Stradlater  in  that  goddam  Ed 
Banky's  car.  But  it  was  almost  impossible.  The  trouble  was,  I  knew  that  guy  Stradlater's 
technique.  That  made  it  even  worse.  We  once  double-dated,  in  Ed  Banky's  car,  and 
Stradlater  was  in  the  back,  with  his  date,  and  I  was  in  the  front  with  mine.  What  a 
technique  that  guy  had.  What  he’d  do  was,  he’d  start  snowing  his  date  in  this  very  quiet, 
sincere  voice— like  as  if  he  wasn't  only  a  very  handsome  guy  but  a  nice,  sincere  guy,  too.  I 
damn  near  puked,  listening  to  him.  His  date  kept  saying,  "No— please.  Please,  don’t. 
Please."  But  old  Stradlater  kept  snowing  her  in  this  Abraham  Lincoln,  sincere  voice,  and 
finally  there'd  be  this  terrific  silence  in  the  back  of  the  car.  It  was  really  embarrassing.  I 
don’t  think  he  gave  that  girl  the  time  that  night— but  damn  near.  Damn  near. 

While  I  was  laying  there  trying  not  to  think,  I  heard  old  Stradlater  come  back 
from  the  can  and  go  in  our  room.  You  could  hear  him  putting  away  his  crumby  toilet 
articles  and  all,  and  opening  the  window.  He  was  a  fresh-air  fiend.  Then,  a  little  while 
later,  he  turned  off  the  light.  He  didn’t  even  look  around  to  see  where  I  was  at. 

It  was  even  depressing  out  in  the  street.  You  couldn’t  even  hear  any  cars  any 
more.  I  got  feeling  so  lonesome  and  rotten,  I  even  felt  like  waking  Ackley  up. 

"Hey,  Ackley,"  I  said,  in  sort  of  a  whisper,  so  Stradlater  couldn’t  hear  me  through 
the  shower  curtain. 

Ackley  didn’t  hear  me,  though. 

"Hey,  Ackley!" 

He  still  didn’t  hear  me.  He  slept  like  a  rock. 

"Hey,  Ackley!" 

He  heard  that,  all  right. 

"What  the  hell's  the  matter  with  you?"  he  said.  "I  was  asleep,  for  Chrissake." 

"Listen.  What's  the  routine  on  joining  a  monastery?"  I  asked  him.  I  was  sort  of 
toying  with  the  idea  of  joining  one.  "Do  you  have  to  be  a  Catholic  and  all?" 

"Certainly  you  have  to  be  a  Catholic.  You  bastard,  did  you  wake  me  just  to  ask 
me  a  dumb  ques— " 


"Aah,  go  back  to  sleep.  I'm  not  gonna  join  one  anyway.  The  kind  of  luck  I  have, 
I’d  probably  join  one  with  all  the  wrong  kind  of  monks  in  it.  All  stupid  bastards.  Or  just 
bastards." 

When  I  said  that,  old  Ackley  sat  way  the  hell  up  in  bed.  "Listen,"  he  said,  "I  don’t 
care  what  you  say  about  me  or  anything,  but  if  you  start  making  cracks  about  my  goddam 
religion,  for  Chrissake— " 

"Relax,"  I  said.  "Nobody's  making  any  cracks  about  your  goddam  religion."  I  got 
up  off  Ely's  bed,  and  started  towards  the  door.  I  didn’t  want  to  hang  around  in  that  stupid 
atmosphere  any  more.  I  stopped  on  the  way,  though,  and  picked  up  Ackley's  hand,  and 
gave  him  a  big,  phony  handshake.  He  pulled  it  away  from  me.  "What's  the  idea?"  he  said. 

"No  idea.  I  just  want  to  thank  you  for  being  such  a  goddam  prince,  that's  all,"  I 
said.  I  said  it  in  this  very  sincere  voice.  "You're  aces,  Ackley  kid,"  I  said.  "You  know 
that?" 

"Wise  guy.  Someday  somebody's  gonna  bash  your—" 

I  didn’t  even  bother  to  listen  to  him.  I  shut  the  damn  door  and  went  out  in  the 
corridor. 

Everybody  was  asleep  or  out  or  home  for  the  week  end,  and  it  was  very,  very 
quiet  and  depressing  in  the  corridor.  There  was  this  empty  box  of  Kolynos  toothpaste 
outside  Leahy  and  Hoffman's  door,  and  while  I  walked  down  towards  the  stairs,  I  kept 
giving  it  a  boot  with  this  sheep-lined  slipper  I  had  on.  What  I  thought  I’d  do,  I  thought  I 
might  go  down  and  see  what  old  Mai  Brossard  was  doing.  But  all  of  a  sudden,  I  changed 
my  mind.  All  of  a  sudden,  I  decided  what  I’d  really  do.  I’d  get  the  hell  out  of  Pencey— 
right  that  same  night  and  all.  I  mean  not  wait  till  Wednesday  or  anything.  I  just  didn’t 
want  to  hang  around  any  more.  It  made  me  too  sad  and  lonesome.  So  what  I  decided  to 
do,  I  decided  I’d  take  a  room  in  a  hotel  in  New  York— some  very  inexpensive  hotel  and 
all— and  just  take  it  easy  till  Wednesday.  Then,  on  Wednesday,  I’d  go  home  all  rested  up 
and  feeling  swell.  I  figured  my  parents  probably  wouldn’t  get  old  Thurmer's  letter  saying 
I’d  been  given  the  ax  till  maybe  Tuesday  or  Wednesday.  I  didn’t  want  to  go  home  or 
anything  till  they  got  it  and  thoroughly  digested  it  and  all.  I  didn’t  want  to  be  around 
when  they  first  got  it.  My  mother  gets  very  hysterical.  She's  not  too  bad  after  she  gets 
something  thoroughly  digested,  though.  Besides,  I  sort  of  needed  a  little  vacation.  My 
nerves  were  shot.  They  really  were. 

Anyway,  that's  what  I  decided  I’d  do.  So  I  went  back  to  the  room  and  turned  on 
the  light,  to  start  packing  and  all.  I  already  had  quite  a  few  things  packed.  Old  Stradlater 
didn't  even  wake  up.  I  lit  a  cigarette  and  got  all  dressed  and  then  I  packed  these  two 
Gladstones  I  have.  It  only  took  me  about  two  minutes.  I'm  a  very  rapid  packer. 

One  thing  about  packing  depressed  me  a  little.  I  had  to  pack  these  brand-new  ice 
skates  my  mother  had  practically  just  sent  me  a  couple  of  days  before.  That  depressed 
me.  I  could  see  my  mother  going  in  Spaulding's  and  asking  the  salesman  a  million  dopy 
questions— and  here  I  was  getting  the  ax  again.  It  made  me  feel  pretty  sad.  She  bought  me 
the  wrong  kind  of  skates— I  wanted  racing  skates  and  she  bought  hockey— but  it  made  me 
sad  anyway.  Almost  every  time  somebody  gives  me  a  present,  it  ends  up  making  me  sad. 

After  I  got  all  packed,  I  sort  of  counted  my  dough.  I  don’t  remember  exactly  how 
much  I  had,  but  I  was  pretty  loaded.  My  grandmother’d  just  sent  me  a  wad  about  a  week 
before.  I  have  this  grandmother  that's  quite  lavish  with  her  dough.  She  doesn’t  have  all 
her  marbles  any  more— she's  old  as  hell— and  she  keeps  sending  me  money  for  my 


birthday  about  four  times  a  year.  Anyway,  even  though  I  was  pretty  loaded,  I  figured  I 
could  always  use  a  few  extra  bucks.  You  never  know.  So  what  I  did  was,  I  went  down  the 
hail  and  woke  up  Frederick  Woodruff,  this  guy  I’d  lent  my  typewriter  to.  I  asked  him  how 
much  he’d  give  me  for  it.  He  was  a  pretty  wealthy  guy.  He  said  he  didn’t  know.  He  said 
he  didn’t  much  want  to  buy  it.  Finally  he  bought  it,  though.  It  cost  about  ninety  bucks, 
and  all  he  bought  it  for  was  twenty.  He  was  sore  because  I’d  woke  him  up. 

When  I  was  all  set  to  go,  when  I  had  my  bags  and  all,  I  stood  for  a  while  next  to 
the  stairs  and  took  a  last  look  down  the  goddam  corridor.  I  was  sort  of  crying.  I  don’t 
know  why.  I  put  my  red  hunting  hat  on,  and  turned  the  peak  around  to  the  back,  the  way  I 
liked  it,  and  then  I  yelled  at  the  top  of  my  goddam  voice,  "Sleep  tight,  ya  morons!"  I’ll  bet 
I  woke  up  every  bastard  on  the  whole  floor.  Then  I  got  the  hell  out.  Some  stupid  guy  had 
thrown  peanut  shells  all  over  the  stairs,  and  I  damn  near  broke  my  crazy  neck. 


8 


It  was  too  late  to  call  up  for  a  cab  or  anything,  so  I  walked  the  whole  way  to  the 
station.  It  wasn't  too  far,  but  it  was  cold  as  hell,  and  the  snow  made  it  hard  for  walking, 
and  my  Gladstones  kept  banging  hell  out  of  my  legs.  I  sort  of  enjoyed  the  air  and  all, 
though.  The  only  trouble  was,  the  cold  made  my  nose  hurt,  and  right  under  my  upper  lip, 
where  old  Stradlater’d  laid  one  on  me.  He’d  smacked  my  lip  right  on  my  teeth,  and  it  was 
pretty  sore.  My  ears  were  nice  and  warm,  though.  That  hat  I  bought  had  earlaps  in  it,  and 
I  put  them  on— I  didn’t  give  a  damn  how  I  looked.  Nobody  was  around  anyway. 
Everybody  was  in  the  sack. 

I  was  quite  lucky  when  I  got  to  the  station,  because  I  only  had  to  wait  about  ten 
minutes  for  a  train.  While  I  waited,  I  got  some  snow  in  my  hand  and  washed  my  face 
with  it.  I  still  had  quite  a  bit  of  blood  on. 

Usually  I  like  riding  on  trains,  especially  at  night,  with  the  lights  on  and  the 
windows  so  black,  and  one  of  those  guys  coming  up  the  aisle  selling  coffee  and 
sandwiches  and  magazines.  I  usually  buy  a  ham  sandwich  and  about  four  magazines.  If 
I’m  on  a  train  at  night,  I  can  usually  even  read  one  of  those  dumb  stories  in  a  magazine 
without  puking.  You  know.  One  of  those  stories  with  a  lot  of  phony,  lean-jawed  guys 
named  David  in  it,  and  a  lot  of  phony  girls  named  Linda  or  Marcia  that  are  always 
lighting  all  the  goddam  Davids'  pipes  for  them.  I  can  even  read  one  of  those  lousy  stories 
on  a  train  at  night,  usually.  But  this  time,  it  was  different.  I  just  didn’t  feel  like  it.  I  just 
sort  of  sat  and  not  did  anything.  All  I  did  was  take  off  my  hunting  hat  and  put  it  in  my 
pocket. 

All  of  a  sudden,  this  lady  got  on  at  Trenton  and  sat  down  next  to  me.  Practically 
the  whole  car  was  empty,  because  it  was  pretty  late  and  all,  but  she  sat  down  next  to  me, 
instead  of  an  empty  seat,  because  she  had  this  big  bag  with  her  and  I  was  sitting  in  the 
front  seat.  She  stuck  the  bag  right  out  in  the  middle  of  the  aisle,  where  the  conductor  and 
everybody  could  trip  over  it.  She  had  these  orchids  on,  like  she’d  just  been  to  a  big  party 
or  something.  She  was  around  forty  or  forty-five,  I  guess,  but  she  was  very  good  looking. 
Women  kill  me.  They  really  do.  I  don’t  mean  I'm  oversexed  or  anything  like  that— 
although  I  am  quite  sexy.  I  just  like  them,  I  mean.  They’re  always  leaving  their  goddam 
bags  out  in  the  middle  of  the  aisle. 


Anyway,  we  were  sitting  there,  and  all  of  a  sudden  she  said  to  me,  "Excuse  me, 
but  isn't  that  a  Pencey  Prep  sticker?"  She  was  looking  up  at  my  suitcases,  up  on  the  rack. 

"Yes,  it  is,"  I  said.  She  was  right.  I  did  have  a  goddam  Pencey  sticker  on  one  of 
my  Gladstones.  Very  corny,  I'll  admit. 

"Oh,  do  you  go  to  Pencey?"  she  said.  She  had  a  nice  voice.  A  nice  telephone 
voice,  mostly.  She  should've  carried  a  goddam  telephone  around  with  her. 

"Yes,  I  do,"  I  said. 

"Oh,  how  lovely!  Perhaps  you  know  my  son,  then,  Ernest  Morrow?  He  goes  to 
Pencey." 

"Yes,  I  do.  He's  in  my  class." 

Her  son  was  doubtless  the  biggest  bastard  that  ever  went  to  Pencey,  in  the  whole 
crumby  history  of  the  school.  He  was  always  going  down  the  corridor,  after  he’d  had  a 
shower,  snapping  his  soggy  old  wet  towel  at  people's  asses.  That's  exactly  the  kind  of  a 
guy  he  was. 

"Oh,  how  nice!"  the  lady  said.  But  not  corny.  She  was  just  nice  and  all.  "I  must 
tell  Ernest  we  met,"  she  said.  "May  I  ask  your  name,  dear?" 

"Rudolf  Schmidt,"  I  told  her.  I  didn’t  feel  like  giving  her  my  whole  life  history. 
Rudolf  Schmidt  was  the  name  of  the  janitor  of  our  dorm. 

"Do  you  like  Pencey?"  she  asked  me. 

"Pencey?  It's  not  too  bad.  It's  not  paradise  or  anything,  but  it's  as  good  as  most 
schools.  Some  of  the  faculty  are  pretty  conscientious." 

"Ernest  just  adores  it." 

"I  know  he  does,"  I  said.  Then  I  started  shooting  the  old  crap  around  a  little  bit. 
"He  adapts  himself  very  well  to  things.  He  really  does.  I  mean  he  really  knows  how  to 
adapt  himself." 

"Do  you  think  so?"  she  asked  me.  She  sounded  interested  as  hell. 

"Ernest?  Sure,"  I  said.  Then  I  watched  her  take  off  her  gloves.  Boy,  was  she  lousy 
with  rocks. 

"I  just  broke  a  nail,  getting  out  of  a  cab,"  she  said.  She  looked  up  at  me  and  sort  of 
smiled.  She  had  a  terrifically  nice  smile.  She  really  did.  Most  people  have  hardly  any 
smile  at  all,  or  a  lousy  one.  "Ernest's  father  and  I  sometimes  worry  about  him,"  she  said. 
"We  sometimes  feel  he's  not  a  terribly  good  mixer." 

"How  do  you  mean?" 

"Well.  He's  a  very  sensitive  boy.  He's  really  never  been  a  terribly  good  mixer  with 
other  boys.  Perhaps  he  takes  things  a  little  more  seriously  than  he  should  at  his  age." 

Sensitive.  That  killed  me.  That  guy  Morrow  was  about  as  sensitive  as  a  goddam 
toilet  seat. 

I  gave  her  a  good  look.  She  didn’t  look  like  any  dope  to  me.  She  looked  like  she 
might  have  a  pretty  damn  good  idea  what  a  bastard  she  was  the  mother  of.  But  you  can’t 
always  tell— with  somebody's  mother,  I  mean.  Mothers  are  all  slightly  insane.  The  thing 
is,  though,  I  liked  old  Morrow's  mother.  She  was  all  right.  "Would  you  care  for  a 
cigarette?"  I  asked  her. 

She  looked  all  around.  "I  don’t  believe  this  is  a  smoker,  Rudolf,"  she  said.  Rudolf. 
That  killed  me. 

"That's  all  right.  We  can  smoke  till  they  start  screaming  at  us,"  I  said.  She  took  a 
cigarette  off  me,  and  I  gave  her  a  light. 


She  looked  nice,  smoking.  She  inhaled  and  all,  but  she  didn’t  wolf  the  smoke 
down,  the  way  most  women  around  her  age  do.  She  had  a  lot  of  charm.  She  had  quite  a 
lot  of  sex  appeal,  too,  if  you  really  want  to  know. 

She  was  looking  at  me  sort  of  funny.  I  may  be  wrong  but  I  believe  your  nose  is 
bleeding,  dear,  she  said,  all  of  a  sudden. 

I  nodded  and  took  out  my  handkerchief.  "I  got  hit  with  a  snowball,"  I  said.  "One 
of  those  very  icy  ones."  I  probably  would've  told  her  what  really  happened,  but  it 
would've  taken  too  long.  I  liked  her,  though.  I  was  beginning  to  feel  sort  of  sorry  I’d  told 
her  my  name  was  Rudolf  Schmidt.  "Old  Ernie,"  I  said.  "He's  one  of  the  most  popular 
boys  at  Pencey.  Did  you  know  that?" 

"No,  I  didn't." 

I  nodded.  "It  really  took  everybody  quite  a  long  time  to  get  to  know  him.  He’s  a 
funny  guy.  A  strange  guy,  in  lots  of  ways— know  what  I  mean?  Like  when  I  first  met  him. 
When  I  first  met  him,  I  thought  he  was  kind  of  a  snobbish  person.  That’s  what  I  thought. 
But  he  isn’t.  He’s  just  got  this  very  original  personality  that  takes  you  a  little  while  to  get 
to  know  him." 

Old  Mrs.  Morrow  didn’t  say  anything,  but  boy,  you  should’ve  seen  her.  I  had  her 
glued  to  her  seat.  You  take  somebody's  mother,  all  they  want  to  hear  about  is  what  a  hot- 
shot  their  son  is. 

Then  I  really  started  chucking  the  old  crap  around.  "Did  he  tell  you  about  the 
elections?"  I  asked  her.  "The  class  elections?" 

She  shook  her  head.  I  had  her  in  a  trance,  like.  I  really  did. 

"Well,  a  bunch  of  us  wanted  old  Ernie  to  be  president  of  the  class.  I  mean  he  was 
the  unanimous  choice.  I  mean  he  was  the  only  boy  that  could  really  handle  the  job,"  I 
said— boy,  was  I  chucking  it.  "But  this  other  boy— Harry  Fencer— was  elected.  And  the 
reason  he  was  elected,  the  simple  and  obvious  reason,  was  because  Ernie  wouldn't  let  us 
nominate  him.  Because  he's  so  dam  shy  and  modest  and  all.  He  refused.  .  .  Boy,  he's 
really  shy.  You  oughta  make  him  try  to  get  over  that."  I  looked  at  her.  "Didn’t  he  tell  you 
about  it?" 

"No,  he  didn't." 

I  nodded.  "That’s  Ernie.  He  wouldn’t.  That’s  the  one  fault  with  him— he’s  too  shy 
and  modest.  You  really  oughta  get  him  to  try  to  relax  occasionally." 

Right  that  minute,  the  conductor  came  around  for  old  Mrs.  Morrow's  ticket,  and  it 
gave  me  a  chance  to  quit  shooting  it.  I'm  glad  I  shot  it  for  a  while,  though.  You  take  a  guy 
like  Morrow  that's  always  snapping  their  towel  at  people's  asses— really  trying  to  hurt 
somebody  with  it— they  don't  just  stay  a  rat  while  they're  a  kid.  They  stay  a  rat  their  whole 
life.  But  I'll  bet,  after  all  the  crap  I  shot,  Mrs.  Morrow'll  keep  thinking  of  him  now  as  this 
very  shy,  modest  guy  that  wouldn’t  let  us  nominate  him  for  president.  She  might.  You 
can’t  tell.  Mothers  aren’t  too  sharp  about  that  stuff. 

"Would  you  care  for  a  cocktail?"  I  asked  her.  I  was  feeling  in  the  mood  for  one 
myself.  "We  can  go  in  the  club  car.  All  right?" 

"Dear,  are  you  allowed  to  order  drinks?"  she  asked  me.  Not  snotty,  though.  She 
was  too  channing  and  all  to  be  snotty. 

"Well,  no,  not  exactly,  but  I  can  usually  get  them  on  account  of  my  heighth,"  I 
said.  "And  I  have  quite  a  bit  of  gray  hair."  I  turned  sideways  and  showed  her  my  gray 


hair.  It  fascinated  hell  out  of  her.  "C'mon,  join  me,  why  don’t  you?"  I  said.  I’d've  enjoyed 
having  her. 

"I  really  don’t  think  I’d  better.  Thank  you  so  much,  though,  dear,"  she  said. 
"Anyway,  the  club  car's  most  likely  closed.  It's  quite  late,  you  know."  She  was  right.  I’d 
forgotten  all  about  what  time  it  was. 

Then  she  looked  at  me  and  asked  me  what  I  was  afraid  she  was  going  to  ask  me. 
"Ernest  wrote  that  he’d  be  home  on  Wednesday,  that  Christmas  vacation  would  start  on 
Wednesday,"  she  said.  "I  hope  you  weren’t  called  home  suddenly  because  of  illness  in  the 
family."  She  really  looked  worried  about  it.  She  wasn’t  just  being  nosy,  you  could  tell. 

"No,  everybody's  fine  at  home,"  I  said.  "It's  me.  I  have  to  have  this  operation." 

"Oh!  I'm  so  sorry,"  she  said.  She  really  was,  too.  I  was  right  away  sorry  I’d  said  it, 
but  it  was  too  late. 

"It  isn’t  very  serious.  I  have  this  tiny  little  tumor  on  the  brain." 

"Oh,  no!"  She  put  her  hand  up  to  her  mouth  and  all.  "Oh,  I'll  be  all  right  and 
everything!  It’s  right  near  the  outside.  And  it's  a  very  tiny  one.  They  can  take  it  out  in 
about  two  minutes." 

Then  I  started  reading  this  timetable  I  had  in  my  pocket.  Just  to  stop  lying.  Once  I 
get  started,  I  can  go  on  for  hours  if  I  feel  like  it.  No  kidding.  Hours. 

We  didn’t  talk  too  much  after  that.  She  started  reading  this  Vogue  she  had  with 
her,  and  I  looked  out  the  window  for  a  while.  She  got  off  at  Newark.  She  wished  me  a  lot 
of  luck  with  the  operation  and  all.  She  kept  calling  me  Rudolf.  Then  she  invited  me  to 
visit  Ernie  during  the  summer,  at  Gloucester,  Massachusetts.  She  said  their  house  was 
right  on  the  beach,  and  they  had  a  tennis  court  and  all,  but  I  just  thanked  her  and  told  her  I 
was  going  to  South  America  with  my  grandmother.  Which  was  really  a  hot  one,  because 
my  grandmother  hardly  ever  even  goes  out  of  the  house,  except  maybe  to  go  to  a  goddam 
matinee  or  something.  But  I  wouldn’t  visit  that  sonuvabitch  Morrow  for  all  the  dough  in 
the  world,  even  if  I  was  desperate. 


9 


The  first  thing  I  did  when  I  got  off  at  Penn  Station,  I  went  into  this  phone  booth.  I 
felt  like  giving  somebody  a  buzz.  I  left  my  bags  right  outside  the  booth  so  that  I  could 
watch  them,  but  as  soon  as  I  was  inside,  I  couldn’t  think  of  anybody  to  call  up.  My 
brother  D.B.  was  in  Hollywood.  My  kid  sister  Phoebe  goes  to  bed  around  nine  o'clock— 
so  I  couldn’t  call  her  up.  She  wouldn’t’ve  cared  if  I’d  woke  her  up,  but  the  trouble  was,  she 
wouldn't've  been  the  one  that  answered  the  phone.  My  parents  would  be  the  ones.  So  that 
was  out.  Then  I  thought  of  giving  Jane  Gallagher's  mother  a  buzz,  and  find  out  when 
Jane's  vacation  started,  but  I  didn't  feel  like  it.  Besides,  it  was  pretty  late  to  call  up.  Then  I 
thought  of  calling  this  girl  I  used  to  go  around  with  quite  frequently,  Sally  Hayes, 
because  I  knew  her  Christmas  vacation  had  started  already— she’d  written  me  this  long, 
phony  letter,  inviting  me  over  to  help  her  trim  the  Christmas  tree  Christmas  Eve  and  all — 
but  I  was  afraid  her  mother’d  answer  the  phone.  Her  mother  knew  my  mother,  and  I  could 
picture  her  breaking  a  goddam  leg  to  get  to  the  phone  and  tell  my  mother  I  was  in  New 
York.  Besides,  I  wasn't  crazy  about  talking  to  old  Mrs.  Hayes  on  the  phone.  She  once  told 
Sally  I  was  wild.  She  said  I  was  wild  and  that  I  had  no  direction  in  life.  Then  I  thought  of 


calling  up  this  guy  that  went  to  the  Whooton  School  when  I  was  there,  Carl  Luce,  but  I 
didn't  like  him  much.  So  I  ended  up  not  calling  anybody.  I  came  out  of  the  booth,  after 
about  twenty  minutes  or  so,  and  got  my  bags  and  walked  over  to  that  tunnel  where  the 
cabs  are  and  got  a  cab. 

I'm  so  damn  absent-minded,  I  gave  the  driver  my  regular  address,  just  out  of  habit 
and  all— I  mean  I  completely  forgot  I  was  going  to  shack  up  in  a  hotel  for  a  couple  of  days 
and  not  go  home  till  vacation  started.  I  didn’t  think  of  it  till  we  were  halfway  through  the 
park.  Then  I  said,  "Hey,  do  you  mind  turning  around  when  you  get  a  chance?  I  gave  you 
the  wrong  address.  I  want  to  go  back  downtown." 

The  driver  was  sort  of  a  wise  guy.  "I  can't  turn  around  here,  Mac.  This  here's  a 
one-way.  I'll  have  to  go  all  the  way  to  Ninedieth  Street  now." 

I  didn’t  want  to  start  an  argument.  "Okay,"  I  said.  Then  I  thought  of  something,  all 
of  a  sudden.  "Hey,  listen,"  I  said.  "You  know  those  ducks  in  that  lagoon  right  near 
Central  Park  South?  That  little  lake?  By  any  chance,  do  you  happen  to  know  where  they 
go,  the  ducks,  when  it  gets  all  frozen  over?  Do  you  happen  to  know,  by  any  chance?"  I 
realized  it  was  only  one  chance  in  a  million. 

He  turned  around  and  looked  at  me  like  I  was  a  madman.  "What're  ya  tryna  do, 
bud?"  he  said.  "Kid  me?" 

"No— I  was  just  interested,  that's  all." 

He  didn't  say  anything  more,  so  I  didn't  either.  Until  we  came  out  of  the  park  at 
Ninetieth  Street.  Then  he  said,  "All  right,  buddy.  Where  to?" 

"Well,  the  thing  is,  I  don’t  want  to  stay  at  any  hotels  on  the  East  Side  where  I 
might  run  into  some  acquaintances  of  mine.  I'm  traveling  incognito,"  I  said.  I  hate  saying 
corny  things  like  "traveling  incognito."  But  when  I'm  with  somebody  that's  corny,  I 
always  act  corny  too.  "Do  you  happen  to  know  whose  band's  at  the  Taft  or  the  New 
Yorker,  by  any  chance?" 

"No  idear,  Mac." 

"Well— take  me  to  the  Edmont  then,"  I  said.  "Would  you  care  to  stop  on  the  way 
and  join  me  for  a  cocktail?  On  me.  I'm  loaded." 

"Can't  do  it,  Mac.  Sorry."  He  certainly  was  good  company.  Terrific  personality. 

We  got  to  the  Edmont  Hotel,  and  I  checked  in.  I’d  put  on  my  red  hunting  cap 
when  I  was  in  the  cab,  just  for  the  hell  of  it,  but  I  took  it  off  before  I  checked  in.  I  didn’t 
want  to  look  like  a  screwball  or  something.  Which  is  really  ironic.  I  didn’t  know  then  that 
the  goddam  hotel  was  full  of  perverts  and  morons.  Screwballs  all  over  the  place. 

They  gave  me  this  very  crumby  room,  with  nothing  to  look  out  of  the  window  at 
except  the  other  side  of  the  hotel.  I  didn’t  care  much.  I  was  too  depressed  to  care  whether 
I  had  a  good  view  or  not.  The  bellboy  that  showed  me  to  the  room  was  this  very  old  guy 
around  sixty-five.  He  was  even  more  depressing  than  the  room  was.  He  was  one  of  those 
bald  guys  that  comb  all  their  hair  over  from  the  side  to  cover  up  the  baldness.  I’d  rather  be 
bald  than  do  that.  Anyway,  what  a  gorgeous  job  for  a  guy  around  sixty-five  years  old. 
Carrying  people's  suitcases  and  waiting  around  for  a  tip.  I  suppose  he  wasn't  too 
intelligent  or  anything,  but  it  was  terrible  anyway. 

After  he  left,  I  looked  out  the  window  for  a  while,  with  my  coat  on  and  all.  I  didn’t 
have  anything  else  to  do.  You’d  be  surprised  what  was  going  on  on  the  other  side  of  the 
hotel.  They  didn’t  even  bother  to  pull  their  shades  down.  I  saw  one  guy,  a  gray-haired, 
very  distinguished-looking  guy  with  only  his  shorts  on,  do  something  you  wouldn’t 


believe  me  if  I  told  you.  First  he  put  his  suitcase  on  the  bed.  Then  he  took  out  all  these 
women’s  clothes,  and  put  them  on.  Real  women's  clothes— silk  stockings,  high-heeled 
shoes,  brassiere,  and  one  of  those  corsets  with  the  straps  hanging  down  and  all.  Then  he 
put  on  this  very  tight  black  evening  dress.  I  swear  to  God.  Then  he  started  walking  up  and 
down  the  room,  taking  these  very  small  steps,  the  way  a  woman  does,  and  smoking  a 
cigarette  and  looking  at  himself  in  the  mirror.  He  was  all  alone,  too.  Unless  somebody 
was  in  the  bathroom— I  couldn’t  see  that  much.  Then,  in  the  window  almost  right  over  his, 
I  saw  a  man  and  a  woman  squirting  water  out  of  their  mouths  at  each  other.  It  probably 
was  highballs,  not  water,  but  I  couldn’t  see  what  they  had  in  their  glasses.  Anyway,  first 
he’d  take  a  swallow  and  squirt  it  all  over  her,  then  she  did  it  to  him— they  took  turns,  for 
God's  sake.  You  should've  seen  them.  They  were  in  hysterics  the  whole  time,  like  it  was 
the  funniest  thing  that  ever  happened.  I'm  not  kidding,  the  hotel  was  lousy  with  perverts.  I 
was  probably  the  only  nonnal  bastard  in  the  whole  place— and  that  isn't  saying  much.  I 
damn  near  sent  a  telegram  to  old  Stradlater  telling  him  to  take  the  first  train  to  New  York. 
He’d  have  been  the  king  of  the  hotel. 

The  trouble  was,  that  kind  of  junk  is  sort  of  fascinating  to  watch,  even  if  you  don’t 
want  it  to  be.  For  instance,  that  girl  that  was  getting  water  squirted  all  over  her  face,  she 
was  pretty  good-looking.  I  mean  that's  my  big  trouble.  In  my  mind,  I'm  probably  the 
biggest  sex  maniac  you  ever  saw.  Sometimes  I  can  think  of  very  crumby  stuff  I  wouldn’t 
mind  doing  if  the  opportunity  came  up.  I  can  even  see  how  it  might  be  quite  a  lot  of  fun, 
in  a  crumby  way,  and  if  you  were  both  sort  of  drunk  and  all,  to  get  a  girl  and  squirt  water 
or  something  all  over  each  other's  face.  The  thing  is,  though,  I  don’t  like  the  idea.  It 
stinks,  if  you  analyze  it.  I  think  if  you  don’t  really  like  a  girl,  you  shouldn’t  horse  around 
with  her  at  all,  and  if  you  do  like  her,  then  you're  supposed  to  like  her  face,  and  if  you 
like  her  face,  you  ought  to  be  careful  about  doing  crumby  stuff  to  it,  like  squirting  water 
all  over  it.  It's  really  too  bad  that  so  much  crumby  stuff  is  a  lot  of  fun  sometimes.  Girls 
aren't  too  much  help,  either,  when  you  start  trying  not  to  get  too  crumby,  when  you  start 
trying  not  to  spoil  anything  really  good.  I  knew  this  one  girl,  a  couple  of  years  ago,  that 
was  even  crumbier  than  I  was.  Boy,  was  she  crumby!  We  had  a  lot  of  fun,  though,  for  a 
while,  in  a  crumby  way.  Sex  is  something  I  really  don't  understand  too  hot.  You  never 
know  where  the  hell  you  are.  I  keep  making  up  these  sex  rules  for  myself,  and  then  I 
break  them  right  away.  Last  year  I  made  a  rule  that  I  was  going  to  quit  horsing  around 
with  girls  that,  deep  down,  gave  me  a  pain  in  the  ass.  I  broke  it,  though,  the  same  week  I 
made  it— the  same  night,  as  a  matter  of  fact.  I  spent  the  whole  night  necking  with  a 
terrible  phony  named  Anne  Louise  Shennan.  Sex  is  something  I  just  don’t  understand.  I 
swear  to  God  I  don’t. 

I  started  toying  with  the  idea,  while  I  kept  standing  there,  of  giving  old  Jane  a 
buzz— I  mean  calling  her  long  distance  at  B.M.,  where  she  went,  instead  of  calling  up  her 
mother  to  find  out  when  she  was  coming  home.  You  weren’t  supposed  to  call  students  up 
late  at  night,  but  I  had  it  all  figured  out.  I  was  going  to  tell  whoever  answered  the  phone 
that  I  was  her  uncle.  I  was  going  to  say  her  aunt  had  just  got  killed  in  a  car  accident  and  I 
had  to  speak  to  her  immediately.  It  would've  worked,  too.  The  only  reason  I  didn’t  do  it 
was  because  I  wasn’t  in  the  mood.  If  you're  not  in  the  mood,  you  can't  do  that  stuff  right. 

After  a  while  I  sat  down  in  a  chair  and  smoked  a  couple  of  cigarettes.  I  was 
feeling  pretty  homy.  I  have  to  admit  it.  Then,  all  of  a  sudden,  I  got  this  idea.  I  took  out 
my  wallet  and  started  looking  for  this  address  a  guy  I  met  at  a  party  last  summer,  that 


went  to  Princeton,  gave  me.  Finally  I  found  it.  It  was  all  a  funny  color  from  my  wallet, 
but  you  could  still  read  it.  It  was  the  address  of  this  girl  that  wasn’t  exactly  a  whore  or 
anything  but  that  didn't  mind  doing  it  once  in  a  while,  this  Princeton  guy  told  me.  He 
brought  her  to  a  dance  at  Princeton  once,  and  they  nearly  kicked  him  out  for  bringing  her. 
She  used  to  be  a  burlesque  stripper  or  something.  Anyway,  I  went  over  to  the  phone  and 
gave  her  a  buzz.  Her  name  was  Faith  Cavendish,  and  she  lived  at  the  Stanford  Arms 
Hotel  on  Sixty-fifth  and  Broadway.  A  dump,  no  doubt. 

For  a  while,  I  didn  t  think  she  was  home  or  something.  Nobody  kept  answering. 
Then,  finally,  somebody  picked  up  the  phone. 

"Hello?"  I  said.  I  made  my  voice  quite  deep  so  that  she  wouldn’t  suspect  my  age 
or  anything.  I  have  a  pretty  deep  voice  anyway. 

"Hello,"  this  woman's  voice  said.  None  too  friendly,  either. 

"Is  this  Miss  Faith  Cavendish?" 

"Who's  this?"  she  said.  "Who's  calling  me  up  at  this  crazy  goddam  hour?" 

That  sort  of  scared  me  a  little  bit.  "Well,  I  know  it's  quite  late,"  I  said,  in  this  very 
mature  voice  and  all.  "I  hope  you'll  forgive  me,  but  I  was  very  anxious  to  get  in  touch 
with  you."  I  said  it  suave  as  hell.  I  really  did. 

"Who  is  this?"  she  said. 

"Well,  you  don’t  know  me,  but  I'm  a  friend  of  Eddie  Birdsell's.  He  suggested  that 
if  I  were  in  town  sometime,  we  ought  to  get  together  for  a  cocktail  or  two." 

"Who?  You're  a  friend  of  who?"  Boy,  she  was  a  real  tigress  over  the  phone.  She 
was  damn  near  yelling  at  me. 

"Edmund  Birdsell.  Eddie  Birdsell,"  I  said.  I  couldn’t  remember  if  his  name  was 
Edmund  or  Edward.  I  only  met  him  once,  at  a  goddam  stupid  party. 

"I  don’t  know  anybody  by  that  name,  Jack.  And  if  you  think  I  enjoy  bein'  woke  up 
in  the  middle—" 

"Eddie  Birdsell?  From  Princeton?"  I  said. 

You  could  tell  she  was  running  the  name  over  in  her  mind  and  all. 

"Birdsell,  Birdsell.  .  .  from  Princeton..  .  Princeton  College?" 

"That's  right,"  I  said. 

"You  from  Princeton  College?" 

"Well,  approximately." 

"Oh.  .  .  How  is  Eddie?"  she  said.  "This  is  certainly  a  peculiar  time  to  call  a  person 
up,  though.  Jesus  Christ." 

"He's  fine.  He  asked  to  be  remembered  to  you." 

"Well,  thank  you.  Remember  me  to  him,"  she  said.  "He's  a  grand  person.  What's 
he  doing  now?"  She  was  getting  friendly  as  hell,  all  of  a  sudden. 

"Oh,  you  know.  Same  old  stuff,"  I  said.  How  the  hell  did  I  know  what  he  was 
doing?  I  hardly  knew  the  guy.  I  didn’t  even  know  if  he  was  still  at  Princeton.  "Look,"  I 
said.  "Would  you  be  interested  in  meeting  me  for  a  cocktail  somewhere?" 

"By  any  chance  do  you  have  any  idea  what  time  it  is?"  she  said.  "What's  your 
name,  anyhow,  may  I  ask?"  She  was  getting  an  English  accent,  all  of  a  sudden.  "You 
sound  a  little  on  the  young  side." 

I  laughed.  "Thank  you  for  the  compliment,"  I  said—  suave  as  hell.  "Holden 
Caulfield's  my  name."  I  should've  given  her  a  phony  name,  but  I  didn’t  think  of  it. 


"Well,  look,  Mr.  Cawffle.  I'm  not  in  the  habit  of  making  engagements  in  the 
middle  of  the  night.  I'm  a  working  gal." 

"Tomorrow's  Sunday,"  I  told  her. 

"Well,  anyway.  I  gotta  get  my  beauty  sleep.  You  know  how  it  is." 

"I  thought  we  might  have  just  one  cocktail  together.  It  isn't  too  late." 

"Well.  You're  very  sweet,"  she  said.  "Where  ya  callin’  from?  Where  ya  at  now, 
anyways?" 

"Me?  I'm  in  a  phone  booth." 

"Oh,"  she  said.  Then  there  was  this  very  long  pause.  "Well,  I’d  like  awfully  to  get 
together  with  you  sometime,  Mr.  Cawffle.  You  sound  very  attractive.  You  sound  like  a 
very  attractive  person.  But  it  is  late." 

"I  could  come  up  to  your  place." 

"Well,  ordinary,  I’d  say  grand.  I  mean  I’d  love  to  have  you  drop  up  for  a  cocktail, 
but  my  roommate  happens  to  be  ill.  She's  been  laying  here  all  night  without  a  wink  of 
sleep.  She  just  this  minute  closed  her  eyes  and  all.  I  mean." 

"Oh.  That's  too  bad." 

"Where  ya  stopping  at?  Perhaps  we  could  get  together  for  cocktails  tomorrow." 

"I  can’t  make  it  tomorrow,"  I  said.  "Tonight's  the  only  time  I  can  make  it."  What  a 
dope  I  was.  I  shouldn’t've  said  that. 

"Oh.  Well,  I'm  awfully  sorry." 

"I'll  say  hello  to  Eddie  for  you." 

"Willya  do  that?  I  hope  you  enjoy  your  stay  in  New  York.  It's  a  grand  place." 

"I  know  it  is.  Thanks.  Good  night,"  I  said.  Then  I  hung  up. 

Boy,  I  really  fouled  that  up.  I  should've  at  least  made  it  for  cocktails  or  something. 

10 


It  was  still  pretty  early.  I'm  not  sure  what  time  it  was,  but  it  wasn’t  too  late.  The 
one  thing  I  hate  to  do  is  go  to  bed  when  I'm  not  even  tired.  So  I  opened  my  suitcases  and 
took  out  a  clean  shirt,  and  then  I  went  in  the  bathroom  and  washed  and  changed  my  shirt. 
What  I  thought  I’d  do,  I  thought  I’d  go  downstairs  and  see  what  the  hell  was  going  on  in 
the  Lavender  Room.  They  had  this  night  club,  the  Lavender  Room,  in  the  hotel. 

While  I  was  changing  my  shirt,  I  damn  near  gave  my  kid  sister  Phoebe  a  buzz, 
though.  I  certainly  felt  like  talking  to  her  on  the  phone.  Somebody  with  sense  and  all.  But 
I  couldn’t  take  a  chance  on  giving  her  a  buzz,  because  she  was  only  a  little  kid  and  she 
wouldn't  have  been  up,  let  alone  anywhere  near  the  phone.  I  thought  of  maybe  hanging 
up  if  my  parents  answered,  but  that  wouldn’t' ve  worked,  either.  They'd  know  it  was  me. 
My  mother  always  knows  it's  me.  She's  psychic.  But  I  certainly  wouldn't  have  minded 
shooting  the  crap  with  old  Phoebe  for  a  while. 

You  should  see  her.  You  never  saw  a  little  kid  so  pretty  and  smart  in  your  whole 
life.  She's  really  smart.  I  mean  she's  had  all  A's  ever  since  she  started  school.  As  a  matter 
of  fact,  I'm  the  only  dumb  one  in  the  family.  My  brother  D.B.’s  a  writer  and  all,  and  my 
brother  Allie,  the  one  that  died,  that  I  told  you  about,  was  a  wizard.  I'm  the  only  really 
dumb  one.  But  you  ought  to  see  old  Phoebe.  She  has  this  sort  of  red  hair,  a  little  bit  like 
Allie's  was,  that's  very  short  in  the  summertime.  In  the  summertime,  she  sticks  it  behind 


her  ears.  She  has  nice,  pretty  little  ears.  In  the  wintertime,  it's  pretty  long,  though. 
Sometimes  my  mother  braids  it  and  sometimes  she  doesn't.  It's  really  nice,  though.  She's 
only  ten.  She's  quite  skinny,  like  me,  but  nice  skinny.  Roller-skate  skinny.  I  watched  her 
once  from  the  window  when  she  was  crossing  over  Fifth  Avenue  to  go  to  the  park,  and 
that's  what  she  is,  roller-skate  skinny.  You'd  like  her.  I  mean  if  you  tell  old  Phoebe 
something,  she  knows  exactly  what  the  hell  you're  talking  about.  I  mean  you  can  even 
take  her  anywhere  with  you.  If  you  take  her  to  a  lousy  movie,  for  instance,  she  knows  it's 
a  lousy  movie.  If  you  take  her  to  a  pretty  good  movie,  she  knows  it's  a  pretty  good  movie. 
D.B.  and  I  took  her  to  see  this  French  movie.  The  Baker's  Wife,  with  Raimu  in  it.  It  killed 
her.  Her  favorite  is  The  39  Steps,  though,  with  Robert  Donat.  She  knows  the  whole 
goddam  movie  by  heart,  because  I've  taken  her  to  see  it  about  ten  times.  When  old  Donat 
comes  up  to  this  Scotch  farmhouse,  for  instance,  when  he's  running  away  from  the  cops 
and  all,  Phoebe’ll  say  right  out  loud  in  the  movie— right  when  the  Scotch  guy  in  the 
picture  says  it— "Can  you  eat  the  herring?"  She  knows  all  the  talk  by  heart.  And  when  this 
professor  in  the  picture,  that's  really  a  German  spy,  sticks  up  his  little  finger  with  part  of 
the  middle  joint  missing,  to  show  Robert  Donat,  old  Phoebe  beats  him  to  it— she  holds  up 
her  little  finger  at  me  in  the  dark,  right  in  front  of  my  face.  She's  all  right.  You'd  like  her. 
The  only  trouble  is,  she's  a  little  too  affectionate  sometimes.  She's  very  emotional,  for  a 
child.  She  really  is.  Something  else  she  does,  she  writes  books  all  the  time.  Only,  she 
doesn't  finish  them.  They're  all  about  some  kid  named  Hazel  Weatherfield— only  old 
Phoebe  spells  it  "Hazle."  Old  Hazle  Weatherfield  is  a  girl  detective.  She's  supposed  to  be 
an  orphan,  but  her  old  man  keeps  showing  up.  Her  old  man's  always  a  "tall  attractive 
gentleman  about  20  years  of  age."  That  kills  me.  Old  Phoebe.  I  swear  to  God  you'd  like 
her.  She  was  smart  even  when  she  was  a  very  tiny  little  kid.  When  she  was  a  very  tiny 
little  kid,  I  and  Allie  used  to  take  her  to  the  park  with  us,  especially  on  Sundays.  Allie  had 
this  sailboat  he  used  to  like  to  fool  around  with  on  Sundays,  and  we  used  to  take  old 
Phoebe  with  us.  She’d  wear  white  gloves  and  walk  right  between  us,  like  a  lady  and  all. 
And  when  Allie  and  I  were  having  some  conversation  about  things  in  general,  old 
Phoebe’d  be  listening.  Sometimes  you’d  forget  she  was  around,  because  she  was  such  a 
little  kid,  but  she’d  let  you  know.  She’d  interrupt  you  all  the  time.  She’d  give  Allie  or  I  a 
push  or  something,  and  say,  "Who?  Who  said  that?  Bobby  or  the  lady?"  And  we’d  tell  her 
who  said  it,  and  she’d  say,  "Oh,"  and  go  right  on  listening  and  all.  She  killed  Allie,  too.  I 
mean  he  liked  her,  too.  She's  ten  now,  and  not  such  a  tiny  little  kid  any  more,  but  she  still 
kills  everybody— everybody  with  any  sense,  anyway. 

Anyway,  she  was  somebody  you  always  felt  like  talking  to  on  the  phone.  But  I 
was  too  afraid  my  parents  would  answer,  and  then  they'd  find  out  I  was  in  New  York  and 
kicked  out  of  Pencey  and  all.  So  I  just  finished  putting  on  my  shirt.  Then  I  got  all  ready 
and  went  down  in  the  elevator  to  the  lobby  to  see  what  was  going  on. 

Except  for  a  few  pimpy-looking  guys,  and  a  few  whory-looking  blondes,  the 
lobby  was  pretty  empty.  But  you  could  hear  the  band  playing  in  the  Lavender  Room,  and 
so  I  went  in  there.  It  wasn’t  very  crowded,  but  they  gave  me  a  lousy  table  anyway— way  in 
the  back.  I  should've  waved  a  buck  under  the  head- waiter's  nose.  In  New  York,  boy, 
money  really  talks— I'm  not  kidding. 

The  band  was  putrid.  Buddy  Singer.  Very  brassy,  but  not  good  brassy— corny 
brassy.  Also,  there  were  very  few  people  around  my  age  in  the  place.  In  fact,  nobody  was 
around  my  age.  They  were  mostly  old,  show-offy-looking  guys  with  their  dates.  Except  at 


the  table  right  next  to  me.  At  the  table  right  next  to  me,  there  were  these  three  girls 
around  thirty  or  so.  The  whole  three  of  them  were  pretty  ugly,  and  they  all  had  on  the 
kind  of  hats  that  you  knew  they  didn’t  really  live  in  New  York,  but  one  of  them,  the 
blonde  one,  wasn’t  too  bad.  She  was  sort  of  cute,  the  blonde  one,  and  I  started  giving  her 
the  old  eye  a  little  bit,  but  just  then  the  waiter  came  up  for  my  order.  I  ordered  a  Scotch 
and  soda,  and  told  him  not  to  mix  it— I  said  it  fast  as  hell,  because  if  you  hem  and  haw, 
they  think  you're  under  twenty-one  and  won't  sell  you  any  intoxicating  liquor.  I  had 
trouble  with  him  anyway,  though.  "I'm  sorry,  sir,"  he  said,  "but  do  you  have  some 
verification  of  your  age?  Your  driver's  license,  perhaps?" 

I  gave  him  this  very  cold  stare,  like  he’d  insulted  the  hell  out  of  me,  and  asked 
him,  "Do  I  look  like  I'm  under  twenty-one?" 

"I'm  sorry,  sir,  but  we  have  our—" 

"Okay,  okay,"  I  said.  I  figured  the  hell  with  it.  "Bring  me  a  Coke."  He  started  to 
go  away,  but  I  called  him  back.  "Can’tcha  stick  a  little  rum  in  it  or  something?"  I  asked 
him.  I  asked  him  very  nicely  and  all.  "I  can’t  sit  in  a  corny  place  like  this  cold  sober. 
Can’tcha  stick  a  little  rum  in  it  or  something?" 

"I'm  very  sorry,  sir.  .  ."  he  said,  and  beat  it  on  me.  I  didn’t  hold  it  against  him, 
though.  They  lose  their  jobs  if  they  get  caught  selling  to  a  minor.  I'm  a  goddam  minor. 

I  started  giving  the  three  witches  at  the  next  table  the  eye  again.  That  is,  the 
blonde  one.  The  other  two  were  strictly  from  hunger.  I  didn’t  do  it  crudely,  though.  I  just 
gave  all  three  of  them  this  very  cool  glance  and  all.  What  they  did,  though,  the  three  of 
them,  when  I  did  it,  they  started  giggling  like  morons.  They  probably  thought  I  was  too 
young  to  give  anybody  the  once-over.  That  annoyed  hell  out  of  me—  you'd've  thought  I 
wanted  to  marry  them  or  something.  I  should've  given  them  the  freeze,  after  they  did  that, 
but  the  trouble  was,  I  really  felt  like  dancing.  I'm  very  fond  of  dancing,  sometimes,  and 
that  was  one  of  the  times.  So  all  of  a  sudden,  I  sort  of  leaned  over  and  said,  "Would  any 
of  you  girls  care  to  dance?"  I  didn’t  ask  them  crudely  or  anything.  Very  suave,  in  fact.  But 
God  damn  it,  they  thought  that  was  a  panic,  too.  They  started  giggling  some  more.  I'm 
not  kidding,  they  were  three  real  morons.  "C'mon,"  I  said.  "I'll  dance  with  you  one  at  a 
time.  All  right?  How  'bout  it?  C'mon!"  I  really  felt  like  dancing. 

Finally,  the  blonde  one  got  up  to  dance  with  me,  because  you  could  tell  I  was 
really  talking  to  her,  and  we  walked  out  to  the  dance  floor.  The  other  two  grools  nearly 
had  hysterics  when  we  did.  I  certainly  must've  been  very  hard  up  to  even  bother  with  any 
of  them. 

But  it  was  worth  it.  The  blonde  was  some  dancer.  She  was  one  of  the  best  dancers 
I  ever  danced  with.  I'm  not  kidding,  some  of  these  very  stupid  girls  can  really  knock  you 
out  on  a  dance  floor.  You  take  a  really  smart  girl,  and  half  the  time  she's  trying  to  lead 
you  around  the  dance  floor,  or  else  she's  such  a  lousy  dancer,  the  best  thing  to  do  is  stay 
at  the  table  and  just  get  drunk  with  her. 

"You  really  can  dance,"  I  told  the  blonde  one.  "You  oughta  be  a  pro.  I  mean  it.  I 
danced  with  a  pro  once,  and  you're  twice  as  good  as  she  was.  Did  you  ever  hear  of  Marco 
and  Miranda?" 

"What?"  she  said.  She  wasn’t  even  listening  to  me.  She  was  looking  all  around  the 

place. 

"I  said  did  you  ever  hear  of  Marco  and  Miranda?" 

"I  don’t  know.  No.  I  don’t  know." 


"Well,  they're  dancers,  she's  a  dancer.  She's  not  too  hot,  though.  She  does 
everything  she's  supposed  to,  but  she's  not  so  hot  anyway.  You  know  when  a  girl’s  really 
a  terrific  dancer?" 

"Wudga  say?"  she  said.  She  wasn't  listening  to  me,  even.  Her  mind  was 
wandering  all  over  the  place. 

"I  said  do  you  know  when  a  girl's  really  a  terrific  dancer?" 

"Uh-uh." 

"Well— where  I  have  my  hand  on  your  back.  If  I  think  there  isn’t  anything 
underneath  my  hand— no  can,  no  legs,  no  feet,  no  anything— then  the  girl's  really  a  terrific 
dancer." 

She  wasn’t  listening,  though.  So  I  ignored  her  for  a  while.  We  just  danced.  God, 
could  that  dopey  girl  dance.  Buddy  Singer  and  his  stinking  band  was  playing  "Just  One  of 
Those  Things"  and  even  they  couldn’t  ruin  it  entirely.  It's  a  swell  song.  I  didn’t  try  any 
trick  stuff  while  we  danced— I  hate  a  guy  that  does  a  lot  of  show-off  tricky  stuff  on  the 
dance  floor— but  I  was  moving  her  around  plenty,  and  she  stayed  with  me.  The  funny 
thing  is,  I  thought  she  was  enjoying  it,  too,  till  all  of  a  sudden  she  came  out  with  this  very 
dumb  remark.  "I  and  my  girl  friends  saw  Peter  Lorre  last  night,"  she  said.  "The  movie 
actor.  In  person.  He  was  buyin’  a  newspaper.  He's  cute." 

"You're  lucky,"  I  told  her.  "You're  really  lucky.  You  know  that?"  She  was  really  a 
moron.  But  what  a  dancer.  I  could  hardly  stop  myself  from  sort  of  giving  her  a  kiss  on  the 
top  of  her  dopey  head— you  know—  right  where  the  part  is,  and  all.  She  got  sore  when  I 
did  it. 

"Hey!  What's  the  idea?" 

"Nothing.  No  idea.  You  really  can  dance,"  I  said.  "I  have  a  kid  sister  that's  only  in 
the  goddam  fourth  grade.  You're  about  as  good  as  she  is,  and  she  can  dance  better  than 
anybody  living  or  dead." 

"Watch  your  language,  if  you  don’t  mind." 

What  a  lady,  boy.  A  queen,  for  Chrissake. 

"Where  you  girls  from?"  I  asked  her. 

She  didn’t  answer  me,  though.  She  was  busy  looking  around  for  old  Peter  Lorre  to 
show  up,  I  guess. 

"Where  you  girls  from?"  I  asked  her  again. 

"What?"  she  said. 

"Where  you  girls  from?  Don't  answer  if  you  don't  feel  like  it.  I  don't  want  you  to 
strain  yourself." 

"Seattle,  Washington,"  she  said.  She  was  doing  me  a  big  favor  to  tell  me. 

"You're  a  very  good  conversationalist,"  I  told  her.  "You  know  that?" 

"What?" 

I  let  it  drop.  It  was  over  her  head,  anyway.  "Do  you  feel  like  jitterbugging  a  little 
bit,  if  they  play  a  fast  one?  Not  corny  jitterbug,  not  jump  or  anything— just  nice  and  easy. 
Everybody'll  all  sit  down  when  they  play  a  fast  one,  except  the  old  guys  and  the  fat  guys, 
and  we’ll  have  plenty  of  room.  Okay?" 

"It's  immaterial  to  me,"  she  said.  "Hey— how  old  are  you,  anyhow?" 

That  annoyed  me,  for  some  reason.  "Oh,  Christ.  Don't  spoil  it,"  I  said.  "I'm 
twelve,  for  Chrissake.  I'm  big  for  my  age." 


"Listen.  I  toleja  about  that.  I  don't  like  that  type  language,"  she  said.  "If  you're 
gonna  use  that  type  language,  I  can  go  sit  down  with  my  girl  friends,  you  know." 

I  apologized  like  a  madman,  because  the  band  was  starting  a  fast  one.  She  started 
jitterbugging  with  me—  but  just  very  nice  and  easy,  not  corny.  She  was  really  good.  All 
you  had  to  do  was  touch  her.  And  when  she  turned  around,  her  pretty  little  butt  twitched 
so  nice  and  all.  She  knocked  me  out.  I  mean  it.  I  was  half  in  love  with  her  by  the  time  we 
sat  down.  That’s  the  thing  about  girls.  Every  time  they  do  something  pretty,  even  if 
they're  not  much  to  look  at,  or  even  if  they’re  sort  of  stupid,  you  fall  half  in  love  with 
them,  and  then  you  never  know  where  the  hell  you  are.  Girls.  Jesus  Christ.  They  can 
drive  you  crazy.  They  really  can. 

They  didn’t  invite  me  to  sit  down  at  their  table—  mostly  because  they  were  too 
ignorant— but  I  sat  down  anyway.  The  blonde  I’d  been  dancing  with's  name  was  Bernice 
something— Crabs  or  Krebs.  The  two  ugly  ones'  names  were  Marty  and  Laverne.  I  told 
them  my  name  was  Jim  Steele,  just  for  the  hell  of  it.  Then  I  tried  to  get  them  in  a  little 
intelligent  conversation,  but  it  was  practically  impossible.  You  had  to  twist  their  anns. 
You  could  hardly  tell  which  was  the  stupidest  of  the  three  of  them.  And  the  whole  three 
of  them  kept  looking  all  around  the  goddam  room,  like  as  if  they  expected  a  flock  of 
goddam  movie  stars  to  come  in  any  minute.  They  probably  thought  movie  stars  always 
hung  out  in  the  Lavender  Room  when  they  came  to  New  York,  instead  of  the  Stork  Club 
or  El  Morocco  and  all.  Anyway,  it  took  me  about  a  half  hour  to  find  out  where  they  all 
worked  and  all  in  Seattle.  They  all  worked  in  the  same  insurance  office.  I  asked  them  if 
they  liked  it,  but  do  you  think  you  could  get  an  intelligent  answer  out  of  those  three 
dopes?  I  thought  the  two  ugly  ones,  Marty  and  Laveme,  were  sisters,  but  they  got  very 
insulted  when  I  asked  them.  You  could  tell  neither  one  of  them  wanted  to  look  like  the 
other  one,  and  you  couldn’t  blame  them,  but  it  was  very  amusing  anyway. 

I  danced  with  them  all— the  whole  three  of  them— one  at  a  time.  The  one  ugly  one, 
Laveme,  wasn’t  too  bad  a  dancer,  but  the  other  one,  old  Marty,  was  murder.  Old  Marty 
was  like  dragging  the  Statue  of  Liberty  around  the  floor.  The  only  way  I  could  even  half 
enjoy  myself  dragging  her  around  was  if  I  amused  myself  a  little.  So  I  told  her  I  just  saw 
Gary  Cooper,  the  movie  star,  on  the  other  side  of  the  floor. 

"Where?"  she  asked  me— excited  as  hell.  "Where?" 

"Aw,  you  just  missed  him.  He  just  went  out.  Why  didn’t  you  look  when  I  told 

you?" 

She  practically  stopped  dancing,  and  started  looking  over  everybody's  heads  to 
see  if  she  could  see  him.  "Oh,  shoot!"  she  said.  I'd  just  about  broken  her  heart—  I  really 
had.  I  was  sorry  as  hell  I’d  kidded  her.  Some  people  you  shouldn’t  kid,  even  if  they 
deserve  it. 

Here's  what  was  very  funny,  though.  When  we  got  back  to  the  table,  old  Marty 
told  the  other  two  that  Gary  Cooper  had  just  gone  out.  Boy,  old  Laverne  and  Bernice 
nearly  committed  suicide  when  they  heard  that.  They  got  all  excited  and  asked  Marty  if 
she’d  seen  him  and  all.  Old  Mart  said  she’d  only  caught  a  glimpse  of  him.  That  killed  me. 

The  bar  was  closing  up  for  the  night,  so  I  bought  them  all  two  drinks  apiece  quick 
before  it  closed,  and  I  ordered  two  more  Cokes  for  myself.  The  goddam  table  was  lousy 
with  glasses.  The  one  ugly  one,  Laverne,  kept  kidding  me  because  I  was  only  drinking 
Cokes.  She  had  a  sterling  sense  of  humor.  She  and  old  Marty  were  drinking  Tom 
Collinses— in  the  middle  of  December,  for  God's  sake.  They  didn’t  know  any  better.  The 


blonde  one,  old  Bernice,  was  drinking  bourbon  and  water.  She  was  really  putting  it  away, 
too.  The  whole  three  of  them  kept  looking  for  movie  stars  the  whole  time.  They  hardly 
talked— even  to  each  other.  Old  Marty  talked  more  than  the  other  two.  She  kept  saying 
these  very  corny,  boring  things,  like  calling  the  can  the  "little  girls'  room,"  and  she 
thought  Buddy  Singer's  poor  old  beat-up  clarinet  player  was  really  terrific  when  he  stood 
up  and  took  a  couple  of  ice-cold  hot  licks.  She  called  his  clarinet  a  "licorice  stick."  Was 
she  corny.  The  other  ugly  one,  Laverne,  thought  she  was  a  very  witty  type.  She  kept 
asking  me  to  call  up  my  father  and  ask  him  what  he  was  doing  tonight.  She  kept  asking 
me  if  my  father  had  a  date  or  not.  Four  times  she  asked  me  that— she  was  certainly  witty. 
Old  Bernice,  the  blonde  one,  didn’t  say  hardly  anything  at  all.  Every  time  I’d  ask  her 
something,  she  said  "What?"  That  can  get  on  your  nerves  after  a  while. 

All  of  a  sudden,  when  they  finished  their  drink,  all  three  of  them  stood  up  on  me 
and  said  they  had  to  get  to  bed.  They  said  they  were  going  to  get  up  early  to  see  the  first 
show  at  Radio  City  Music  Hall.  I  tried  to  get  them  to  stick  around  for  a  while,  but  they 
wouldn't.  So  we  said  good-by  and  all.  I  told  them  I’d  look  them  up  in  Seattle  sometime,  if 
I  ever  got  there,  but  I  doubt  if  I  ever  will.  Look  them  up,  I  mean. 

With  cigarettes  and  all,  the  check  came  to  about  thirteen  bucks.  I  think  they 
should've  at  least  offered  to  pay  for  the  drinks  they  had  before  I  joined  them— I 
wouldn’t've  let  them,  naturally,  but  they  should've  at  least  offered.  I  didn’t  care  much, 
though.  They  were  so  ignorant,  and  they  had  those  sad,  fancy  hats  on  and  all.  And  that 
business  about  getting  up  early  to  see  the  first  show  at  Radio  City  Music  Hall  depressed 
me.  If  somebody,  some  girl  in  an  awful-looking  hat,  for  instance,  comes  all  the  way  to 
New  York— from  Seattle,  Washington,  for  God's  sake— and  ends  up  getting  up  early  in  the 
morning  to  see  the  goddam  first  show  at  Radio  City  Music  Hall,  it  makes  me  so 
depressed  I  can't  stand  it.  I’d've  bought  the  whole  three  of  them  a  hundred  drinks  if  only 
they  hadn’t  told  me  that. 

I  left  the  Lavender  Room  pretty  soon  after  they  did.  They  were  closing  it  up 
anyway,  and  the  band  had  quit  a  long  time  ago.  In  the  first  place,  it  was  one  of  those 
places  that  are  very  terrible  to  be  in  unless  you  have  somebody  good  to  dance  with,  or 
unless  the  waiter  lets  you  buy  real  drinks  instead  of  just  Cokes.  There  isn't  any  night  club 
in  the  world  you  can  sit  in  for  a  long  time  unless  you  can  at  least  buy  some  liquor  and  get 
drunk.  Or  unless  you're  with  some  girl  that  really  knocks  you  out. 


11 


All  of  a  sudden,  on  my  way  out  to  the  lobby,  I  got  old  Jane  Gallagher  on  the  brain 
again.  I  got  her  on,  and  I  couldn’t  get  her  off.  I  sat  down  in  this  vomity-looking  chair  in 
the  lobby  and  thought  about  her  and  Stradlater  sitting  in  that  goddam  Ed  Banky's  car,  and 
though  I  was  pretty  damn  sure  old  Stradlater  hadn’t  given  her  the  time— I  know  old  Jane 
like  a  book— I  still  couldn’t  get  her  off  my  brain.  I  knew  her  like  a  book.  I  really  did.  I 
mean,  besides  checkers,  she  was  quite  fond  of  all  athletic  sports,  and  after  I  got  to  know 
her,  the  whole  summer  long  we  played  tennis  together  almost  every  morning  and  golf 
almost  every  afternoon.  I  really  got  to  know  her  quite  intimately.  I  don’t  mean  it  was 
anything  physical  or  anything— it  wasn't— but  we  saw  each  other  all  the  time.  You  don't 
always  have  to  get  too  sexy  to  get  to  know  a  girl. 


The  way  I  met  her,  this  Doberman  pinscher  she  had  used  to  come  over  and  relieve 
himself  on  our  lawn,  and  my  mother  got  very  irritated  about  it.  She  called  up  Jane's 
mother  and  made  a  big  stink  about  it.  My  mother  can  make  a  very  big  stink  about  that 
kind  of  stuff.  Then  what  happened,  a  couple  of  days  later  I  saw  Jane  laying  on  her 
stomach  next  to  the  swimming  pool,  at  the  club,  and  I  said  hello  to  her.  I  knew  she  lived 
in  the  house  next  to  ours,  but  I’d  never  conversed  with  her  before  or  anything.  She  gave 
me  the  big  freeze  when  I  said  hello  that  day,  though.  I  had  a  helluva  time  convincing  her 
that  I  didn’t  give  a  good  goddam  where  her  dog  relieved  himself.  He  could  do  it  in  the 
living  room,  for  all  I  cared.  Anyway,  after  that,  Jane  and  I  got  to  be  friends  and  all.  I 
played  golf  with  her  that  same  afternoon.  She  lost  eight  balls,  I  remember.  Eight.  I  had  a 
terrible  time  getting  her  to  at  least  open  her  eyes  when  she  took  a  swing  at  the  ball.  I 
improved  her  game  immensely,  though.  I'm  a  very  good  golfer.  If  I  told  you  what  I  go 
around  in,  you  probably  wouldn’t  believe  me.  I  almost  was  once  in  a  movie  short,  but  I 
changed  my  mind  at  the  last  minute.  I  figured  that  anybody  that  hates  the  movies  as  much 
as  I  do,  I’d  be  a  phony  if  I  let  them  stick  me  in  a  movie  short. 

She  was  a  funny  girl,  old  Jane.  I  wouldn’t  exactly  describe  her  as  strictly  beautiful. 
She  knocked  me  out,  though.  She  was  sort  of  muckle-mouthed.  I  mean  when  she  was 
talking  and  she  got  excited  about  something,  her  mouth  sort  of  went  in  about  fifty 
directions,  her  lips  and  all.  That  killed  me.  And  she  never  really  closed  it  all  the  way,  her 
mouth.  It  was  always  just  a  little  bit  open,  especially  when  she  got  in  her  golf  stance,  or 
when  she  was  reading  a  book.  She  was  always  reading,  and  she  read  very  good  books. 

She  read  a  lot  of  poetry  and  all.  She  was  the  only  one,  outside  my  family,  that  I  ever 
showed  Allie's  baseball  mitt  to,  with  all  the  poems  written  on  it.  She’d  never  met  Allie  or 
anything,  because  that  was  her  first  summer  in  Maine— before  that,  she  went  to  Cape  Cod- 
-but  I  told  her  quite  a  lot  about  him.  She  was  interested  in  that  kind  of  stuff. 

My  mother  didn’t  like  her  too  much.  I  mean  my  mother  always  thought  Jane  and 
her  mother  were  sort  of  snubbing  her  or  something  when  they  didn’t  say  hello.  My 
mother  saw  them  in  the  village  a  lot,  because  Jane  used  to  drive  to  market  with  her 
mother  in  this  LaSalle  convertible  they  had.  My  mother  didn’t  think  Jane  was  pretty, 
even.  I  did,  though.  I  just  liked  the  way  she  looked,  that's  all. 

I  remember  this  one  afternoon.  It  was  the  only  time  old  Jane  and  I  ever  got  close 
to  necking,  even.  It  was  a  Saturday  and  it  was  raining  like  a  bastard  out,  and  I  was  over  at 
her  house,  on  the  porch— they  had  this  big  screened-in  porch.  We  were  playing  checkers.  I 
used  to  kid  her  once  in  a  while  because  she  wouldn’t  take  her  kings  out  of  the  back  row. 
But  I  didn’t  kid  her  much,  though.  You  never  wanted  to  kid  Jane  too  much.  I  think  I  really 
like  it  best  when  you  can  kid  the  pants  off  a  girl  when  the  opportunity  arises,  but  it's  a 
funny  thing.  The  girls  I  like  best  are  the  ones  I  never  feel  much  like  kidding.  Sometimes  I 
think  they'd  like  it  if  you  kidded  them— in  fact,  I  know  they  would— but  it's  hard  to  get 
started,  once  you've  known  them  a  pretty  long  time  and  never  kidded  them.  Anyway,  I 
was  telling  you  about  that  afternoon  Jane  and  I  came  close  to  necking.  It  was  raining  like 
hell  and  we  were  out  on  her  porch,  and  all  of  a  sudden  this  booze  hound  her  mother  was 
married  to  came  out  on  the  porch  and  asked  Jane  if  there  were  any  cigarettes  in  the  house. 
I  didn't  know  him  too  well  or  anything,  but  he  looked  like  the  kind  of  guy  that  wouldn’t 
talk  to  you  much  unless  he  wanted  something  off  you.  He  had  a  lousy  personality. 
Anyway,  old  Jane  wouldn’t  answer  him  when  he  asked  her  if  she  knew  where  there  was 
any  cigarettes.  So  the  guy  asked  her  again,  but  she  still  wouldn’t  answer  him.  She  didn’t 


even  look  up  from  the  game.  Finally  the  guy  went  inside  the  house.  When  he  did,  I  asked 
Jane  what  the  hell  was  going  on.  She  wouldn’t  even  answer  me,  then.  She  made  out  like 
she  was  concentrating  on  her  next  move  in  the  game  and  all.  Then  all  of  a  sudden,  this 
tear  plopped  down  on  the  checkerboard.  On  one  of  the  red  squares— boy,  I  can  still  see  it. 
She  just  rubbed  it  into  the  board  with  her  finger.  I  don’t  know  why,  but  it  bothered  hell 
out  of  me.  So  what  I  did  was,  I  went  over  and  made  her  move  over  on  the  glider  so  that  I 
could  sit  down  next  to  her— I  practically  sat  down  in  her  lap,  as  a  matter  of  fact.  Then  she 
really  started  to  cry,  and  the  next  thing  I  knew,  I  was  kissing  her  all  over— anywhere— her 
eyes,  her  nose,  her  forehead,  her  eyebrows  and  all,  her  ears— her  whole  face  except  her 
mouth  and  all.  She  sort  of  wouldn’t  let  me  get  to  her  mouth.  Anyway,  it  was  the  closest 
we  ever  got  to  necking.  After  a  while,  she  got  up  and  went  in  and  put  on  this  red  and 
white  sweater  she  had,  that  knocked  me  out,  and  we  went  to  a  goddam  movie.  I  asked 
her,  on  the  way,  if  Mr.  Cudahy— that  was  the  booze  hound's  name— had  ever  tried  to  get 
wise  with  her.  She  was  pretty  young,  but  she  had  this  terrific  figure,  and  I  wouldn’t've  put 
it  past  that  Cudahy  bastard.  She  said  no,  though.  I  never  did  find  out  what  the  hell  was  the 
matter.  Some  girls  you  practically  never  find  out  what's  the  matter. 

I  don’t  want  you  to  get  the  idea  she  was  a  goddam  icicle  or  something,  just 
because  we  never  necked  or  horsed  around  much.  She  wasn’t.  I  held  hands  with  her  all 
the  time,  for  instance.  That  doesn’t  sound  like  much,  I  realize,  but  she  was  terrific  to  hold 
hands  with.  Most  girls  if  you  hold  hands  with  them,  their  goddam  hand  dies  on  you,  or 
else  they  think  they  have  to  keep  moving  their  hand  all  the  time,  as  if  they  were  afraid 
they'd  bore  you  or  something.  Jane  was  different.  We’d  get  into  a  goddam  movie  or 
something,  and  right  away  we’d  start  holding  hands,  and  we  wouldn’t  quit  till  the  movie 
was  over.  And  without  changing  the  position  or  making  a  big  deal  out  of  it.  You  never 
even  worried,  with  Jane,  whether  your  hand  was  sweaty  or  not.  All  you  knew  was,  you 
were  happy.  You  really  were. 

One  other  thing  I  just  thought  of.  One  time,  in  this  movie,  Jane  did  something  that 
just  about  knocked  me  out.  The  newsreel  was  on  or  something,  and  all  of  a  sudden  I  felt 
this  hand  on  the  back  of  my  neck,  and  it  was  Jane's.  It  was  a  funny  thing  to  do.  I  mean 
she  was  quite  young  and  all,  and  most  girls  if  you  see  them  putting  their  hand  on  the  back 
of  somebody's  neck,  they're  around  twenty-five  or  thirty  and  usually  they're  doing  it  to 
their  husband  or  their  little  kid— I  do  it  to  my  kid  sister  Phoebe  once  in  a  while,  for 
instance.  But  if  a  girl's  quite  young  and  all  and  she  does  it,  it's  so  pretty  it  just  about  kills 
you. 

Anyway,  that's  what  I  was  thinking  about  while  I  sat  in  that  vomity-looking  chair 
in  the  lobby.  Old  Jane.  Every  time  I  got  to  the  part  about  her  out  with  Stradlater  in  that 
damn  Ed  Banky's  car,  it  almost  drove  me  crazy.  I  knew  she  wouldn’t  let  him  get  to  first 
base  with  her,  but  it  drove  me  crazy  anyway.  I  don’t  even  like  to  talk  about  it,  if  you  want 
to  know  the  truth. 

There  was  hardly  anybody  in  the  lobby  any  more.  Even  all  the  whory-looking 
blondes  weren’t  around  any  more,  and  all  of  a  sudden  I  felt  like  getting  the  hell  out  of  the 
place.  It  was  too  depressing.  And  I  wasn't  tired  or  anything.  So  I  went  up  to  my  room  and 
put  on  my  coat.  I  also  took  a  look  out  the  window  to  see  if  all  the  perverts  were  still  in 
action,  but  the  lights  and  all  were  out  now.  I  went  down  in  the  elevator  again  and  got  a 
cab  and  told  the  driver  to  take  me  down  to  Ernie's.  Ernie's  is  this  night  club  in  Greenwich 
Village  that  my  brother  D.B.  used  to  go  to  quite  frequently  before  he  went  out  to 


Hollywood  and  prostituted  himself.  He  used  to  take  me  with  him  once  in  a  while.  Ernie's 
a  big  fat  colored  guy  that  plays  the  piano.  He's  a  terrific  snob  and  he  won’t  hardly  even 
talk  to  you  unless  you're  a  big  shot  or  a  celebrity  or  something,  but  he  can  really  play  the 
piano.  He's  so  good  he's  almost  corny,  in  fact.  I  don’t  exactly  know  what  I  mean  by  that, 
but  I  mean  it.  I  certainly  like  to  hear  him  play,  but  sometimes  you  feel  like  turning  his 
goddam  piano  over.  I  think  it's  because  sometimes  when  he  plays,  he  sounds  like  the  kind 
of  guy  that  won’t  talk  to  you  unless  you’re  a  big  shot. 


12 


The  cab  I  had  was  a  real  old  one  that  smelled  like  someone’d  just  tossed  his 
cookies  in  it.  I  always  get  those  vomity  kind  of  cabs  if  I  go  anywhere  late  at  night.  What 
made  it  worse,  it  was  so  quiet  and  lonesome  out,  even  though  it  was  Saturday  night.  I 
didn't  see  hardly  anybody  on  the  street.  Now  and  then  you  just  saw  a  man  and  a  girl 
crossing  a  street,  with  their  arms  around  each  other's  waists  and  all,  or  a  bunch  of 
hoodlumy-looking  guys  and  their  dates,  all  of  them  laughing  like  hyenas  at  something 
you  could  bet  wasn’t  funny.  New  York's  terrible  when  somebody  laughs  on  the  street  very 
late  at  night.  You  can  hear  it  for  miles.  It  makes  you  feel  so  lonesome  and  depressed.  I 
kept  wishing  I  could  go  home  and  shoot  the  bull  for  a  while  with  old  Phoebe.  But  finally, 
after  I  was  riding  a  while,  the  cab  driver  and  I  sort  of  struck  up  a  conversation.  His  name 
was  Horwitz.  He  was  a  much  better  guy  than  the  other  driver  I’d  had.  Anyway,  I  thought 
maybe  he  might  know  about  the  ducks. 

"Hey,  Horwitz,"  I  said.  "You  ever  pass  by  the  lagoon  in  Central  Park?  Down  by 
Central  Park  South?" 

"The  what?" 

"The  lagoon.  That  little  lake,  like,  there.  Where  the  ducks  are.  You  know." 

"Yeah,  what  about  it?" 

"Well,  you  know  the  ducks  that  swim  around  in  it?  In  the  springtime  and  all?  Do 
you  happen  to  know  where  they  go  in  the  wintertime,  by  any  chance?" 

"Where  who  goes?" 

"The  ducks.  Do  you  know,  by  any  chance?  I  mean  does  somebody  come  around 
in  a  truck  or  something  and  take  them  away,  or  do  they  fly  away  by  themselves— go  south 
or  something?" 

Old  Horwitz  turned  all  the  way  around  and  looked  at  me.  He  was  a  very 
impatient-type  guy.  He  wasn’t  a  bad  guy,  though.  "How  the  hell  should  I  know?"  he  said. 
"How  the  hell  should  I  know  a  stupid  thing  like  that?" 

"Well,  don't  get  sore  about  it,"  I  said.  He  was  sore  about  it  or  something. 

"Who's  sore?  Nobody's  sore." 

I  stopped  having  a  conversation  with  him,  if  he  was  going  to  get  so  damn  touchy 
about  it.  But  he  started  it  up  again  himself.  He  turned  all  the  way  around  again,  and  said, 
"The  fish  don’t  go  no  place.  They  stay  right  where  they  are,  the  fish.  Right  in  the  goddam 
lake." 

"The  fish— that's  different.  The  fish  is  different.  I'm  talking  about  the  ducks,"  I 

said. 


"What's  different  about  it?  Nothin’s  different  about  it,"  Horwitz  said.  Everything 
he  said,  he  sounded  sore  about  something.  "It’s  tougher  for  the  fish,  the  winter  and  all, 
than  it  is  for  the  ducks,  for  Chrissake.  Use  your  head,  for  Chrissake." 

I  didn’t  say  anything  for  about  a  minute.  Then  I  said,  "All  right.  What  do  they  do, 
the  fish  and  all,  when  that  whole  little  lake's  a  solid  block  of  ice,  people  skating  on  it  and 
all?" 

Old  Horwitz  turned  around  again.  "What  the  hellaya  mean  what  do  they  do?"  he 
yelled  at  me.  "They  stay  right  where  they  are,  for  Chrissake." 

"They  can't  just  ignore  the  ice.  They  can’t  just  ignore  it." 

"Who's  ignoring  it?  Nobody's  ignoring  it!"  Horwitz  said.  He  got  so  damn  excited 
and  all,  I  was  afraid  he  was  going  to  drive  the  cab  right  into  a  lamppost  or  something. 
"They  live  right  in  the  goddam  ice.  It's  their  nature,  for  Chrissake.  They  get  frozen  right 
in  one  position  for  the  whole  winter." 

"Yeah?  What  do  they  eat,  then?  I  mean  if  they’re  frozen  solid,  they  can't  swim 
around  looking  for  food  and  all." 

"Their  bodies,  for  Chrissake— what'sa  matter  with  ya?  Their  bodies  take  in 
nutrition  and  all,  right  through  the  goddam  seaweed  and  crap  that's  in  the  ice.  They  got 
their  pores  open  the  whole  time.  That’s  their  nature,  for  Chrissake.  See  what  I  mean?"  He 
turned  way  the  hell  around  again  to  look  at  me. 

"Oh,"  I  said.  I  let  it  drop.  I  was  afraid  he  was  going  to  crack  the  damn  taxi  up  or 
something.  Besides,  he  was  such  a  touchy  guy,  it  wasn’t  any  pleasure  discussing  anything 
with  him.  "Would  you  care  to  stop  off  and  have  a  drink  with  me  somewhere?"  I  said. 

He  didn't  answer  me,  though.  I  guess  he  was  still  thinking.  I  asked  him  again, 
though.  He  was  a  pretty  good  guy.  Quite  amusing  and  all. 

"I  ain’t  got  no  time  for  no  liquor,  bud,"  he  said.  "How  the  hell  old  are  you, 
anyways?  Why  ain'tcha  home  in  bed?" 

"I'm  not  tired." 

When  I  got  out  in  front  of  Ernie's  and  paid  the  fare,  old  Horwitz  brought  up  the 
fish  again.  He  certainly  had  it  on  his  mind.  "Listen,"  he  said.  "If  you  was  a  fish,  Mother 
Nature’d  take  care  of  you,  wouldn’t  she?  Right?  You  don’t  think  them  fish  just  die  when  it 
gets  to  be  winter,  do  ya?" 

"No,  but—" 

"You're  goddam  right  they  don't,"  Horwitz  said,  and  drove  off  like  a  bat  out  of 
hell.  He  was  about  the  touchiest  guy  I  ever  met.  Everything  you  said  made  him  sore. 

Even  though  it  was  so  late,  old  Ernie's  was  jampacked.  Mostly  with  prep  school 
jerks  and  college  jerks.  Almost  every  damn  school  in  the  world  gets  out  earlier  for 
Christmas  vacation  than  the  schools  I  go  to.  You  could  hardly  check  your  coat,  it  was  so 
crowded.  It  was  pretty  quiet,  though,  because  Ernie  was  playing  the  piano.  It  was 
supposed  to  be  something  holy,  for  God's  sake,  when  he  sat  down  at  the  piano.  Nobody's 
that  good.  About  three  couples,  besides  me,  were  waiting  for  tables,  and  they  were  all 
shoving  and  standing  on  tiptoes  to  get  a  look  at  old  Ernie  while  he  played.  He  had  a  big 
damn  mirror  in  front  of  the  piano,  with  this  big  spotlight  on  him,  so  that  everybody  could 
watch  his  face  while  he  played.  You  couldn’t  see  his  fingers  while  he  played— just  his  big 
old  face.  Big  deal.  I'm  not  too  sure  what  the  name  of  the  song  was  that  he  was  playing 
when  I  came  in,  but  whatever  it  was,  he  was  really  stinking  it  up.  He  was  putting  all  these 
dumb,  show-offy  ripples  in  the  high  notes,  and  a  lot  of  other  very  tricky  stuff  that  gives 


me  a  pain  in  the  ass.  You  should've  heard  the  crowd,  though,  when  he  was  finished.  You 
would've  puked.  They  went  mad.  They  were  exactly  the  same  morons  that  laugh  like 
hyenas  in  the  movies  at  stuff  that  isn’t  funny.  I  swear  to  God,  if  I  were  a  piano  player  or 
an  actor  or  something  and  all  those  dopes  thought  I  was  terrific,  I’d  hate  it.  I  wouldn’t 
even  want  them  to  clap  for  me.  People  always  clap  for  the  wrong  things.  If  I  were  a  piano 
player,  I’d  play  it  in  the  goddam  closet.  Anyway,  when  he  was  finished,  and  everybody 
was  clapping  their  heads  off,  old  Ernie  turned  around  on  his  stool  and  gave  this  very 
phony,  humble  bow.  Like  as  if  he  was  a  helluva  humble  guy,  besides  being  a  terrific 
piano  player.  It  was  very  phony— I  mean  him  being  such  a  big  snob  and  all.  In  a  funny 
way,  though,  I  felt  sort  of  sorry  for  him  when  he  was  finished.  I  don’t  even  think  he 
knows  any  more  when  he's  playing  right  or  not.  It  isn’t  all  his  fault.  I  partly  blame  all 
those  dopes  that  clap  their  heads  off— they'd  foul  up  anybody,  if  you  gave  them  a  chance. 
Anyway,  it  made  me  feel  depressed  and  lousy  again,  and  I  damn  near  got  my  coat  back 
and  went  back  to  the  hotel,  but  it  was  too  early  and  I  didn’t  feel  much  like  being  all  alone. 

They  finally  got  me  this  stinking  table,  right  up  against  a  wall  and  behind  a 
goddam  post,  where  you  couldn’t  see  anything.  It  was  one  of  those  tiny  little  tables  that  if 
the  people  at  the  next  table  don’t  get  up  to  let  you  by— and  they  never  do,  the  bastards— 
you  practically  have  to  climb  into  your  chair.  I  ordered  a  Scotch  and  soda,  which  is  my 
favorite  drink,  next  to  frozen  Daiquiris.  If  you  were  only  around  six  years  old,  you  could 
get  liquor  at  Ernie's,  the  place  was  so  dark  and  all,  and  besides,  nobody  cared  how  old 
you  were.  You  could  even  be  a  dope  fiend  and  nobody'd  care. 

I  was  surrounded  by  jerks.  I'm  not  kidding.  At  this  other  tiny  table,  right  to  my 
left,  practically  on  top  of  me,  there  was  this  funny-looking  guy  and  this  funny-looking 
girl.  They  were  around  my  age,  or  maybe  just  a  little  older.  It  was  funny.  You  could  see 
they  were  being  careful  as  hell  not  to  drink  up  the  minimum  too  fast.  I  listened  to  their 
conversation  for  a  while,  because  I  didn’t  have  anything  else  to  do.  He  was  telling  her 
about  some  pro  football  game  he’d  seen  that  afternoon.  He  gave  her  every  single  goddam 
play  in  the  whole  game— I'm  not  kidding.  He  was  the  most  boring  guy  I  ever  listened  to. 
And  you  could  tell  his  date  wasn’t  even  interested  in  the  goddam  game,  but  she  was  even 
funnier-looking  than  he  was,  so  I  guess  she  had  to  listen.  Real  ugly  girls  have  it  tough.  I 
feel  so  sorry  for  them  sometimes.  Sometimes  I  can't  even  look  at  them,  especially  if 
they’re  with  some  dopey  guy  that's  telling  them  all  about  a  goddam  football  game.  On  my 
right,  the  conversation  was  even  worse,  though.  On  my  right  there  was  this  very  Joe 
Yale-looking  guy,  in  a  gray  flannel  suit  and  one  of  those  flitty-looking  Tattersall  vests. 
All  those  Ivy  League  bastards  look  alike.  My  father  wants  me  to  go  to  Yale,  or  maybe 
Princeton,  but  I  swear,  I  wouldn’t  go  to  one  of  those  Ivy  League  colleges,  if  I  was  dying, 
for  God's  sake.  Anyway,  this  Joe  Yale-looking  guy  had  a  terrific-looking  girl  with  him. 
Boy,  she  was  good-looking.  But  you  should've  heard  the  conversation  they  were  having. 
In  the  first  place,  they  were  both  slightly  crocked.  What  he  was  doing,  he  was  giving  her 
a  feel  under  the  table,  and  at  the  same  time  telling  her  all  about  some  guy  in  his  dorm  that 
had  eaten  a  whole  bottle  of  aspirin  and  nearly  committed  suicide.  His  date  kept  saying  to 
him,  "How  horrible  .  .  .  Don't,  darling.  Please,  don’t.  Not  here."  Imagine  giving  somebody 
a  feel  and  telling  them  about  a  guy  committing  suicide  at  the  same  time!  They  killed  me. 

I  certainly  began  to  feel  like  a  prize  horse's  ass,  though,  sitting  there  all  by  myself. 
There  wasn’t  anything  to  do  except  smoke  and  drink.  What  I  did  do,  though,  I  told  the 
waiter  to  ask  old  Ernie  if  he’d  care  to  join  me  for  a  drink.  I  told  him  to  tell  him  I  was 


D.B.'s  brother.  I  don’t  think  he  ever  even  gave  him  my  message,  though.  Those  bastards 
never  give  your  message  to  anybody. 

All  of  a  sudden,  this  girl  came  up  to  me  and  said,  "Holden  Caulfield!"  Her  name 
was  Lillian  Simmons.  My  brother  D.B.  used  to  go  around  with  her  for  a  while.  She  had 
very  big  knockers. 

"Hi,"  I  said.  I  tried  to  get  up,  naturally,  but  it  was  some  job  getting  up,  in  a  place 
like  that.  She  had  some  Navy  officer  with  her  that  looked  like  he  had  a  poker  up  his  ass. 

"How  marvelous  to  see  you!"  old  Lillian  Simmons  said.  Strictly  a  phony.  "How's 
your  big  brother?"  That's  all  she  really  wanted  to  know. 

"He's  fine.  He's  in  Hollywood." 

"In  Hollywood!  How  marvelous!  What's  he  doing?" 

"I  don't  know.  Writing,"  I  said.  I  didn’t  feel  like  discussing  it.  You  could  tell  she 
thought  it  was  a  big  deal,  his  being  in  Hollywood.  Almost  everybody  does.  Mostly  people 
who've  never  read  any  of  his  stories.  It  drives  me  crazy,  though. 

"How  exciting,"  old  Lillian  said.  Then  she  introduced  me  to  the  Navy  guy.  His 
name  was  Commander  Blop  or  something.  He  was  one  of  those  guys  that  think  they're 
being  a  pansy  if  they  don’t  break  around  forty  of  your  fingers  when  they  shake  hands  with 
you.  God,  I  hate  that  stuff.  "Are  you  all  alone,  baby?"  old  Lillian  asked  me.  She  was 
blocking  up  the  whole  goddam  traffic  in  the  aisle.  You  could  tell  she  liked  to  block  up  a 
lot  of  traffic.  This  waiter  was  waiting  for  her  to  move  out  of  the  way,  but  she  didn’t  even 
notice  him.  It  was  funny.  You  could  tell  the  waiter  didn’t  like  her  much,  you  could  tell 
even  the  Navy  guy  didn’t  like  her  much,  even  though  he  was  dating  her.  And  I  didn’t  like 
her  much.  Nobody  did.  You  had  to  feel  sort  of  sorry  for  her,  in  a  way.  "Don’t  you  have  a 
date,  baby?"  she  asked  me.  I  was  standing  up  now,  and  she  didn’t  even  tell  me  to  sit 
down.  She  was  the  type  that  keeps  you  standing  up  for  hours.  "Isn’t  he  handsome?"  she 
said  to  the  Navy  guy.  "Holden,  you're  getting  handsomer  by  the  minute."  The  Navy  guy 
told  her  to  come  on.  He  told  her  they  were  blocking  up  the  whole  aisle.  "Holden,  come 
join  us,"  old  Lillian  said.  "Bring  your  drink." 

"I  was  just  leaving,"  I  told  her.  "I  have  to  meet  somebody."  You  could  tell  she  was 
just  trying  to  get  in  good  with  me.  So  that  I’d  tell  old  D.B.  about  it. 

"Well,  you  little  so-and-so.  All  right  for  you.  Tell  your  big  brother  I  hate  him, 
when  you  see  him." 

Then  she  left.  The  Navy  guy  and  I  told  each  other  we  were  glad  to've  met  each 
other.  Which  always  kills  me.  I'm  always  saying  "Glad  to've  met  you"  to  somebody  I'm 
not  at  all  glad  I  met.  If  you  want  to  stay  alive,  you  have  to  say  that  stuff,  though. 

After  I’d  told  her  I  had  to  meet  somebody,  I  didn’t  have  any  goddam  choice  except 
to  leave.  I  couldn’t  even  stick  around  to  hear  old  Ernie  play  something  halfway  decent. 
But  I  certainly  wasn't  going  to  sit  down  at  a  table  with  old  Lillian  Simmons  and  that  Navy 
guy  and  be  bored  to  death.  So  I  left.  It  made  me  mad,  though,  when  I  was  getting  my 
coat.  People  are  always  ruining  things  for  you. 


13 


I  walked  all  the  way  back  to  the  hotel.  Forty-one  gorgeous  blocks.  I  didn’t  do  it 
because  I  felt  like  walking  or  anything.  It  was  more  because  I  didn't  feel  like  getting  in 


and  out  of  another  taxicab.  Sometimes  you  get  tired  of  riding  in  taxicabs  the  same  way 
you  get  tired  riding  in  elevators.  All  of  a  sudden,  you  have  to  walk,  no  matter  how  far  or 
how  high  up.  When  I  was  a  kid,  I  used  to  walk  all  the  way  up  to  our  apartment  very 
frequently.  Twelve  stories. 

You  wouldn’t  even  have  known  it  had  snowed  at  all.  There  was  hardly  any  snow 
on  the  sidewalks.  But  it  was  freezing  cold,  and  I  took  my  red  hunting  hat  out  of  my 
pocket  and  put  it  on— I  didn’t  give  a  damn  how  I  looked.  I  even  put  the  earlaps  down.  I 
wished  I  knew  who’d  swiped  my  gloves  at  Pencey,  because  my  hands  were  freezing.  Not 
that  I’d  have  done  much  about  it  even  if  I  had  known.  I’m  one  of  these  very  yellow  guys.  I 
try  not  to  show  it,  but  I  am.  For  instance,  if  I’d  found  out  at  Pencey  who’d  stolen  my 
gloves,  I  probably  would've  gone  down  to  the  crook's  room  and  said,  "Okay.  How  'bout 
handing  over  those  gloves?"  Then  the  crook  that  had  stolen  them  probably  would've  said, 
his  voice  very  innocent  and  all,  "What  gloves?"  Then  what  I  probably  would've  done,  I’d 
have  gone  in  his  closet  and  found  the  gloves  somewhere.  Hidden  in  his  goddam  galoshes 
or  something,  for  instance.  I'd  have  taken  them  out  and  showed  them  to  the  guy  and  said, 
"I  suppose  these  are  your  goddam  gloves?"  Then  the  crook  probably  would've  given  me 
this  very  phony,  innocent  look,  and  said,  "I  never  saw  those  gloves  before  in  my  life.  If 
they're  yours,  take  ’em.  I  don’t  want  the  goddam  things."  Then  I  probably  would've  just 
stood  there  for  about  five  minutes.  I’d  have  the  damn  gloves  right  in  my  hand  and  all,  but 
I’d  feel  I  ought  to  sock  the  guy  in  the  jaw  or  something— break  his  goddam  jaw.  Only,  I 
wouldn't  have  the  guts  to  do  it.  I’d  just  stand  there,  trying  to  look  tough.  What  I  might  do, 

I  might  say  something  very  cutting  and  snotty,  to  rile  him  up— instead  of  socking  him  in 
the  jaw.  Anyway  if  I  did  say  something  very  cutting  and  snotty,  he’d  probably  get  up  and 
come  over  to  me  and  say,  "Listen,  Caulfield.  Are  you  calling  me  a  crook?"  Then,  instead 
of  saying,  "You're  goddam  right  I  am,  you  dirty  crooked  bastard!"  all  I  probably  would've 
said  would  be,  "All  I  know  is  my  goddam  gloves  were  in  your  goddam  galoshes."  Right 
away  then,  the  guy  would  know  for  sure  that  I  wasn’t  going  to  take  a  sock  at  him,  and  he 
probably  would've  said,  "Listen.  Let's  get  this  straight.  Are  you  calling  me  a  thief?"  Then 
I  probably  would've  said,  "Nobody's  calling  anybody  a  thief.  All  I  know  is  my  gloves 
were  in  your  goddam  galoshes."  It  could  go  on  like  that  for  hours.  Finally,  though,  I’d 
leave  his  room  without  even  taking  a  sock  at  him.  I’d  probably  go  down  to  the  can  and 
sneak  a  cigarette  and  watch  myself  getting  tough  in  the  mirror.  Anyway,  that's  what  I 
thought  about  the  whole  way  back  to  the  hotel.  It's  no  fun  to  he  yellow.  Maybe  I'm  not  all 
yellow.  I  don’t  know.  I  think  maybe  I'm  just  partly  yellow  and  partly  the  type  that  doesn't 
give  much  of  a  damn  if  they  lose  their  gloves.  One  of  my  troubles  is,  I  never  care  too 
much  when  I  lose  something— it  used  to  drive  my  mother  crazy  when  I  was  a  kid.  Some 
guys  spend  days  looking  for  something  they  lost.  I  never  seem  to  have  anything  that  if  I 
lost  it  I’d  care  too  much.  Maybe  that's  why  I'm  partly  yellow.  It's  no  excuse,  though.  It 
really  isn't.  What  you  should  be  is  not  yellow  at  all.  If  you're  supposed  to  sock  somebody 
in  the  jaw,  and  you  sort  of  feel  like  doing  it,  you  should  do  it.  I'm  just  no  good  at  it, 
though.  I'd  rather  push  a  guy  out  the  window  or  chop  his  head  off  with  an  ax  than  sock 
him  in  the  jaw.  I  hate  fist  fights.  I  don’t  mind  getting  hit  so  much— although  I'm  not  crazy 
about  it,  naturally— but  what  scares  me  most  in  a  fist  fight  is  the  guy's  face.  I  can't  stand 
looking  at  the  other  guy's  face,  is  my  trouble.  It  wouldn’t  be  so  bad  if  you  could  both  be 
blindfolded  or  something.  It’s  a  funny  kind  of  yellowness,  when  you  come  to  think  of  it, 
but  it's  yellowness,  all  right.  I’m  not  kidding  myself. 


The  more  I  thought  about  my  gloves  and  my  yellowness,  the  more  depressed  I 
got,  and  I  decided,  while  I  was  walking  and  all,  to  stop  off  and  have  a  drink  somewhere. 
I’d  only  had  three  drinks  at  Ernie’s,  and  I  didn’t  even  finish  the  last  one.  One  thing  I  have, 
it's  a  terrific  capacity.  I  can  drink  all  night  and  not  even  show  it,  if  I'm  in  the  mood.  Once, 
at  the  Whooton  School,  this  other  boy,  Raymond  Goldfarb,  and  I  bought  a  pint  of  Scotch 
and  drank  it  in  the  chapel  one  Saturday  night,  where  nobody’d  see  us.  He  got  stinking,  but 
I  hardly  didn’t  even  show  it.  I  just  got  very  cool  and  nonchalant.  I  puked  before  I  went  to 
bed,  but  I  didn’t  really  have  to— I  forced  myself. 

Anyway,  before  I  got  to  the  hotel,  I  started  to  go  in  this  dumpy-looking  bar,  but 
two  guys  came  out,  drunk  as  hell,  and  wanted  to  know  where  the  subway  was.  One  of 
them  was  this  very  Cuban-looking  guy,  and  he  kept  breathing  his  stinking  breath  in  my 
face  while  I  gave  him  directions.  I  ended  up  not  even  going  in  the  damn  bar.  I  just  went 
back  to  the  hotel. 

The  whole  lobby  was  empty.  It  smelled  like  fifty  million  dead  cigars.  It  really  did. 
I  wasn’t  sleepy  or  anything,  but  I  was  feeling  sort  of  lousy.  Depressed  and  all.  I  almost 
wished  I  was  dead. 

Then,  all  of  a  sudden,  I  got  in  this  big  mess. 

The  first  thing  when  I  got  in  the  elevator,  the  elevator  guy  said  to  me,  "Innarested 
in  having  a  good  time,  fella?  Or  is  it  too  late  for  you?" 

"How  do  you  mean?"  I  said.  I  didn’t  know  what  he  was  driving  at  or  anything. 

"Innarested  in  a  little  tail  t'night?" 

"Me?"  I  said.  Which  was  a  very  dumb  answer,  but  it's  quite  embarrassing  when 
somebody  comes  right  up  and  asks  you  a  question  like  that. 

"How  old  are  you,  chief?"  the  elevator  guy  said. 

"Why?"  I  said.  "Twenty-two." 

"Uh  huh.  Well,  how  'bout  it?  Y’innarested?  Five  bucks  a  throw.  Fifteen  bucks  the 
whole  night."  He  looked  at  his  wrist  watch.  "Till  noon.  Five  bucks  a  throw,  fifteen  bucks 
till  noon." 

"Okay,"  I  said.  It  was  against  my  principles  and  all,  but  I  was  feeling  so  depressed 
I  didn't  even  think.  That’s  the  whole  trouble.  When  you're  feeling  very  depressed,  you 
can’t  even  think. 

"Okay  what?  A  throw,  or  till  noon?  I  gotta  know." 

"Just  a  throw." 

"Okay,  what  room  ya  in?" 

I  looked  at  the  red  thing  with  my  number  on  it,  on  my  key.  "Twelve  twenty-two," 

I  said.  I  was  already  sort  of  sorry  I’d  let  the  thing  start  rolling,  but  it  was  too  late  now. 

"Okay.  I'll  send  a  girl  up  in  about  fifteen  minutes."  He  opened  the  doors  and  I  got 

out. 

"Hey,  is  she  good-looking?"  I  asked  him.  "I  don't  want  any  old  bag." 

"No  old  bag.  Don't  worry  about  it,  chief." 

"Who  do  I  pay?" 

"Her,"  he  said.  "Let's  go,  chief."  He  shut  the  doors,  practically  right  in  my  face. 

I  went  to  my  room  and  put  some  water  on  my  hair,  but  you  can't  really  comb  a 
crew  cut  or  anything.  Then  I  tested  to  see  if  my  breath  stank  from  so  many  cigarettes  and 
the  Scotch  and  sodas  I  drank  at  Ernie's.  All  you  do  is  hold  your  hand  under  your  mouth 
and  blow  your  breath  up  toward  the  old  nostrils.  It  didn’t  seem  to  stink  much,  but  I 


brushed  my  teeth  anyway.  Then  I  put  on  another  clean  shirt.  I  knew  I  didn’t  have  to  get 
all  dolled  up  for  a  prostitute  or  anything,  but  it  sort  of  gave  me  something  to  do.  I  was  a 
little  nervous.  I  was  starting  to  feel  pretty  sexy  and  all,  but  I  was  a  little  nervous  anyway. 
If  you  want  to  know  the  truth,  I'm  a  virgin.  I  really  am.  I've  had  quite  a  few  opportunities 
to  lose  my  virginity  and  all,  but  I've  never  got  around  to  it  yet.  Something  always 
happens.  For  instance,  if  you're  at  a  girl's  house,  her  parents  always  come  home  at  the 
wrong  time— or  you're  afraid  they  will.  Or  if  you're  in  the  back  seat  of  somebody's  car, 
there's  always  somebody's  date  in  the  front  seat— some  girl,  I  mean— that  always  wants  to 
know  what's  going  on  all  over  the  whole  goddam  car.  I  mean  some  girl  in  front  keeps 
turning  around  to  see  what  the  hell's  going  on.  Anyway,  something  always  happens.  I 
came  quite  close  to  doing  it  a  couple  of  times,  though.  One  time  in  particular,  I 
remember.  Something  went  wrong,  though  —I  don’t  even  remember  what  any  more.  The 
thing  is,  most  of  the  time  when  you're  coming  pretty  close  to  doing  it  with  a  girl— a  girl 
that  isn’t  a  prostitute  or  anything,  I  mean— she  keeps  telling  you  to  stop.  The  trouble  with 
me  is,  I  stop.  Most  guys  don't.  I  can't  help  it.  You  never  know  whether  they  really  want 
you  to  stop,  or  whether  they're  just  scared  as  hell,  or  whether  they're  just  telling  you  to 
stop  so  that  if  you  do  go  through  with  it,  the  blame’ll  be  on  you,  not  them.  Anyway,  I 
keep  stopping.  The  trouble  is,  I  get  to  feeling  sorry  for  them.  I  mean  most  girls  are  so 
dumb  and  all.  After  you  neck  them  for  a  while,  you  can  really  watch  them  losing  their 
brains.  You  take  a  girl  when  she  really  gets  passionate,  she  just  hasn't  any  brains.  I  don’t 
know.  They  tell  me  to  stop,  so  I  stop.  I  always  wish  I  hadn’t,  after  I  take  them  home,  but  I 
keep  doing  it  anyway. 

Anyway,  while  I  was  putting  on  another  clean  shirt,  I  sort  of  figured  this  was  my 
big  chance,  in  a  way.  I  figured  if  she  was  a  prostitute  and  all,  I  could  get  in  some  practice 
on  her,  in  case  I  ever  get  married  or  anything.  I  worry  about  that  stuff  sometimes.  I  read 
this  book  once,  at  the  Whooton  School,  that  had  this  very  sophisticated,  suave,  sexy  guy 
in  it.  Monsieur  Blanchard  was  his  name,  I  can  still  remember.  It  was  a  lousy  book,  but 
this  Blanchard  guy  was  pretty  good.  He  had  this  big  chateau  and  all  on  the  Riviera,  in 
Europe,  and  all  he  did  in  his  spare  time  was  beat  women  off  with  a  club.  He  was  a  real 
rake  and  all,  but  he  knocked  women  out.  He  said,  in  this  one  part,  that  a  woman's  body  is 
like  a  violin  and  all,  and  that  it  takes  a  terrific  musician  to  play  it  right.  It  was  a  very 
corny  book— I  realize  that— but  I  couldn’t  get  that  violin  stuff  out  of  my  mind  anyway.  In  a 
way,  that's  why  I  sort  of  wanted  to  get  some  practice  in,  in  case  I  ever  get  married. 
Caulfield  and  his  Magic  Violin,  boy.  It's  corny,  I  realize,  but  it  isn't  too  corny.  I  wouldn't 
mind  being  pretty  good  at  that  stuff.  Half  the  time,  if  you  really  want  to  know  the  truth, 
when  I'm  horsing  around  with  a  girl,  I  have  a  helluva  lot  of  trouble  just  finding  what  I'm 
looking  for,  for  God's  sake,  if  you  know  what  I  mean.  Take  this  girl  that  I  just  missed 
having  sexual  intercourse  with,  that  I  told  you  about.  It  took  me  about  an  hour  to  just  get 
her  goddam  brassiere  off.  By  the  time  I  did  get  it  off,  she  was  about  ready  to  spit  in  my 
eye. 

Anyway,  I  kept  walking  around  the  room,  waiting  for  this  prostitute  to  show  up.  I 
kept  hoping  she’d  be  good-looking.  I  didn’t  care  too  much,  though.  I  sort  of  just  wanted  to 
get  it  over  with.  Finally,  somebody  knocked  on  the  door,  and  when  I  went  to  open  it,  I 
had  my  suitcase  right  in  the  way  and  I  fell  over  it  and  damn  near  broke  my  knee.  I  always 
pick  a  gorgeous  time  to  fall  over  a  suitcase  or  something. 


When  I  opened  the  door,  this  prostitute  was  standing  there.  She  had  a  polo  coat 
on,  and  no  hat.  She  was  sort  of  a  blonde,  but  you  could  tell  she  dyed  her  hair.  She  wasn’t 
any  old  bag,  though.  "How  do  you  do,"  I  said.  Suave  as  hell,  boy. 

"You  the  guy  Maurice  said?"  she  asked  me.  She  didn’t  seem  too  goddam  friendly. 

"Is  he  the  elevator  boy?" 

"Yeah,"  she  said. 

"Yes,  I  am.  Come  in,  won’t  you?"  I  said.  I  was  getting  more  and  more  nonchalant 
as  it  went  along.  I  really  was. 

She  came  in  and  took  her  coat  off  right  away  and  sort  of  chucked  it  on  the  bed. 

She  had  on  a  green  dress  underneath.  Then  she  sort  of  sat  down  sideways  on  the  chair 
that  went  with  the  desk  in  the  room  and  started  jiggling  her  foot  up  and  down.  She 
crossed  her  legs  and  started  jiggling  this  one  foot  up  and  down.  She  was  very  nervous,  for 
a  prostitute.  She  really  was.  I  think  it  was  because  she  was  young  as  hell.  She  was  around 
my  age.  I  sat  down  in  the  big  chair,  next  to  her,  and  offered  her  a  cigarette.  "I  don’t 
smoke,"  she  said.  She  had  a  tiny  little  wheeny-whiny  voice.  You  could  hardly  hear  her. 
She  never  said  thank  you,  either,  when  you  offered  her  something.  She  just  didn’t  know 
any  better. 

"Allow  me  to  introduce  myself.  My  name  is  Jim  Steele,"  I  said. 

"Ya  got  a  watch  on  ya?"  she  said.  She  didn’t  care  what  the  hell  my  name  was, 
naturally.  "Hey,  how  old  are  you,  anyways?" 

"Me?  Twenty-two." 

"Like  fun  you  are." 

It  was  a  funny  thing  to  say.  It  sounded  like  a  real  kid.  You'd  think  a  prostitute  and 
all  would  say  "Like  hell  you  are"  or  "Cut  the  crap"  instead  of  "Like  fun  you  are." 

"How  old  are  you?"  I  asked  her. 

"Old  enough  to  know  better,"  she  said.  She  was  really  witty.  "Ya  got  a  watch  on 
ya?"  she  asked  me  again,  and  then  she  stood  up  and  pulled  her  dress  over  her  head. 

I  certainly  felt  peculiar  when  she  did  that.  I  mean  she  did  it  so  sudden  and  all.  I 
know  you're  supposed  to  feel  pretty  sexy  when  somebody  gets  up  and  pulls  their  dress 
over  their  head,  but  I  didn’t.  Sexy  was  about  the  last  thing  I  was  feeling.  I  felt  much  more 
depressed  than  sexy. 

"Ya  got  a  watch  on  ya,  hey?" 

"No.  No,  I  don't,"  I  said.  Boy,  was  I  feeling  peculiar.  "What's  your  name?"  I  asked 
her.  All  she  had  on  was  this  pink  slip.  It  was  really  quite  embarrassing.  It  really  was. 

"Sunny,"  she  said.  "Let's  go,  hey." 

"Don't  you  feel  like  talking  for  a  while?"  I  asked  her.  It  was  a  childish  thing  to 
say,  but  I  was  feeling  so  damn  peculiar.  "Are  you  in  a  very  big  hurry?" 

She  looked  at  me  like  I  was  a  madman.  "What  the  heck  ya  wanna  talk  about?"  she 

said. 

"I  don’t  know.  Nothing  special.  I  just  thought  perhaps  you  might  care  to  chat  for  a 

while." 

She  sat  down  in  the  chair  next  to  the  desk  again.  She  didn't  like  it,  though,  you 
could  tell.  She  started  jiggling  her  foot  again— boy,  she  was  a  nervous  girl. 

"Would  you  care  for  a  cigarette  now?"  I  said.  I  forgot  she  didn't  smoke. 

"I  don’t  smoke.  Listen,  if  you're  gonna  talk,  do  it.  I  got  things  to  do." 


I  couldn’t  think  of  anything  to  talk  about,  though.  I  thought  of  asking  her  how  she 
got  to  be  a  prostitute  and  all,  but  I  was  scared  to  ask  her.  She  probably  wouldn't've  told 
me  anyway. 

"You  don't  come  from  New  York,  do  you?"  I  said  finally.  That's  all  I  could  think 
of. 

"Hollywood,"  she  said.  Then  she  got  up  and  went  over  to  where  she’d  put  her 
dress  down,  on  the  bed.  "Ya  got  a  hanger?  I  don’t  want  to  get  my  dress  all  wrinkly.  It's 
brand-clean." 

"Sure,"  I  said  right  away.  I  was  only  too  glad  to  get  up  and  do  something.  I  took 
her  dress  over  to  the  closet  and  hung  it  up  for  her.  It  was  funny.  It  made  me  feel  sort  of 
sad  when  I  hung  it  up.  I  thought  of  her  going  in  a  store  and  buying  it,  and  nobody  in  the 
store  knowing  she  was  a  prostitute  and  all.  The  salesman  probably  just  thought  she  was  a 
regular  girl  when  she  bought  it.  It  made  me  feel  sad  as  hell— I  don’t  know  why  exactly. 

I  sat  down  again  and  tried  to  keep  the  old  conversation  going.  She  was  a  lousy 
conversationalist.  "Do  you  work  every  night?"  I  asked  her— it  sounded  sort  of  awful,  after 
I’d  said  it. 

"Yeah."  She  was  walking  all  around  the  room.  She  picked  up  the  menu  off  the 
desk  and  read  it. 

"What  do  you  do  during  the  day?" 

She  sort  of  shrugged  her  shoulders.  She  was  pretty  skinny.  "Sleep.  Go  to  the 
show."  She  put  down  the  menu  and  looked  at  me.  "Let's  go,  hey.  I  haven’t  got  all—" 

"Look,"  I  said.  "I  don’t  feel  very  much  like  myself  tonight.  I've  had  a  rough  night. 
Honest  to  God.  I’ll  pay  you  and  all,  but  do  you  mind  very  much  if  we  don’t  do  it?  Do  you 
mind  very  much?"  The  trouble  was,  I  just  didn’t  want  to  do  it.  I  felt  more  depressed  than 
sexy,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth.  She  was  depressing.  Her  green  dress  hanging  in  the 
closet  and  all.  And  besides,  I  don't  think  I  could  ever  do  it  with  somebody  that  sits  in  a 
stupid  movie  all  day  long.  I  really  don’t  think  I  could. 

She  came  over  to  me,  with  this  funny  look  on  her  face,  like  as  if  she  didn’t  believe 
me.  "What'sa  matter?"  she  said. 

"Nothing's  the  matter."  Boy,  was  I  getting  nervous.  "The  thing  is,  I  had  an 
operation  very  recently." 

"Yeah?  Where?" 

"On  my  wuddayacallit— my  clavichord." 

"Yeah?  Where  the  hell's  that?" 

"The  clavichord?"  I  said.  "Well,  actually,  it's  in  the  spinal  canal.  I  mean  it's  quite  a 
ways  down  in  the  spinal  canal." 

"Yeah?"  she  said.  "That’s  tough."  Then  she  sat  down  on  my  goddam  lap.  "You're 

cute." 

She  made  me  so  nervous,  I  just  kept  on  lying  my  head  off.  "I'm  still  recuperating," 
I  told  her. 

"You  look  like  a  guy  in  the  movies.  You  know.  Whosis.  You  know  who  I  mean. 
What  the  heck's  his  name?" 

"I  don’t  know,"  I  said.  She  wouldn’t  get  off  my  goddam  lap. 

"Sure  you  know.  He  was  in  that  pitcher  with  Mel-vine  Douglas?  The  one  that  was 
Mel-vine  Douglas's  kid  brother?  That  falls  off  this  boat?  You  know  who  I  mean." 

"No,  I  don’t.  I  go  to  the  movies  as  seldom  as  I  can." 


Then  she  started  getting  funny.  Crude  and  all. 

"Do  you  mind  cutting  it  out?"  I  said.  "I’m  not  in  the  mood,  I  just  told  you.  I  just 
had  an  operation." 

She  didn’t  get  up  from  my  lap  or  anything,  but  she  gave  me  this  terrifically  dirty 
look.  "Listen,"  she  said.  "I  was  sleepin’  when  that  crazy  Maurice  woke  me  up.  If  you 
think  I'm—" 

"I  said  I’d  pay  you  for  coming  and  all.  I  really  will.  I  have  plenty  of  dough.  It's 
just  that  I'm  practically  just  recovering  from  a  very  serious—" 

"What  the  heck  did  you  tell  that  crazy  Maurice  you  wanted  a  girl  for,  then?  If  you 
just  had  a  goddam  operation  on  your  goddam  wuddayacallit.  Huh?" 

"I  thought  I’d  be  feeling  a  lot  better  than  I  do.  I  was  a  little  premature  in  my 
calculations.  No  kidding.  I’m  sorry.  If  you'll  just  get  up  a  second,  I’ll  get  my  wallet.  I 
mean  it." 

She  was  sore  as  hell,  but  she  got  up  off  my  goddam  lap  so  that  I  could  go  over  and 
get  my  wallet  off  the  chiffonier.  I  took  out  a  five-dollar  bill  and  handed  it  to  her.  "Thanks 
a  lot,"  I  told  her.  "Thanks  a  million." 

"This  is  a  five.  It  costs  ten." 

She  was  getting  funny,  you  could  tell.  I  was  afraid  something  like  that  would 
happen— I  really  was. 

"Maurice  said  five,"  I  told  her.  "He  said  fifteen  till  noon  and  only  five  for  a 

throw." 

"Ten  for  a  throw." 

"He  said  five.  I'm  sorry— I  really  am— but  that's  all  I'm  gonna  shell  out." 

She  sort  of  shrugged  her  shoulders,  the  way  she  did  before,  and  then  she  said, 
very  cold,  "Do  you  mind  getting  me  my  frock?  Or  would  it  be  too  much  trouble?"  She 
was  a  pretty  spooky  kid.  Even  with  that  little  bitty  voice  she  had,  she  could  sort  of  scare 
you  a  little  bit.  If  she’d  been  a  big  old  prostitute,  with  a  lot  of  makeup  on  her  face  and  all, 
she  wouldn’t  have  been  half  as  spooky. 

I  went  and  got  her  dress  for  her.  She  put  it  on  and  all,  and  then  she  picked  up  her 
polo  coat  off  the  bed.  "So  long,  crumb-bum,"  she  said. 

"So  long,"  I  said.  I  didn’t  thank  her  or  anything.  I'm  glad  I  didn’t. 


14 


After  Old  Sunny  was  gone,  I  sat  in  the  chair  for  a  while  and  smoked  a  couple  of 
cigarettes.  It  was  getting  daylight  outside.  Boy,  I  felt  miserable.  I  felt  so  depressed,  you 
can't  imagine.  What  I  did,  I  started  talking,  sort  of  out  loud,  to  Allie.  I  do  that  sometimes 
when  I  get  very  depressed.  I  keep  telling  him  to  go  home  and  get  his  bike  and  meet  me  in 
front  of  Bobby  Fallon's  house.  Bobby  Fallon  used  to  live  quite  near  us  in  Maine— this  is, 
years  ago.  Anyway,  what  happened  was,  one  day  Bobby  and  I  were  going  over  to  Fake 
Sedebego  on  our  bikes.  We  were  going  to  take  our  lunches  and  all,  and  our  BB  guns— we 
were  kids  and  all,  and  we  thought  we  could  shoot  something  with  our  BB  guns.  Anyway, 
Allie  heard  us  talking  about  it,  and  he  wanted  to  go,  and  I  wouldn’t  let  him.  I  told  him  he 
was  a  child.  So  once  in  a  while,  now,  when  I  get  very  depressed,  I  keep  saying  to  him, 
"Okay.  Go  home  and  get  your  bike  and  meet  me  in  front  of  Bobby's  house.  Hurry  up."  It 


wasn't  that  I  didn't  use  to  take  him  with  me  when  I  went  somewhere.  I  did.  But  that  one 
day,  I  didn't.  He  didn’t  get  sore  about  it— he  never  got  sore  about  anything—  but  I  keep 
thinking  about  it  anyway,  when  I  get  very  depressed. 

Finally,  though,  I  got  undressed  and  got  in  bed.  I  felt  like  praying  or  something, 
when  I  was  in  bed,  but  I  couldn't  do  it.  I  can't  always  pray  when  I  feel  like  it.  In  the  first 
place,  I'm  sort  of  an  atheist.  I  like  Jesus  and  all,  but  I  don’t  care  too  much  for  most  of  the 
other  stuff  in  the  Bible.  Take  the  Disciples,  for  instance.  They  annoy  the  hell  out  of  me,  if 
you  want  to  know  the  truth.  They  were  all  right  after  Jesus  was  dead  and  all,  but  while  He 
was  alive,  they  were  about  as  much  use  to  Him  as  a  hole  in  the  head.  All  they  did  was 
keep  letting  Him  down.  I  like  almost  anybody  in  the  Bible  better  than  the  Disciples.  If 
you  want  to  know  the  truth,  the  guy  I  like  best  in  the  Bible,  next  to  Jesus,  was  that  lunatic 
and  all,  that  lived  in  the  tombs  and  kept  cutting  himself  with  stones.  I  like  him  ten  times 
as  much  as  the  Disciples,  that  poor  bastard.  I  used  to  get  in  quite  a  few  arguments  about 
it,  when  I  was  at  Whooton  School,  with  this  boy  that  lived  down  the  corridor,  Arthur 
Childs.  Old  Childs  was  a  Quaker  and  all,  and  he  read  the  Bible  all  the  time.  He  was  a 
very  nice  kid,  and  I  liked  him,  but  I  could  never  see  eye  to  eye  with  him  on  a  lot  of  stuff 
in  the  Bible,  especially  the  Disciples.  He  kept  telling  me  if  I  didn't  like  the  Disciples,  then 
I  didn't  like  Jesus  and  all.  He  said  that  because  Jesus  picked  the  Disciples,  you  were 
supposed  to  like  them.  I  said  I  knew  He  picked  them,  but  that  He  picked  them  at  random. 

I  said  He  didn’t  have  time  to  go  around  analyzing  everybody.  I  said  I  wasn’t  blaming 
Jesus  or  anything.  It  wasn't  His  fault  that  He  didn’t  have  any  time.  I  remember  I  asked  old 
Childs  if  he  thought  Judas,  the  one  that  betrayed  Jesus  and  all,  went  to  Hell  after  he 
committed  suicide.  Childs  said  certainly.  That's  exactly  where  I  disagreed  with  him.  I 
said  I’d  bet  a  thousand  bucks  that  Jesus  never  sent  old  Judas  to  Hell.  I  still  would,  too,  if  I 
had  a  thousand  bucks.  I  think  any  one  of  the  Disciples  would've  sent  him  to  Hell  and  all — 
and  fast,  too— but  I'll  bet  anything  Jesus  didn’t  do  it.  Old  Childs  said  the  trouble  with  me 
was  that  I  didn’t  go  to  church  or  anything.  He  was  right  about  that,  in  a  way.  I  don’t.  In 
the  first  place,  my  parents  are  different  religions,  and  all  the  children  in  our  family  are 
atheists.  If  you  want  to  know  the  truth,  I  can't  even  stand  ministers.  The  ones  they've  had 
at  every  school  I’ve  gone  to,  they  all  have  these  Holy  Joe  voices  when  they  start  giving 
their  sermons.  God,  I  hate  that.  I  don’t  see  why  the  hell  they  can’t  talk  in  their  natural 
voice.  They  sound  so  phony  when  they  talk. 

Anyway,  when  I  was  in  bed,  I  couldn’t  pray  worth  a  damn.  Every  time  I  got 
started,  I  kept  picturing  old  Sunny  calling  me  a  crumb-bum.  Finally,  I  sat  up  in  bed  and 
smoked  another  cigarette.  It  tasted  lousy.  I  must've  smoked  around  two  packs  since  I  left 
Pencey. 

All  of  a  sudden,  while  I  was  laying  there  smoking,  somebody  knocked  on  the 
door.  I  kept  hoping  it  wasn't  my  door  they  were  knocking  on,  but  I  knew  damn  well  it 
was.  I  don’t  know  how  I  knew,  but  I  knew.  I  knew  who  it  was,  too.  I'm  psychic. 

"Who's  there?"  I  said.  I  was  pretty  scared.  I'm  very  yellow  about  those  things. 

They  just  knocked  again,  though.  Louder. 

Finally  I  got  out  of  bed,  with  just  my  pajamas  on,  and  opened  the  door.  I  didn’t 
even  have  to  turn  the  light  on  in  the  room,  because  it  was  already  daylight.  Old  Sunny 
and  Maurice,  the  pimpy  elevator  guy,  were  standing  there. 

"What's  the  matter?  Wuddaya  want?"  I  said.  Boy,  my  voice  was  shaking  like  hell. 


"Nothin'  much,"  old  Maurice  said.  "Just  five  bucks."  He  did  all  the  talking  for  the 
two  of  them.  Old  Sunny  just  stood  there  next  to  him,  with  her  mouth  open  and  all. 

"I  paid  her  already.  I  gave  her  five  bucks.  Ask  her,"  I  said.  Boy,  was  my  voice 
shaking. 

"It's  ten  bucks,  chief.  I  tole  ya  that.  Ten  bucks  for  a  throw,  fifteen  bucks  till  noon. 

I  tole  ya  that." 

"You  did  not  tell  me  that.  You  said  five  bucks  a  throw.  You  said  fifteen  bucks  till 
noon,  all  right,  but  I  distinctly  heard  you—" 

"Open  up,  chief." 

"What  for?"  I  said.  God,  my  old  heart  was  damn  near  beating  me  out  of  the  room. 

I  wished  I  was  dressed  at  least.  It's  terrible  to  be  just  in  your  pajamas  when  something 
like  that  happens. 

"Let's  go,  chief,"  old  Maurice  said.  Then  he  gave  me  a  big  shove  with  his  crumby 
hand.  I  damn  near  fell  over  on  my  can— he  was  a  huge  sonuvabitch.  The  next  thing  I 
knew,  he  and  old  Sunny  were  both  in  the  room.  They  acted  like  they  owned  the  damn 
place.  Old  Sunny  sat  down  on  the  window  sill.  Old  Maurice  sat  down  in  the  big  chair  and 
loosened  his  collar  and  all— he  was  wearing  this  elevator  operator's  uniform.  Boy,  was  I 
nervous. 

"All  right,  chief,  let's  have  it.  I  gotta  get  back  to  work." 

"I  told  you  about  ten  times,  I  don’t  owe  you  a  cent.  I  already  gave  her  the  five—" 

"Cut  the  crap,  now.  Let's  have  it." 

"Why  should  I  give  her  another  five  bucks?"  I  said.  My  voice  was  cracking  all 
over  the  place.  "You're  trying  to  chisel  me." 

Old  Maurice  unbuttoned  his  whole  unifonn  coat.  All  he  had  on  underneath  was  a 
phony  shirt  collar,  but  no  shirt  or  anything.  He  had  a  big  fat  hairy  stomach.  "Nobody's 
tryna  chisel  nobody,"  he  said.  "Let's  have  it,  chief." 

"No." 

When  I  said  that,  he  got  up  from  his  chair  and  started  walking  towards  me  and  all. 
He  looked  like  he  was  very,  very  tired  or  very,  very  bored.  God,  was  I  scared.  I  sort  of 
had  my  arms  folded,  I  remember.  It  wouldn’t  have  been  so  bad,  I  don’t  think,  if  I  hadn’t 
had  just  my  goddam  pajamas  on. 

"Let's  have  it,  chief."  He  came  right  up  to  where  I  was  standing.  That's  all  he 
could  say.  "Let's  have  it,  chief."  He  was  a  real  moron. 

"No." 

"Chief,  you're  gonna  force  me  inna  roughin’  ya  up  a  little  bit.  I  don’t  wanna  do  it, 
but  that's  the  way  it  looks,"  he  said.  "You  owe  us  five  bucks." 

"I  don’t  owe  you  five  bucks,"  I  said.  "If  you  rough  me  up,  I'll  yell  like  hell.  I’ll 
wake  up  everybody  in  the  hotel.  The  police  and  all."  My  voice  was  shaking  like  a  bastard. 

"Go  ahead.  Yell  your  goddam  head  off.  Fine,"  old  Maurice  said.  "Want  your 
parents  to  know  you  spent  the  night  with  a  whore?  High-class  kid  like  you?"  He  was 
pretty  sharp,  in  his  crumby  way.  He  really  was. 

"Leave  me  alone.  If  you’d  said  ten,  it'd  be  different.  But  you  distinctly—" 

"Are  ya  gonna  let  us  have  it?"  He  had  me  right  up  against  the  damn  door.  He  was 
almost  standing  on  top  of  me,  his  crumby  old  hairy  stomach  and  all. 

"Leave  me  alone.  Get  the  hell  out  of  my  room,"  I  said.  I  still  had  my  arms  folded 
and  all.  God,  what  a  jerk  I  was. 


Then  Sunny  said  something  for  the  first  time.  "Hey,  Maurice.  Want  me  to  get  his 
wallet?"  she  said.  "It's  right  on  the  wutchamacallit." 

"Yeah,  get  it." 

"Leave  my  wallet  alone!" 

"I  awreddy  got  it,"  Sunny  said.  She  waved  five  bucks  at  me.  "See?  All  I'm  takin’  is 
the  five  you  owe  me.  I'm  no  crook." 

All  of  a  sudden  I  started  to  cry.  I'd  give  anything  if  I  hadn't,  but  I  did.  "No,  you're 
no  crooks,"  I  said.  "You're  just  stealing  five—" 

"Shut  up,"  old  Maurice  said,  and  gave  me  a  shove. 

"Leave  him  alone,  hey,"  Sunny  said.  "C'mon,  hey.  We  got  the  dough  he  owes  us. 
Let's  go.  C’mon,  hey." 

"I'm  cornin',"  old  Maurice  said.  But  he  didn’t. 

"I  mean  it,  Maurice,  hey.  Leave  him  alone." 

"Who's  hurtin’  anybody?"  he  said,  innocent  as  hell.  Then  what  he  did,  he  snapped 
his  finger  very  hard  on  my  pajamas.  I  won’t  tell  you  where  he  snapped  it,  but  it  hurt  like 
hell.  I  told  him  he  was  a  goddam  dirty  moron.  "What's  that?"  he  said.  He  put  his  hand 
behind  his  ear,  like  a  deaf  guy.  "What's  that?  What  am  I?" 

I  was  still  sort  of  crying.  I  was  so  damn  mad  and  nervous  and  all.  "You're  a  dirty 
moron,"  I  said.  "You're  a  stupid  chiseling  moron,  and  in  about  two  years  you'll  be  one  of 
those  scraggy  guys  that  come  up  to  you  on  the  street  and  ask  for  a  dime  for  coffee.  You'll 
have  snot  all  over  your  dirty  filthy  overcoat,  and  you'll  be—" 

Then  he  smacked  me.  I  didn’t  even  try  to  get  out  of  the  way  or  duck  or  anything. 
All  I  felt  was  this  terrific  punch  in  my  stomach. 

I  wasn’t  knocked  out  or  anything,  though,  because  I  remember  looking  up  from 
the  floor  and  seeing  them  both  go  out  the  door  and  shut  it.  Then  I  stayed  on  the  floor  a 
fairly  long  time,  sort  of  the  way  I  did  with  Stradlater.  Only,  this  time  I  thought  I  was 
dying.  I  really  did.  I  thought  I  was  drowning  or  something.  The  trouble  was,  I  could 
hardly  breathe.  When  I  did  finally  get  up,  I  had  to  walk  to  the  bathroom  all  doubled  up 
and  holding  onto  my  stomach  and  all. 

But  I'm  crazy.  I  swear  to  God  I  am.  About  halfway  to  the  bathroom,  I  sort  of 
started  pretending  I  had  a  bullet  in  my  guts.  Old  'Maurice  had  plugged  me.  Now  I  was  on 
the  way  to  the  bathroom  to  get  a  good  shot  of  bourbon  or  something  to  steady  my  nerves 
and  help  me  really  go  into  action.  I  pictured  myself  coming  out  of  the  goddam  bathroom, 
dressed  and  all,  with  my  automatic  in  my  pocket,  and  staggering  around  a  little  bit.  Then 
I'd  walk  downstairs,  instead  of  using  the  elevator.  I’d  hold  onto  the  banister  and  all,  with 
this  blood  trickling  out  of  the  side  of  my  mouth  a  little  at  a  time.  What  I’d  do,  I’d  walk 
down  a  few  floors— holding  onto  my  guts,  blood  leaking  all  over  the  place—  and  then  I’d 
ring  the  elevator  bell.  As  soon  as  old  Maurice  opened  the  doors,  he’d  see  me  with  the 
automatic  in  my  hand  and  he’d  start  screaming  at  me,  in  this  very  high-pitched,  yellow- 
belly  voice,  to  leave  him  alone.  But  I'd  plug  him  anyway.  Six  shots  right  through  his  fat 
hairy  belly.  Then  I’d  throw  my  automatic  down  the  elevator  shaft— after  I’d  wiped  off  all 
the  finger  prints  and  all.  Then  I’d  crawl  back  to  my  room  and  call  up  Jane  and  have  her 
come  over  and  bandage  up  my  guts.  I  pictured  her  holding  a  cigarette  for  me  to  smoke 
while  I  was  bleeding  and  all. 

The  goddam  movies.  They  can  ruin  you.  I'm  not  kidding. 


I  stayed  in  the  bathroom  for  about  an  hour,  taking  a  bath  and  all.  Then  I  got  back 
in  bed.  It  took  me  quite  a  while  to  get  to  sleep— I  wasn’t  even  tired— but  finally  I  did.  What 
I  really  felt  like,  though,  was  committing  suicide.  I  felt  like  jumping  out  the  window.  I 
probably  would've  done  it,  too,  if  I’d  been  sure  somebody'd  cover  me  up  as  soon  as  I 
landed.  I  didn’t  want  a  bunch  of  stupid  rubbernecks  looking  at  me  when  I  was  all  gory. 


15 


I  didn’t  sleep  too  long,  because  I  think  it  was  only  around  ten  o'clock  when  I  woke 
up.  I  felt  pretty  hungry  as  soon  as  I  had  a  cigarette.  The  last  time  I’d  eaten  was  those  two 
hamburgers  I  had  with  Brossard  and  Ackley  when  we  went  in  to  Agerstown  to  the 
movies.  That  was  a  long  time  ago.  It  seemed  like  fifty  years  ago.  The  phone  was  right 
next  to  me,  and  I  started  to  call  down  and  have  them  send  up  some  breakfast,  but  I  was 
sort  of  afraid  they  might  send  it  up  with  old  Maurice.  If  you  think  I  was  dying  to  see  him 
again,  you're  crazy.  So  I  just  laid  around  in  bed  for  a  while  and  smoked  another  cigarette. 

I  thought  of  giving  old  Jane  a  buzz,  to  see  if  she  was  home  yet  and  all,  but  I  wasn't  in  the 
mood. 

What  I  did  do,  I  gave  old  Sally  Hayes  a  buzz.  She  went  to  Mary  A.  Woodruff,  and 
I  knew  she  was  home  because  I’d  had  this  letter  from  her  a  couple  of  weeks  ago.  I  wasn't 
too  crazy  about  her,  but  I’d  known  her  for  years.  I  used  to  think  she  was  quite  intelligent, 
in  my  stupidity.  The  reason  I  did  was  because  she  knew  quite  a  lot  about  the  theater  and 
plays  and  literature  and  all  that  stuff.  If  somebody  knows  quite  a  lot  about  those  things,  it 
takes  you  quite  a  while  to  find  out  whether  they're  really  stupid  or  not.  It  took  me  years  to 
find  it  out,  in  old  Sally's  case.  I  think  I’d  have  found  it  out  a  lot  sooner  if  we  hadn’t  necked 
so  damn  much.  My  big  trouble  is,  I  always  sort  of  think  whoever  I'm  necking  is  a  pretty 
intelligent  person.  It  hasn’t  got  a  goddam  thing  to  do  with  it,  but  I  keep  thinking  it 
anyway. 

Anyway,  I  gave  her  a  buzz.  First  the  maid  answered.  Then  her  father.  Then  she 
got  on.  "Sally?"  I  said. 

"Yes— who  is  this?"  she  said.  She  was  quite  a  little  phony.  I’d  already  told  her 
father  who  it  was. 

"Holden  Caulfield.  How  are  ya?" 

"Holden!  I'm  fine!  How  are  you?" 

"Swell.  Listen.  How  are  ya,  anyway?  I  mean  how's  school?" 

"Fine,"  she  said.  "I  mean— you  know." 

"Swell.  Well,  listen.  I  was  wondering  if  you  were  busy  today.  It’s  Sunday,  but 
there's  always  one  or  two  matinees  going  on  Sunday.  Benefits  and  that  stuff.  Would  you 
care  to  go?" 

"I’d  love  to.  Grand." 

Grand.  If  there's  one  word  I  hate,  it's  grand.  It's  so  phony.  For  a  second,  I  was 
tempted  to  tell  her  to  forget  about  the  matinee.  But  we  chewed  the  fat  for  a  while.  That  is, 
she  chewed  it.  You  couldn’t  get  a  word  in  edgewise.  First  she  told  me  about  some 
Harvard  guy—  it  probably  was  a  freshman,  but  she  didn't  say,  naturally— that  was  rushing 
hell  out  of  her.  Calling  her  up  night  and  day.  Night  and  day— that  killed  me.  Then  she  told 
me  about  some  other  guy,  some  West  Point  cadet,  that  was  cutting  his  throat  over  her  too. 


Big  deal.  I  told  her  to  meet  me  under  the  clock  at  the  Biltmore  at  two  o'clock,  and  not  to 
be  late,  because  the  show  probably  started  at  two-thirty.  She  was  always  late.  Then  I  hung 
up.  She  gave  me  a  pain  in  the  ass,  but  she  was  very  good-looking. 

After  I  made  the  date  with  old  Sally,  I  got  out  of  bed  and  got  dressed  and  packed 
my  bag.  I  took  a  look  out  the  window  before  I  left  the  room,  though,  to  see  how  all  the 
perverts  were  doing,  but  they  all  had  their  shades  down.  They  were  the  heighth  of 
modesty  in  the  morning.  Then  I  went  down  in  the  elevator  and  checked  out.  I  didn’t  see 
old  Maurice  around  anywhere.  I  didn’t  break  my  neck  looking  for  him,  naturally,  the 
bastard. 

I  got  a  cab  outside  the  hotel,  but  I  didn’t  have  the  faintest  damn  idea  where  I  was 
going.  I  had  no  place  to  go.  It  was  only  Sunday,  and  I  couldn’t  go  home  till  Wednesday— 
or  Tuesday  the  soonest.  And  I  certainly  didn’t  feel  like  going  to  another  hotel  and  getting 
my  brains  beat  out.  So  what  I  did,  I  told  the  driver  to  take  me  to  Grand  Central  Station.  It 
was  right  near  the  Biltmore,  where  I  was  meeting  Sally  later,  and  I  figured  what  I’d  do,  I’d 
check  my  bags  in  one  of  those  strong  boxes  that  they  give  you  a  key  to,  then  get  some 
breakfast.  I  was  sort  of  hungry.  While  I  was  in  the  cab,  I  took  out  my  wallet  and  sort  of 
counted  my  money.  I  don't  remember  exactly  what  I  had  left,  but  it  was  no  fortune  or 
anything.  I’d  spent  a  king's  ransom  in  about  two  lousy  weeks.  I  really  had.  I'm  a  goddam 
spendthrift  at  heart.  What  I  don’t  spend,  I  lose.  Half  the  time  I  sort  of  even  forget  to  pick 
up  my  change,  at  restaurants  and  night  clubs  and  all.  It  drives  my  parents  crazy.  You  can't 
blame  them.  My  father's  quite  wealthy,  though.  I  don’t  know  how  much  he  makes— he’s 
never  discussed  that  stuff  with  me— but  I  imagine  quite  a  lot.  He's  a  corporation  lawyer. 
Those  boys  really  haul  it  in.  Another  reason  I  know  he's  quite  well  off,  he's  always 
investing  money  in  shows  on  Broadway.  They  always  flop,  though,  and  it  drives  my 
mother  crazy  when  he  does  it.  She  hasn't  felt  too  healthy  since  my  brother  Allie  died. 

She's  very  nervous.  That's  another  reason  why  I  hated  like  hell  for  her  to  know  I  got  the 
ax  again. 

After  I  put  my  bags  in  one  of  those  strong  boxes  at  the  station,  I  went  into  this 
little  sandwich  bar  and  bad  breakfast.  I  had  quite  a  large  breakfast,  for  me— orange  juice, 
bacon  and  eggs,  toast  and  coffee.  Usually  I  just  drink  some  orange  juice.  I’m  a  very  light 
eater.  I  really  am.  That's  why  I'm  so  damn  skinny.  I  was  supposed  to  be  on  this  diet  where 
you  eat  a  lot  of  starches  and  crap,  to  gain  weight  and  all,  but  I  didn't  ever  do  it.  When  I'm 
out  somewhere,  I  generally  just  eat  a  Swiss  cheese  sandwich  and  a  malted  milk.  It  isn’t 
much,  but  you  get  quite  a  lot  of  vitamins  in  the  malted  milk.  H.  V.  Caulfield.  Holden 
Vitamin  Caulfield. 

While  I  was  eating  my  eggs,  these  two  nuns  with  suitcases  and  all— I  guessed  they 
were  moving  to  another  convent  or  something  and  were  waiting  for  a  train— came  in  and 
sat  down  next  to  me  at  the  counter.  They  didn't  seem  to  know  what  the  hell  to  do  with 
their  suitcases,  so  I  gave  them  a  hand.  They  were  these  very  inexpensive-looking 
suitcases— the  ones  that  aren’t  genuine  leather  or  anything.  It  isn’t  important,  I  know,  but  I 
hate  it  when  somebody  has  cheap  suitcases.  It  sounds  terrible  to  say  it,  but  I  can  even  get 
to  hate  somebody,  just  looking  at  them,  if  they  have  cheap  suitcases  with  them. 

Something  happened  once.  For  a  while  when  I  was  at  Elkton  Hills,  I  roomed  with  this 
boy,  Dick  Slagle,  that  had  these  very  inexpensive  suitcases.  He  used  to  keep  them  under 
the  bed,  instead  of  on  the  rack,  so  that  nobody’d  see  them  standing  next  to  mine.  It 
depressed  holy  hell  out  of  me,  and  I  kept  wanting  to  throw  mine  out  or  something,  or 


even  trade  with  him.  Mine  came  from  Mark  Cross,  and  they  were  genuine  cowhide  and 
all  that  crap,  and  I  guess  they  cost  quite  a  pretty  penny.  But  it  was  a  funny  thing.  Here's 
what  happened.  What  I  did,  I  finally  put  my  suitcases  under  my  bed,  instead  of  on  the 
rack,  so  that  old  Slagle  wouldn’t  get  a  goddam  inferiority  complex  about  it.  But  here's 
what  he  did.  The  day  after  I  put  mine  under  my  bed,  he  took  them  out  and  put  them  back 
on  the  rack.  The  reason  he  did  it,  it  took  me  a  while  to  find  out,  was  because  he  wanted 
people  to  think  my  bags  were  his.  He  really  did.  He  was  a  very  funny  guy,  that  way.  He 
was  always  saying  snotty  things  about  them,  my  suitcases,  for  instance.  He  kept  saying 
they  were  too  new  and  bourgeois.  That  was  his  favorite  goddam  word.  He  read  it 
somewhere  or  heard  it  somewhere.  Everything  I  had  was  bourgeois  as  hell.  Even  my 
fountain  pen  was  bourgeois.  He  borrowed  it  off  me  all  the  time,  but  it  was  bourgeois 
anyway.  We  only  roomed  together  about  two  months.  Then  we  both  asked  to  be  moved. 
And  the  funny  thing  was,  I  sort  of  missed  him  after  we  moved,  because  he  had  a  helluva 
good  sense  of  humor  and  we  had  a  lot  of  fun  sometimes.  I  wouldn’t  be  surprised  if  he 
missed  me,  too.  At  first  he  only  used  to  be  kidding  when  he  called  my  stuff  bourgeois, 
and  I  didn’t  give  a  damn— it  was  sort  of  funny,  in  fact.  Then,  after  a  while,  you  could  tell 
he  wasn't  kidding  any  more.  The  thing  is,  it's  really  hard  to  be  roommates  with  people  if 
your  suitcases  are  much  better  than  theirs— if  yours  are  really  good  ones  and  theirs  aren't. 
You  think  if  they're  intelligent  and  all,  the  other  person,  and  have  a  good  sense  of  humor, 
that  they  don’t  give  a  damn  whose  suitcases  are  better,  but  they  do.  They  really  do.  It's 
one  of  the  reasons  why  I  roomed  with  a  stupid  bastard  like  Stradlater.  At  least  his 
suitcases  were  as  good  as  mine. 

Anyway,  these  two  nuns  were  sitting  next  to  me,  and  we  sort  of  struck  up  a 
conversation.  The  one  right  next  to  me  had  one  of  those  straw  baskets  that  you  see  nuns 
and  Salvation  Army  babes  collecting  dough  with  around  Christmas  time.  You  see  them 
standing  on  corners,  especially  on  Fifth  Avenue,  in  front  of  the  big  department  stores  and 
all.  Anyway,  the  one  next  to  me  dropped  hers  on  the  floor  and  I  reached  down  and  picked 
it  up  for  her.  I  asked  her  if  she  was  out  collecting  money  for  charity  and  all.  She  said  no. 
She  said  she  couldn’t  get  it  in  her  suitcase  when  she  was  packing  it  and  she  was  just 
carrying  it.  She  had  a  pretty  nice  smile  when  she  looked  at  you.  She  had  a  big  nose,  and 
she  had  on  those  glasses  with  sort  of  iron  rims  that  aren't  too  attractive,  but  she  had  a 
helluva  kind  face.  "I  thought  if  you  were  taking  up  a  collection,"  I  told  her,  "I  could  make 
a  small  contribution.  You  could  keep  the  money  for  when  you  do  take  up  a  collection." 

"Oh,  how  very  kind  of  you,"  she  said,  and  the  other  one,  her  friend,  looked  over  at 
me.  The  other  one  was  reading  a  little  black  book  while  she  drank  her  coffee.  It  looked 
like  a  Bible,  but  it  was  too  skinny.  It  was  a  Bible-type  book,  though.  All  the  two  of  them 
were  eating  for  breakfast  was  toast  and  coffee.  That  depressed  me.  I  hate  it  if  I'm  eating 
bacon  and  eggs  or  something  and  somebody  else  is  only  eating  toast  and  coffee. 

They  let  me  give  them  ten  bucks  as  a  contribution.  They  kept  asking  me  if  I  was 
sure  I  could  afford  it  and  all.  I  told  them  I  had  quite  a  bit  of  money  with  me,  but  they 
didn’t  seem  to  believe  me.  They  took  it,  though,  finally.  The  both  of  them  kept  thanking 
me  so  much  it  was  embarrassing.  I  swung  the  conversation  around  to  general  topics  and 
asked  them  where  they  were  going.  They  said  they  were  schoolteachers  and  that  they'd 
just  come  from  Chicago  and  that  they  were  going  to  start  teaching  at  some  convent  on 
168th  Street  or  186th  Street  or  one  of  those  streets  way  the  hell  uptown.  The  one  next  to 
me,  with  the  iron  glasses,  said  she  taught  English  and  her  friend  taught  history  and 


American  government.  Then  I  started  wondering  like  a  bastard  what  the  one  sitting  next 
to  me,  that  taught  English,  thought  about,  being  a  nun  and  all,  when  she  read  certain 
books  for  English.  Books  not  necessarily  with  a  lot  of  sexy  stuff  in  them,  but  books  with 
lovers  and  all  in  them.  Take  old  Eustacia  Vye,  in  The  Return  of  the  Native  by  Thomas 
Hardy.  She  wasn’t  too  sexy  or  anything,  but  even  so  you  can't  help  wondering  what  a  nun 
maybe  thinks  about  when  she  reads  about  old  Eustacia.  I  didn’t  say  anything,  though, 
naturally.  All  I  said  was  English  was  my  best  subject. 

"Oh,  really?  Oh,  I'm  so  glad!"  the  one  with  the  glasses,  that  taught  English,  said. 
"What  have  you  read  this  year?  I’d  be  very  interested  to  know."  She  was  really  nice. 

"Well,  most  of  the  time  we  were  on  the  Anglo-Saxons.  Beowulf,  and  old  Grendel, 
and  Lord  Randal  My  Son,  and  all  those  things.  But  we  had  to  read  outside  books  for  extra 
credit  once  in  a  while.  I  read  The  Return  of  the  Native  by  Thomas  Hardy,  and  Romeo  and 
Juliet  and  Julius—" 

"Oh,  Romeo  and  Juliet!  Lovely!  Didn’t  you  just  love  it?"  She  certainly  didn’t 
sound  much  like  a  nun. 

"Yes.  I  did.  I  liked  it  a  lot.  There  were  a  few  things  I  didn't  like  about  it,  but  it  was 
quite  moving,  on  the  whole." 

"What  didn’t  you  like  about  it?  Can  you  remember?"  To  tell  you  the  truth,  it  was 
sort  of  embarrassing,  in  a  way,  to  be  talking  about  Romeo  and  Juliet  with  her.  I  mean  that 
play  gets  pretty  sexy  in  some  parts,  and  she  was  a  nun  and  all,  but  she  asked  me,  so  I 
discussed  it  with  her  for  a  while.  "Well,  I'm  not  too  crazy  about  Romeo  and  Juliet,"  I  said. 
"I  mean  I  like  them,  but— I  don’t  know.  They  get  pretty  annoying  sometimes.  I  mean  I  felt 
much  sorrier  when  old  Mercutio  got  killed  than  when  Romeo  and  Juliet  did.  The  think  is, 

I  never  liked  Romeo  too  much  after  Mercutio  gets  stabbed  by  that  other  man— Juliet's 
cousin— what's  his  name?" 

"Tybalt." 

"That's  right.  Tybalt,"  I  said— I  always  forget  that  guy's  name.  "It  was  Romeo's 
fault.  I  mean  I  liked  him  the  best  in  the  play,  old  Mercutio.  I  don’t  know.  All  those 
Montagues  and  Capulets,  they're  all  right— especially  Juliet— but  Mercutio,  he  was— it's 
hard  to  explain.  He  was  very  smart  and  entertaining  and  all.  The  thing  is,  it  drives  me 
crazy  if  somebody  gets  killed—  especially  somebody  very  smart  and  entertaining  and  all — 
and  it's  somebody  else's  fault.  Romeo  and  Juliet,  at  least  it  was  their  own  fault." 

"What  school  do  you  go  to?"  she  asked  me.  She  probably  wanted  to  get  off  the 
subject  of  Romeo  and  Juliet. 

I  told  her  Pencey,  and  she’d  heard  of  it.  She  said  it  was  a  very  good  school.  I  let  it 
pass,  though.  Then  the  other  one,  the  one  that  taught  history  and  government,  said  they'd 
better  be  running  along.  I  took  their  check  off  them,  but  they  wouldn’t  let  me  pay  it.  The 
one  with  the  glasses  made  me  give  it  back  to  her. 

"You've  been  more  than  generous,"  she  said.  "You're  a  very  sweet  boy."  She 
certainly  was  nice.  She  reminded  me  a  little  bit  of  old  Ernest  Morrow's  mother,  the  one  I 
met  on  the  train.  When  she  smiled,  mostly.  "We've  enjoyed  talking  to  you  so  much,"  she 
said. 

I  said  I’d  enjoyed  talking  to  them  a  lot,  too.  I  meant  it,  too.  I'd  have  enjoyed  it 
even  more  though,  I  think,  if  I  hadn’t  been  sort  of  afraid,  the  whole  time  I  was  talking  to 
them,  that  they'd  all  of  a  sudden  try  to  find  out  if  I  was  a  Catholic.  Catholics  are  always 
trying  to  find  out  if  you’re  a  Catholic.  It  happens  to  me  a  lot,  I  know,  partly  because  my 


last  name  is  Irish,  and  most  people  of  Irish  descent  are  Catholics.  As  a  matter  of  fact,  my 
father  was  a  Catholic  once.  He  quit,  though,  when  he  married  my  mother.  But  Catholics 
are  always  trying  to  find  out  if  you’re  a  Catholic  even  if  they  don’t  know  your  last  name.  I 
knew  this  one  Catholic  boy,  Louis  Shaney,  when  I  was  at  the  Whooton  School.  He  was 
the  first  boy  I  ever  met  there.  He  and  I  were  sitting  in  the  first  two  chairs  outside  the 
goddam  infirmary,  the  day  school  opened,  waiting  for  our  physicals,  and  we  sort  of 
struck  up  this  conversation  about  tennis.  He  was  quite  interested  in  tennis,  and  so  was  I. 
He  told  me  he  went  to  the  Nationals  at  Forest  Hills  every  summer,  and  I  told  him  I  did 
too,  and  then  we  talked  about  certain  hot-shot  tennis  players  for  quite  a  while.  He  knew 
quite  a  lot  about  tennis,  for  a  kid  his  age.  He  really  did.  Then,  after  a  while,  right  in  the 
middle  of  the  goddam  conversation,  he  asked  me,  "Did  you  happen  to  notice  where  the 
Catholic  church  is  in  town,  by  any  chance?"  The  thing  was,  you  could  tell  by  the  way  he 
asked  me  that  he  was  trying  to  find  out  if  I  was  a  Catholic.  He  really  was.  Not  that  he  was 
prejudiced  or  anything,  but  he  just  wanted  to  know.  He  was  enjoying  the  conversation 
about  tennis  and  all,  but  you  could  tell  he  would've  enjoyed  it  more  if  I  was  a  Catholic 
and  all.  That  kind  of  stuff  drives  me  crazy.  I’m  not  saying  it  ruined  our  conversation  or 
anything— it  didn’t— but  it  sure  as  hell  didn’t  do  it  any  good.  That's  why  I  was  glad  those 
two  nuns  didn’t  ask  me  if  I  was  a  Catholic.  It  wouldn’t  have  spoiled  the  conversation  if 
they  had,  but  it  would've  been  different,  probably.  I’m  not  saying  I  blame  Catholics.  I 
don’t.  I’d  be  the  same  way,  probably,  if  I  was  a  Catholic.  It’s  just  like  those  suitcases  I  was 
telling  you  about,  in  a  way.  All  I'm  saying  is  that  it's  no  good  for  a  nice  conversation. 
That's  all  I’m  saying. 

When  they  got  up  to  go,  the  two  nuns,  I  did  something  very  stupid  and 
embarrassing.  I  was  smoking  a  cigarette,  and  when  I  stood  up  to  say  good-by  to  them,  by 
mistake  I  blew  some  smoke  in  their  face.  I  didn’t  mean  to,  but  I  did  it.  I  apologized  like  a 
madman,  and  they  were  very  polite  and  nice  about  it,  but  it  was  very  embarrassing 
anyway. 

After  they  left,  I  started  getting  sorry  that  I’d  only  given  them  ten  bucks  for  their 
collection.  But  the  thing  was,  I’d  made  that  date  to  go  to  a  matinee  with  old  Sally  Hayes, 
and  I  needed  to  keep  some  dough  for  the  tickets  and  stuff.  I  was  sorry  anyway,  though. 
Goddam  money.  It  always  ends  up  making  you  blue  as  hell. 


16 


After  I  had  my  breakfast,  it  was  only  around  noon,  and  I  wasn’t  meeting  old  Sally 
till  two  o’clock,  so  I  started  taking  this  long  walk.  I  couldn’t  stop  thinking  about  those  two 
nuns.  I  kept  thinking  about  that  heatup  old  straw  basket  they  went  around  collecting 
money  with  when  they  weren’t  teaching  school.  I  kept  trying  to  picture  my  mother  or 
somebody,  or  my  aunt,  or  Sally  Hayes's  crazy  mother,  standing  outside  some  department 
store  and  collecting  dough  for  poor  people  in  a  beat-up  old  straw  basket.  It  was  hard  to 
picture.  Not  so  much  my  mother,  but  those  other  two.  My  aunt's  pretty  charitable— she 
does  a  lot  of  Red  Cross  work  and  all— but  she's  very  well-dressed  and  all,  and  when  she 
does  anything  charitable  she's  always  very  well-dressed  and  has  lipstick  on  and  all  that 
crap.  I  couldn’t  picture  her  doing  anything  for  charity  if  she  had  to  wear  black  clothes  and 
no  lipstick  while  she  was  doing  it.  And  old  Sally  Hayes's  mother.  Jesus  Christ.  The  only 


way  she  could  go  around  with  a  basket  collecting  dough  would  be  if  everybody  kissed 
her  ass  for  her  when  they  made  a  contribution.  If  they  just  dropped  their  dough  in  her 
basket,  then  walked  away  without  saying  anything  to  her,  ignoring  her  and  all,  she’d  quit 
in  about  an  hour.  She’d  get  bored.  She’d  hand  in  her  basket  and  then  go  someplace 
swanky  for  lunch.  That’s  what  I  liked  about  those  nuns.  You  could  tell,  for  one  thing,  that 
they  never  went  anywhere  swanky  for  lunch.  It  made  me  so  damn  sad  when  I  thought 
about  it,  their  never  going  anywhere  swanky  for  lunch  or  anything.  I  knew  it  wasn't  too 
important,  but  it  made  me  sad  anyway. 

I  started  walking  over  toward  Broadway,  just  for  the  hell  of  it,  because  I  hadn’t 
been  over  there  in  years.  Besides,  I  wanted  to  find  a  record  store  that  was  open  on 
Sunday.  There  was  this  record  I  wanted  to  get  for  Phoebe,  called  "Little  Shirley  Beans." 

It  was  a  very  hard  record  to  get.  It  was  about  a  little  kid  that  wouldn’t  go  out  of  the  house 
because  two  of  her  front  teeth  were  out  and  she  was  ashamed  to.  I  heard  it  at  Pencey.  A 
boy  that  lived  on  the  next  floor  had  it,  and  I  tried  to  buy  it  off  him  because  I  knew  it 
would  knock  old  Phoebe  out,  but  he  wouldn’t  sell  it.  It  was  a  very  old,  terrific  record  that 
this  colored  girl  singer,  Estelle  Fletcher,  made  about  twenty  years  ago.  She  sings  it  very 
Dixieland  and  whorehouse,  and  it  doesn't  sound  at  all  mushy.  If  a  white  girl  was  singing 
it,  she’d  make  it  sound  cute  as  hell,  but  old  Estelle  Fletcher  knew  what  the  hell  she  was 
doing,  and  it  was  one  of  the  best  records  I  ever  heard.  I  figured  I’d  buy  it  in  some  store 
that  was  open  on  Sunday  and  then  I’d  take  it  up  to  the  park  with  me.  It  was  Sunday  and 
Phoebe  goes  rollerskating  in  the  park  on  Sundays  quite  frequently.  I  knew  where  she 
hung  out  mostly. 

It  wasn't  as  cold  as  it  was  the  day  before,  but  the  sun  still  wasn’t  out,  and  it  wasn’t 
too  nice  for  walking.  But  there  was  one  nice  thing.  This  family  that  you  could  tell  just 
came  out  of  some  church  were  walking  right  in  front  of  me— a  father,  a  mother,  and  a 
little  kid  about  six  years  old.  They  looked  sort  of  poor.  The  father  had  on  one  of  those 
pearl-gray  hats  that  poor  guys  wear  a  lot  when  they  want  to  look  sharp.  He  and  his  wife 
were  just  walking  along,  talking,  not  paying  any  attention  to  their  kid.  The  kid  was  swell. 
He  was  walking  in  the  street,  instead  of  on  the  sidewalk,  but  right  next  to  the  curb.  He 
was  making  out  like  he  was  walking  a  very  straight  line,  the  way  kids  do,  and  the  whole 
time  he  kept  singing  and  humming.  I  got  up  closer  so  I  could  hear  what  he  was  singing. 
He  was  singing  that  song,  "If  a  body  catch  a  body  coming  through  the  rye."  He  had  a 
pretty  little  voice,  too.  He  was  just  singing  for  the  hell  of  it,  you  could  tell.  The  cars 
zoomed  by,  brakes  screeched  all  over  the  place,  his  parents  paid  no  attention  to  him,  and 
he  kept  on  walking  next  to  the  curb  and  singing  "If  a  body  catch  a  body  coming  through 
the  rye."  It  made  me  feel  better.  It  made  me  feel  not  so  depressed  any  more. 

Broadway  was  mobbed  and  messy.  It  was  Sunday,  and  only  about  twelve  o’clock, 
but  it  was  mobbed  anyway.  Everybody  was  on  their  way  to  the  movies— the  Paramount  or 
the  Astor  or  the  Strand  or  the  Capitol  or  one  of  those  crazy  places.  Everybody  was  all 
dressed  up,  because  it  was  Sunday,  and  that  made  it  worse.  But  the  worst  part  was  that 
you  could  tell  they  all  wanted  to  go  to  the  movies.  I  couldn’t  stand  looking  at  them.  I  can 
understand  somebody  going  to  the  movies  because  there's  nothing  else  to  do,  but  when 
somebody  really  wants  to  go,  and  even  walks  fast  so  as  to  get  there  quicker,  then  it 
depresses  hell  out  of  me.  Especially  if  I  see  millions  of  people  standing  in  one  of  those 
long,  terrible  lines,  all  the  way  down  the  block,  waiting  with  this  terrific  patience  for  seats 
and  all.  Boy,  I  couldn’t  get  off  that  goddam  Broadway  fast  enough.  I  was  lucky.  The  first 


record  store  I  went  into  had  a  copy  of  "Little  Shirley  Beans."  They  charged  me  five  bucks 
for  it,  because  it  was  so  hard  to  get,  but  I  didn’t  care.  Boy,  it  made  me  so  happy  all  of  a 
sudden.  I  could  hardly  wait  to  get  to  the  park  to  see  if  old  Phoebe  was  around  so  that  I 
could  give  it  to  her. 

When  I  came  out  of  the  record  store,  I  passed  this  drugstore,  and  I  went  in.  I 
figured  maybe  I’d  give  old  Jane  a  buzz  and  see  if  she  was  home  for  vacation  yet.  So  I 
went  in  a  phone  booth  and  called  her  up.  The  only  trouble  was,  her  mother  answered  the 
phone,  so  I  had  to  hang  up.  I  didn’t  feel  like  getting  involved  in  a  long  conversation  and 
all  with  her.  I'm  not  crazy  about  talking  to  girls'  mothers  on  the  phone  anyway.  I 
should've  at  least  asked  her  if  Jane  was  home  yet,  though.  It  wouldn’t  have  killed  me.  But 
I  didn't  feel  like  it.  You  really  have  to  be  in  the  mood  for  that  stuff. 

I  still  had  to  get  those  damn  theater  tickets,  so  I  bought  a  paper  and  looked  up  to 
see  what  shows  were  playing.  On  account  of  it  was  Sunday,  there  were  only  about  three 
shows  playing.  So  what  I  did  was,  I  went  over  and  bought  two  orchestra  seats  for  I  Know 
My  Love.  It  was  a  benefit  performance  or  something.  I  didn’t  much  want  to  see  it,  but  I 
knew  old  Sally,  the  queen  of  the  phonies,  would  start  drooling  all  over  the  place  when  I 
told  her  I  had  tickets  for  that,  because  the  Lunts  were  in  it  and  all.  She  liked  shows  that 
are  supposed  to  be  very  sophisticated  and  dry  and  all,  with  the  Lunts  and  all.  I  don’t.  I 
don’t  like  any  shows  very  much,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth.  They’re  not  as  bad  as 
movies,  but  they're  certainly  nothing  to  rave  about.  In  the  first  place,  I  hate  actors.  They 
never  act  like  people.  They  just  think  they  do.  Some  of  the  good  ones  do,  in  a  very  slight 
way,  but  not  in  a  way  that's  fun  to  watch.  And  if  any  actor's  really  good,  you  can  always 
tell  he  knows  he's  good,  and  that  spoils  it.  You  take  Sir  Laurence  Olivier,  for  example.  I 
saw  him  in  Hamlet.  D.B.  took  Phoebe  and  I  to  see  it  last  year.  He  treated  us  to  lunch  first, 
and  then  he  took  us.  He’d  already  seen  it,  and  the  way  he  talked  about  it  at  lunch,  I  was 
anxious  as  hell  to  see  it,  too.  But  I  didn’t  enjoy  it  much.  I  just  don't  see  what's  so 
marvelous  about  Sir  Laurence  Olivier,  that's  all.  He  has  a  terrific  voice,  and  he's  a  helluva 
handsome  guy,  and  he's  very  nice  to  watch  when  he's  walking  or  dueling  or  something, 
but  he  wasn’t  at  all  the  way  D.B.  said  Hamlet  was.  He  was  too  much  like  a  goddam 
general,  instead  of  a  sad,  screwed-up  type  guy.  The  best  part  in  the  whole  picture  was 
when  old  Ophelia's  brother— the  one  that  gets  in  the  duel  with  Hamlet  at  the  very  end— 
was  going  away  and  his  father  was  giving  him  a  lot  of  advice.  While  the  father  kept 
giving  him  a  lot  of  advice,  old  Ophelia  was  sort  of  horsing  around  with  her  brother, 
taking  his  dagger  out  of  the  holster,  and  teasing  him  and  all  while  he  was  trying  to  look 
interested  in  the  bull  his  father  was  shooting.  That  was  nice.  I  got  a  big  bang  out  of  that. 
But  you  don't  see  that  kind  of  stuff  much.  The  only  thing  old  Phoebe  liked  was  when 
Hamlet  patted  this  dog  on  the  head.  She  thought  that  was  funny  and  nice,  and  it  was. 

What  I'll  have  to  do  is.  I'll  have  to  read  that  play.  The  trouble  with  me  is,  I  always  have  to 
read  that  stuff  by  myself.  If  an  actor  acts  it  out,  I  hardly  listen.  I  keep  worrying  about 
whether  he's  going  to  do  something  phony  every  minute. 

After  I  got  the  tickets  to  the  Lunts'  show,  I  took  a  cab  up  to  the  park.  I  should've 
taken  a  subway  or  something,  because  I  was  getting  slightly  low  on  dough,  but  I  wanted 
to  get  off  that  damn  Broadway  as  fast  as  I  could. 

It  was  lousy  in  the  park.  It  wasn't  too  cold,  but  the  sun  still  wasn’t  out,  and  there 
didn't  look  like  there  was  anything  in  the  park  except  dog  crap  and  globs  of  spit  and  cigar 
butts  from  old  men,  and  the  benches  all  looked  like  they'd  be  wet  if  you  sat  down  on 


them.  It  made  you  depressed,  and  every  once  in  a  while,  for  no  reason,  you  got  goose 
flesh  while  you  walked.  It  didn’t  seem  at  all  like  Christmas  was  coming  soon.  It  didn’t 
seem  like  anything  was  coming.  But  I  kept  walking  over  to  the  Mall  anyway,  because 
that's  where  Phoebe  usually  goes  when  she's  in  the  park.  She  likes  to  skate  near  the 
bandstand.  It's  funny.  That’s  the  same  place  I  used  to  like  to  skate  when  I  was  a  kid. 

When  I  got  there,  though,  I  didn’t  see  her  around  anywhere.  There  were  a  few  kids 
around,  skating  and  all,  and  two  boys  were  playing  Flys  Up  with  a  soft  ball,  but  no 
Phoebe.  I  saw  one  kid  about  her  age,  though,  sitting  on  a  bench  all  by  herself,  tightening 
her  skate.  I  thought  maybe  she  might  know  Phoebe  and  could  tell  me  where  she  was  or 
something,  so  I  went  over  and  sat  down  next  to  her  and  asked  her,  "Do  you  know  Phoebe 
Caulfield,  by  any  chance?" 

"Who?"  she  said.  All  she  had  on  was  jeans  and  about  twenty  sweaters.  You  could 
tell  her  mother  made  them  for  her,  because  they  were  lumpy  as  hell. 

"Phoebe  Caulfield.  She  lives  on  Seventy-first  Street.  She's  in  the  fourth  grade, 
over  at—" 

"You  know  Phoebe?" 

"Yeah,  I'm  her  brother.  You  know  where  she  is?" 

"She's  in  Miss  Gallon's  class,  isn't  she?"  the  kid  said. 

"I  don’t  know.  Yes,  I  think  she  is." 

"She's  prob'ly  in  the  museum,  then.  We  went  last  Saturday,"  the  kid  said. 

"Which  museum?"  I  asked  her. 

She  shrugged  her  shoulders,  sort  of.  "I  don’t  know,"  she  said.  "The  museum." 

"I  know,  but  the  one  where  the  pictures  are,  or  the  one  where  the  Indians  are?" 

"The  one  where  the  Indians." 

"Thanks  a  lot,"  I  said.  I  got  up  and  started  to  go,  but  then  I  suddenly  remembered 
it  was  Sunday.  "This  is  Sunday,"  I  told  the  kid. 

She  looked  up  at  me.  "Oh.  Then  she  isn’t." 

She  was  having  a  helluva  time  tightening  her  skate.  She  didn't  have  any  gloves  on 
or  anything  and  her  hands  were  all  red  and  cold.  I  gave  her  a  hand  with  it.  Boy,  I  hadn’t 
had  a  skate  key  in  my  hand  for  years.  It  didn’t  feel  funny,  though.  You  could  put  a  skate 
key  in  my  hand  fifty  years  from  now,  in  pitch  dark,  and  I'd  still  know  what  it  is.  She 
thanked  me  and  all  when  I  had  it  tightened  for  her.  She  was  a  very  nice,  polite  little  kid. 
God,  I  love  it  when  a  kid’s  nice  and  polite  when  you  tighten  their  skate  for  them  or 
something.  Most  kids  are.  They  really  are.  I  asked  her  if  she’d  care  to  have  a  hot 
chocolate  or  something  with  me,  but  she  said  no,  thank  you.  She  said  she  had  to  meet  her 
friend.  Kids  always  have  to  meet  their  friend.  That  kills  me. 

Even  though  it  was  Sunday  and  Phoebe  wouldn’t  be  there  with  her  class  or 
anything,  and  even  though  it  was  so  damp  and  lousy  out,  I  walked  all  the  way  through  the 
park  over  to  the  Museum  of  Natural  History.  I  knew  that  was  the  museum  the  kid  with 
the  skate  key  meant.  I  knew  that  whole  museum  routine  like  a  book.  Phoebe  went  to  the 
same  school  I  went  to  when  I  was  a  kid,  and  we  used  to  go  there  all  the  time.  We  had  this 
teacher,  Miss  Aigletinger,  that  took  us  there  damn  near  every  Saturday.  Sometimes  we 
looked  at  the  animals  and  sometimes  we  looked  at  the  stuff  the  Indians  had  made  in 
ancient  times.  Pottery  and  straw  baskets  and  all  stuff  like  that.  I  get  very  happy  when  I 
think  about  it.  Even  now.  I  remember  after  we  looked  at  all  the  Indian  stuff,  usually  we 
went  to  see  some  movie  in  this  big  auditorium.  Columbus.  They  were  always  showing 


Columbus  discovering  America,  having  one  helluva  time  getting  old  Ferdinand  and 
Isabella  to  lend  him  the  dough  to  buy  ships  with,  and  then  the  sailors  mutinying  on  him 
and  all.  Nobody  gave  too  much  of  a  damn  about  old  Columbus,  but  you  always  had  a  lot 
of  candy  and  gum  and  stuff  with  you,  and  the  inside  of  that  auditorium  had  such  a  nice 
smell.  It  always  smelled  like  it  was  raining  outside,  even  if  it  wasn’t,  and  you  were  in  the 
only  nice,  dry,  cosy  place  in  the  world.  I  loved  that  damn  museum.  I  remember  you  had 
to  go  through  the  Indian  Room  to  get  to  the  auditorium.  It  was  a  long,  long  room,  and  you 
were  only  supposed  to  whisper.  The  teacher  would  go  first,  then  the  class.  You’d  be  two 
rows  of  kids,  and  you'd  have  a  partner.  Most  of  the  time  my  partner  was  this  girl  named 
Gertrude  Levine.  She  always  wanted  to  hold  your  hand,  and  her  hand  was  always  sticky 
or  sweaty  or  something.  The  floor  was  all  stone,  and  if  you  had  some  marbles  in  your 
hand  and  you  dropped  them,  they  bounced  like  madmen  all  over  the  floor  and  made  a 
helluva  racket,  and  the  teacher  would  hold  up  the  class  and  go  back  and  see  what  the  hell 
was  going  on.  She  never  got  sore,  though,  Miss  Aigletinger.  Then  you’d  pass  by  this  long, 
long  Indian  war  canoe,  about  as  long  as  three  goddam  Cadillacs  in  a  row,  with  about 
twenty  Indians  in  it,  some  of  them  paddling,  some  of  them  just  standing  around  looking 
tough,  and  they  all  had  war  paint  all  over  their  faces.  There  was  one  very  spooky  guy  in 
the  back  of  the  canoe,  with  a  mask  on.  He  was  the  witch  doctor.  He  gave  me  the  creeps, 
but  I  liked  him  anyway.  Another  thing,  if  you  touched  one  of  the  paddles  or  anything 
while  you  were  passing,  one  of  the  guards  would  say  to  you,  "Don’t  touch  anything, 
children,"  but  he  always  said  it  in  a  nice  voice,  not  like  a  goddam  cop  or  anything.  Then 
you'd  pass  by  this  big  glass  case,  with  Indians  inside  it  rubbing  sticks  together  to  make  a 
fire,  and  a  squaw  weaving  a  blanket.  The  squaw  that  was  weaving  the  blanket  was  sort  of 
bending  over,  and  you  could  see  her  bosom  and  all.  We  all  used  to  sneak  a  good  look  at 
it,  even  the  girls,  because  they  were  only  little  kids  and  they  didn't  have  any  more  bosom 
than  we  did.  Then,  just  before  you  went  inside  the  auditorium,  right  near  the  doors,  you 
passed  this  Eskimo.  He  was  sitting  over  a  hole  in  this  icy  lake,  and  he  was  fishing 
through  it.  He  had  about  two  fish  right  next  to  the  hole,  that  he’d  already  caught.  Boy,  that 
museum  was  full  of  glass  cases.  There  were  even  more  upstairs,  with  deer  inside  them 
drinking  at  water  holes,  and  birds  flying  south  for  the  winter.  The  birds  nearest  you  were 
all  stuffed  and  hung  up  on  wires,  and  the  ones  in  back  were  just  painted  on  the  wall,  but 
they  all  looked  like  they  were  really  flying  south,  and  if  you  bent  your  head  down  and 
sort  of  looked  at  them  upside  down,  they  looked  in  an  even  bigger  hurry  to  fly  south.  The 
best  thing,  though,  in  that  museum  was  that  everything  always  stayed  right  where  it  was. 
Nobody'd  move.  You  could  go  there  a  hundred  thousand  times,  and  that  Eskimo  would 
still  be  just  finished  catching  those  two  fish,  the  birds  would  still  be  on  their  way  south, 
the  deers  would  still  be  drinking  out  of  that  water  hole,  with  their  pretty  antlers  and  their 
pretty,  skinny  legs,  and  that  squaw  with  the  naked  bosom  would  still  be  weaving  that 
same  blanket.  Nobody'd  be  different.  The  only  thing  that  would  be  different  would  be 
you.  Not  that  you'd  be  so  much  older  or  anything.  It  wouldn’t  be  that,  exactly.  You'd  just 
be  different,  that's  all.  You’d  have  an  overcoat  on  this  time.  Or  the  kid  that  was  your 
partner  in  line  the  last  time  had  got  scarlet  fever  and  you'd  have  a  new  partner.  Or  you’d 
have  a  substitute  taking  the  class,  instead  of  Miss  Aigletinger.  Or  you'd  heard  your 
mother  and  father  having  a  terrific  fight  in  the  bathroom.  Or  you'd  just  passed  by  one  of 
those  puddles  in  the  street  with  gasoline  rainbows  in  them.  I  mean  you'd  be  different  in 
some  way— I  can’t  explain  what  I  mean.  And  even  if  I  could,  I'm  not  sure  I’d  feel  like  it. 


I  took  my  old  hunting  hat  out  of  my  pocket  while  I  walked,  and  put  it  on.  I  knew  I 
wouldn’t  meet  anybody  that  knew  me,  and  it  was  pretty  damp  out.  I  kept  walking  and 
walking,  and  I  kept  thinking  about  old  Phoebe  going  to  that  museum  on  Saturdays  the 
way  I  used  to.  I  thought  how  she’d  see  the  same  stuff  I  used  to  see,  and  how  she’d  be 
different  every  time  she  saw  it.  It  didn’t  exactly  depress  me  to  think  about  it,  but  it  didn’t 
make  me  feel  gay  as  hell,  either.  Certain  things  they  should  stay  the  way  they  are.  You 
ought  to  be  able  to  stick  them  in  one  of  those  big  glass  cases  and  just  leave  them  alone.  I 
know  that's  impossible,  but  it's  too  bad  anyway.  Anyway,  I  kept  thinking  about  all  that 
while  I  walked. 

I  passed  by  this  playground  and  stopped  and  watched  a  couple  of  very  tiny  kids 
on  a  seesaw.  One  of  them  was  sort  of  fat,  and  I  put  my  hand  on  the  skinny  kid's  end,  to 
sort  of  even  up  the  weight,  but  you  could  tell  they  didn’t  want  me  around,  so  I  let  them 
alone. 

Then  a  funny  thing  happened.  When  I  got  to  the  museum,  all  of  a  sudden  I 
wouldn’t  have  gone  inside  for  a  million  bucks.  It  just  didn’t  appeal  to  me— and  here  I’d 
walked  through  the  whole  goddam  park  and  looked  forward  to  it  and  all.  If  Phoebe’d  been 
there,  I  probably  would  have,  but  she  wasn’t.  So  all  I  did,  in  front  of  the  museum,  was  get 
a  cab  and  go  down  to  the  Biltmore.  I  didn’t  feel  much  like  going.  I’d  made  that  damn  date 
with  Sally,  though. 


17 


I  was  way  early  when  I  got  there,  so  I  just  sat  down  on  one  of  those  leather 
couches  right  near  the  clock  in  the  lobby  and  watched  the  girls.  A  lot  of  schools  were 
home  for  vacation  already,  and  there  were  about  a  million  girls  sitting  and  standing 
around  waiting  for  their  dates  to  show  up.  Girls  with  their  legs  crossed,  girls  with  their 
legs  not  crossed,  girls  with  terrific  legs,  girls  with  lousy  legs,  girls  that  looked  like  swell 
girls,  girls  that  looked  like  they'd  be  bitches  if  you  knew  them.  It  was  really  nice 
sightseeing,  if  you  know  what  I  mean.  In  a  way,  it  was  sort  of  depressing,  too,  because 
you  kept  wondering  what  the  hell  would  happen  to  all  of  them.  When  they  got  out  of 
school  and  college,  I  mean.  You  figured  most  of  them  would  probably  marry  dopey  guys. 
Guys  that  always  talk  about  how  many  miles  they  get  to  a  gallon  in  their  goddam  cars. 
Guys  that  get  sore  and  childish  as  hell  if  you  beat  them  at  golf,  or  even  just  some  stupid 
game  like  ping-pong.  Guys  that  are  very  mean.  Guys  that  never  read  books.  Guys  that  are 
very  boring— But  I  have  to  be  careful  about  that.  I  mean  about  calling  certain  guys  bores.  I 
don’t  understand  boring  guys.  I  really  don't.  When  I  was  at  Elkton  Hills,  I  roomed  for 
about  two  months  with  this  boy,  Harris  Mackim.  He  was  very  intelligent  and  all,  but  he 
was  one  of  the  biggest  bores  I  ever  met.  He  had  one  of  these  very  raspy  voices,  and  he 
never  stopped  talking,  practically.  He  never  stopped  talking,  and  what  was  awful  was,  he 
never  said  anything  you  wanted  to  hear  in  the  first  place.  But  he  could  do  one  thing.  The 
sonuvabitch  could  whistle  better  than  anybody  I  ever  heard.  He'd  be  making  his  bed,  or 
hanging  up  stuff  in  the  closet— he  was  always  hanging  up  stuff  in  the  closet— it  drove  me 
crazy— and  he’d  be  whistling  while  he  did  it,  if  he  wasn’t  talking  in  this  raspy  voice.  He 
could  even  whistle  classical  stuff,  but  most  of  the  time  he  just  whistled  jazz.  He  could 
take  something  very  jazzy,  like  "Tin  Roof  Blues,"  and  whistle  it  so  nice  and  easy— right 


while  he  was  hanging  stuff  up  in  the  closet— that  it  could  kill  you.  Naturally,  I  never  told 
him  I  thought  he  was  a  terrific  whistler.  I  mean  you  don’t  just  go  up  to  somebody  and  say, 
"You're  a  terrific  whistler."  But  I  roomed  with  him  for  about  two  whole  months,  even 
though  he  bored  me  till  I  was  half  crazy,  just  because  he  was  such  a  terrific  whistler,  the 
best  I  ever  heard.  So  I  don't  know  about  bores.  Maybe  you  shouldn’t  feel  too  sorry  if  you 
see  some  swell  girl  getting  married  to  them.  They  don't  hurt  anybody,  most  of  them,  and 
maybe  they're  secretly  all  terrific  whistlers  or  something.  Who  the  hell  knows?  Not  me. 

Finally,  old  Sally  started  coming  up  the  stairs,  and  I  started  down  to  meet  her.  She 
looked  terrific.  She  really  did.  She  had  on  this  black  coat  and  sort  of  a  black  beret.  She 
hardly  ever  wore  a  hat,  but  that  beret  looked  nice.  The  funny  part  is,  I  felt  like  marrying 
her  the  minute  I  saw  her.  I'm  crazy.  I  didn’t  even  like  her  much,  and  yet  all  of  a  sudden  I 
felt  like  I  was  in  love  with  her  and  wanted  to  marry  her.  I  swear  to  God  I'm  crazy.  I  admit 
it. 

"Holden!"  she  said.  "It's  marvelous  to  see  you!  It's  been  ages."  She  had  one  of 
these  very  loud,  embarrassing  voices  when  you  met  her  somewhere.  She  got  away  with  it 
because  she  was  so  damn  good-looking,  but  it  always  gave  me  a  pain  in  the  ass. 

"Swell  to  see  you,"  I  said.  I  meant  it,  too.  "How  are  ya,  anyway?" 

"Absolutely  marvelous.  Am  I  late?" 

I  told  her  no,  but  she  was  around  ten  minutes  late,  as  a  matter  of  fact.  I  didn’t  give 
a  damn,  though.  All  that  crap  they  have  in  cartoons  in  the  Saturday  Evening  Post  and  all, 
showing  guys  on  street  corners  looking  sore  as  hell  because  their  dates  are  late— that's 
bunk.  If  a  girl  looks  swell  when  she  meets  you,  who  gives  a  damn  if  she's  late?  Nobody. 
"We  better  hurry,"  I  said.  "The  show  starts  at  two-forty."  We  started  going  down  the 
stairs  to  where  the  taxis  are. 

"What  are  we  going  to  see?"  she  said. 

"I  don’t  know.  The  Lunts.  It's  all  I  could  get  tickets  for." 

"The  Lunts!  Oh,  marvelous!"  I  told  you  she’d  go  mad  when  she  heard  it  was  for 
the  Lunts. 

We  horsed  around  a  little  bit  in  the  cab  on  the  way  over  to  the  theater.  At  first  she 
didn't  want  to,  because  she  had  her  lipstick  on  and  all,  but  I  was  being  seductive  as  hell 
and  she  didn’t  have  any  alternative.  Twice,  when  the  goddam  cab  stopped  short  in  traffic, 

I  damn  near  fell  off  the  seat.  Those  damn  drivers  never  even  look  where  they're  going,  I 
swear  they  don’t.  Then,  just  to  show  you  how  crazy  I  am,  when  we  were  coming  out  of 
this  big  clinch,  I  told  her  I  loved  her  and  all.  It  was  a  lie,  of  course,  but  the  thing  is,  I 
meant  it  when  I  said  it.  I'm  crazy.  I  swear  to  God  I  am. 

"Oh,  darling,  I  love  you  too,"  she  said.  Then,  right  in  the  same  damn  breath,  she 
said,  "Promise  me  you'll  let  your  hair  grow.  Crew  cuts  are  getting  corny.  And  your  hair’s 
so  lovely." 

Lovely  my  ass. 

The  show  wasn’t  as  bad  as  some  I've  seen.  It  was  on  the  crappy  side,  though.  It 
was  about  five  hundred  thousand  years  in  the  life  of  this  one  old  couple.  It  starts  out  when 
they're  young  and  all,  and  the  girl's  parents  don’t  want  her  to  marry  the  boy,  but  she 
marries  him  anyway.  Then  they  keep  getting  older  and  older.  The  husband  goes  to  war, 
and  the  wife  has  this  brother  that's  a  drunkard.  I  couldn’t  get  very  interested.  I  mean  I 
didn't  care  too  much  when  anybody  in  the  family  died  or  anything.  They  were  all  just  a 
bunch  of  actors.  The  husband  and  wife  were  a  pretty  nice  old  couple— very  witty  and  all— 


but  I  couldn’t  get  too  interested  in  them.  For  one  thing,  they  kept  drinking  tea  or  some 
goddam  thing  all  through  the  play.  Every  time  you  saw  them,  some  butler  was  shoving 
some  tea  in  front  of  them,  or  the  wife  was  pouring  it  for  somebody.  And  everybody  kept 
coming  in  and  going  out  all  the  time— you  got  dizzy  watching  people  sit  down  and  stand 
up.  Alfred  Lunt  and  Lynn  Fontanne  were  the  old  couple,  and  they  were  very  good,  but  I 
didn't  like  them  much.  They  were  different,  though,  I'll  say  that.  They  didn't  act  like 
people  and  they  didn’t  act  like  actors.  It’s  hard  to  explain.  They  acted  more  like  they  knew 
they  were  celebrities  and  all.  I  mean  they  were  good,  but  they  were  too  good.  When  one 
of  them  got  finished  making  a  speech,  the  other  one  said  something  very  fast  right  after  it. 
It  was  supposed  to  be  like  people  really  talking  and  interrupting  each  other  and  all.  The 
trouble  was,  it  was  too  much  like  people  talking  and  interrupting  each  other.  They  acted  a 
little  bit  the  way  old  Ernie,  down  in  the  Village,  plays  the  piano.  If  you  do  something  too 
good,  then,  after  a  while,  if  you  don’t  watch  it,  you  start  showing  off.  And  then  you're  not 
as  good  any  more.  But  anyway,  they  were  the  only  ones  in  the  show— the  Lunts,  I  mean— 
that  looked  like  they  had  any  real  brains.  I  have  to  admit  it. 

At  the  end  of  the  first  act  we  went  out  with  all  the  other  jerks  for  a  cigarette.  What 
a  deal  that  was.  You  never  saw  so  many  phonies  in  all  your  life,  everybody  smoking  their 
ears  off  and  talking  about  the  play  so  that  everybody  could  hear  and  know  how  sharp  they 
were.  Some  dopey  movie  actor  was  standing  near  us,  having  a  cigarette.  I  don't  know  his 
name,  but  he  always  plays  the  part  of  a  guy  in  a  war  movie  that  gets  yellow  before  it's 
time  to  go  over  the  top.  He  was  with  some  gorgeous  blonde,  and  the  two  of  them  were 
trying  to  be  very  blase  and  all,  like  as  if  he  didn’t  even  know  people  were  looking  at  him. 
Modest  as  hell.  I  got  a  big  bang  out  of  it.  Old  Sally  didn’t  talk  much,  except  to  rave  about 
the  Lunts,  because  she  was  busy  rubbering  and  being  charming.  Then  all  of  a  sudden,  she 
saw  some  jerk  she  knew  on  the  other  side  of  the  lobby.  Some  guy  in  one  of  those  very 
dark  gray  flannel  suits  and  one  of  those  checkered  vests.  Strictly  Ivy  League.  Big  deal. 

He  was  standing  next  to  the  wall,  smoking  himself  to  death  and  looking  bored  as  hell. 

Old  Sally  kept  saying,  "I  know  that  boy  from  somewhere."  She  always  knew  somebody, 
any  place  you  took  her,  or  thought  she  did.  She  kept  saying  that  till  I  got  bored  as  hell, 
and  I  said  to  her,  "Why  don’t  you  go  on  over  and  give  him  a  big  soul  kiss,  if  you  know 
him?  He’ll  enjoy  it."  She  got  sore  when  I  said  that.  Finally,  though,  the  jerk  noticed  her 
and  came  over  and  said  hello.  You  should've  seen  the  way  they  said  hello.  You’d  have 
thought  they  hadn’t  seen  each  other  in  twenty  years.  You'd  have  thought  they'd  taken 
baths  in  the  same  bathtub  or  something  when  they  were  little  kids.  Old  buddyroos.  It  was 
nauseating.  The  funny  part  was,  they  probably  met  each  other  just  once,  at  some  phony 
party.  Finally,  when  they  were  all  done  slobbering  around,  old  Sally  introduced  us.  His 
name  was  George  something— I  don’t  even  remember— and  he  went  to  Andover.  Big,  big 
deal.  You  should've  seen  him  when  old  Sally  asked  him  how  he  liked  the  play.  He  was 
the  kind  of  a  phony  that  have  to  give  themselves  room  when  they  answer  somebody's 
question.  He  stepped  back,  and  stepped  right  on  the  lady's  foot  behind  him.  He  probably 
broke  every  toe  in  her  body.  He  said  the  play  itself  was  no  masterpiece,  but  that  the 
Lunts,  of  course,  were  absolute  angels.  Angels.  For  Chrissake.  Angels.  That  killed  me. 
Then  he  and  old  Sally  started  talking  about  a  lot  of  people  they  both  knew.  It  was  the 
phoniest  conversation  you  ever  heard  in  your  life.  They  both  kept  thinking  of  places  as 
fast  as  they  could,  then  they'd  think  of  somebody  that  lived  there  and  mention  their  name. 
I  was  all  set  to  puke  when  it  was  time  to  go  sit  down  again.  I  really  was.  And  then,  when 


the  next  act  was  over,  they  continued  their  goddam  boring  conversation.  They  kept 
thinking  of  more  places  and  more  names  of  people  that  lived  there.  The  worst  part  was, 
the  jerk  had  one  of  those  very  phony,  Ivy  League  voices,  one  of  those  very  tired,  snobby 
voices.  He  sounded  just  like  a  girl.  He  didn’t  hesitate  to  horn  in  on  my  date,  the  bastard.  I 
even  thought  for  a  minute  that  he  was  going  to  get  in  the  goddam  cab  with  us  when  the 
show  was  over,  because  he  walked  about  two  blocks  with  us,  but  he  had  to  meet  a  bunch 
of  phonies  for  cocktails,  he  said.  I  could  see  them  all  sitting  around  in  some  bar,  with 
their  goddam  checkered  vests,  criticizing  shows  and  books  and  women  in  those  tired, 
snobby  voices.  They  kill  me,  those  guys. 

I  sort  of  hated  old  Sally  by  the  time  we  got  in  the  cab,  after  listening  to  that  phony 
Andover  bastard  for  about  ten  hours.  I  was  all  set  to  take  her  home  and  all— I  really  was— 
but  she  said,  "I  have  a  marvelous  idea!"  She  was  always  having  a  marvelous  idea. 
"Listen,"  she  said.  "What  time  do  you  have  to  be  home  for  dinner?  I  mean  are  you  in  a 
terrible  hurry  or  anything?  Do  you  have  to  be  home  any  special  time?" 

"Me?  No.  No  special  time,"  I  said.  Truer  word  was  never  spoken,  boy.  "Why?" 

"Let's  go  ice-skating  at  Radio  City!" 

That’s  the  kind  of  ideas  she  always  had. 

"Ice-skating  at  Radio  City?  You  mean  right  now?" 

"Just  for  an  hour  or  so.  Don’t  you  want  to?  If  you  don't  want  to—" 

"I  didn’t  say  I  didn’t  want  to,"  I  said.  "Sure.  If  you  want  to." 

"Do  you  mean  it?  Don't  just  say  it  if  you  don’t  mean  it.  I  mean  I  don’t  give  a  dam, 
one  way  or  the  other." 

Not  much  she  didn’t. 

"You  can  rent  those  darling  little  skating  skirts,"  old  Sally  said.  "Jeannette  Cultz 
did  it  last  week." 

That’s  why  she  was  so  hot  to  go.  She  wanted  to  see  herself  in  one  of  those  little 
skirts  that  just  come  down  over  their  butt  and  all. 

So  we  went,  and  after  they  gave  us  our  skates,  they  gave  Sally  this  little  blue  butt- 
twitcher  of  a  dress  to  wear.  She  really  did  look  damn  good  in  it,  though.  I  save  to  admit  it. 
And  don’t  think  she  didn’t  know  it.  The  kept  walking  ahead  of  me,  so  that  I’d  see  how 
cute  her  little  ass  looked.  It  did  look  pretty  cute,  too.  I  have  to  admit  it. 

The  funny  part  was,  though,  we  were  the  worst  skaters  on  the  whole  goddam  rink. 
I  mean  the  worst.  And  there  were  some  lulus,  too.  Old  Sally's  ankles  kept  bending  in  till 
they  were  practically  on  the  ice.  They  not  only  looked  stupid  as  hell,  but  they  probably 
hurt  like  hell,  too.  I  know  mine  did.  Mine  were  killing  me.  We  must've  looked  gorgeous. 
And  what  made  it  worse,  there  were  at  least  a  couple  of  hundred  rubbernecks  that  didn’t 
have  anything  better  to  do  than  stand  around  and  watch  everybody  falling  all  over 
themselves. 

"Do  you  want  to  get  a  table  inside  and  have  a  drink  or  something?"  I  said  to  her 

finally. 

"That's  the  most  marvelous  idea  you've  had  all  day,"  the  said.  She  was  killing 
herself.  It  was  brutal.  I  really  felt  sorry  for  her. 

We  took  off  our  goddam  skates  and  went  inside  this  bar  where  you  can  get  drinks 
and  watch  the  skaters  in  just  your  stocking  feet.  As  soon  as  we  sat  down,  old  Sally  took 
off  her  gloves,  and  I  gave  her  a  cigarette.  She  wasn’t  looking  too  happy.  The  waiter  came 
up,  and  I  ordered  a  Coke  for  her— she  didn’t  drink— and  a  Scotch  and  soda  for  myself,  but 


the  sonuvabitch  wouldn’t  bring  me  one,  so  I  had  a  Coke,  too.  Then  I  sort  of  started 
lighting  matches.  I  do  that  quite  a  lot  when  I'm  in  a  certain  mood.  I  sort  of  let  them  burn 
down  till  I  can’t  hold  them  any  more,  then  I  drop  them  in  the  ashtray.  It's  a  nervous  habit. 

Then  all  of  a  sudden,  out  of  a  clear  blue  sky,  old  Sally  said,  "Look.  I  have  to 
know.  Are  you  or  aren’t  you  coming  over  to  help  me  trim  the  tree  Christmas  Eve?  I  have 
to  know."  She  was  still  being  snotty  on  account  of  her  ankles  when  she  was  skating. 

"I  wrote  you  I  would.  You've  asked  me  that  about  twenty  times.  Sure,  I  am." 

"I  mean  I  have  to  know,"  she  said.  She  started  looking  all  around  the  goddam 

room. 

All  of  a  sudden  I  quit  lighting  matches,  and  sort  of  leaned  nearer  to  her  over  the 
table.  I  had  quite  a  few  topics  on  my  mind.  "Hey,  Sally,"  I  said. 

"What?"  she  said.  She  was  looking  at  some  girl  on  the  other  side  of  the  room. 

"Did  you  ever  get  fed  up?"  I  said.  "I  mean  did  you  ever  get  scared  that  everything 
was  going  to  go  lousy  unless  you  did  something?  I  mean  do  you  like  school,  and  all  that 
stuff?" 

"It's  a  terrific  bore." 

"I  mean  do  you  hate  it?  I  know  it's  a  terrific  bore,  but  do  you  hate  it,  is  what  I 

mean." 

"Well,  I  don’t  exactly  hate  it.  You  always  have  to—" 

"Well,  I  hate  it.  Boy,  do  I  hate  it,"  I  said.  "But  it  isn’t  just  that.  It's  everything.  I 
hate  living  in  New  York  and  all.  Taxicabs,  and  Madison  Avenue  buses,  with  the  drivers 
and  all  always  yelling  at  you  to  get  out  at  the  rear  door,  and  being  introduced  to  phony 
guys  that  call  the  Lunts  angels,  and  going  up  and  down  in  elevators  when  you  just  want  to 
go  outside,  and  guys  fitting  your  pants  all  the  time  at  Brooks,  and  people  always—" 

"Don’t  shout,  please,"  old  Sally  said.  Which  was  very  funny,  because  I  wasn’t 
even  shouting. 

"Take  cars,"  I  said.  I  said  it  in  this  very  quiet  voice.  "Take  most  people,  they're 
crazy  about  cars.  They  worry  if  they  get  a  little  scratch  on  them,  and  they’re  always 
talking  about  how  many  miles  they  get  to  a  gallon,  and  if  they  get  a  brand-new  car 
already  they  start  thinking  about  trading  it  in  for  one  that's  even  newer.  I  don’t  even  like 
old  cars.  I  mean  they  don't  even  interest  me.  I’d  rather  have  a  goddam  horse.  A  horse  is  at 
least  human,  for  God's  sake.  A  horse  you  can  at  least—" 

"I  don’t  know  what  you're  even  talking  about,"  old  Sally  said.  "You  jump  from 

one—" 

"You  know  something?"  I  said.  "You're  probably  the  only  reason  I'm  in  New 
York  right  now,  or  anywhere.  If  you  weren’t  around,  I'd  probably  be  someplace  way  the 
hell  off.  In  the  woods  or  some  goddam  place.  You're  the  only  reason  I'm  around, 
practically." 

"You're  sweet,"  she  said.  But  you  could  tell  she  wanted  me  to  change  the  damn 

subject. 

"You  ought  to  go  to  a  boys'  school  sometime.  Try  it  sometime,"  I  said.  "It's  full  of 
phonies,  and  all  you  do  is  study  so  that  you  can  learn  enough  to  be  smart  enough  to  be 
able  to  buy  a  goddam  Cadillac  some  day,  and  you  have  to  keep  making  believe  you  give 
a  damn  if  the  football  team  loses,  and  all  you  do  is  talk  about  girls  and  liquor  and  sex  all 
day,  and  everybody  sticks  together  in  these  dirty  little  goddam  cliques.  The  guys  that  are 
on  the  basketball  team  stick  together,  the  Catholics  stick  together,  the  goddam 


intellectuals  stick  together,  the  guys  that  play  bridge  stick  together.  Even  the  guys  that 
belong  to  the  goddam  Book-of-the-Month  Club  stick  together.  If  you  try  to  have  a  little 
intelligent—" 

"Now,  listen,"  old  Sally  said.  "Lots  of  boys  get  more  out  of  school  than  that." 

"I  agree!  I  agree  they  do,  some  of  them!  But  that's  all  I  get  out  of  it.  See?  That’s 
my  point.  That's  exactly  my  goddam  point,"  I  said.  "I  don't  get  hardly  anything  out  of 
anything.  I'm  in  bad  shape.  I'm  in  lousy  shape." 

"You  certainly  are." 

Then,  all  of  a  sudden,  I  got  this  idea. 

"Look,"  I  said.  "Here's  my  idea.  How  would  you  like  to  get  the  hell  out  of  here? 
Here's  my  idea.  I  know  this  guy  down  in  Greenwich  Village  that  we  can  borrow  his  car 
for  a  couple  of  weeks.  He  used  to  go  to  the  same  school  I  did  and  he  still  owes  me  ten 
bucks.  What  we  could  do  is,  tomorrow  morning  we  could  drive  up  to  Massachusetts  and 
Vermont,  and  all  around  there,  see.  It's  beautiful  as  hell  up  there,  It  really  is."  I  was 
getting  excited  as  hell,  the  more  I  thought  of  it,  and  I  sort  of  reached  over  and  took  old 
Sally's  goddam  hand.  What  a  goddam  fool  I  was.  "No  kidding,"  I  said.  "I  have  about  a 
hundred  and  eighty  bucks  in  the  bank.  I  can  take  it  out  when  it  opens  in  the  morning,  and 
then  I  could  go  down  and  get  this  guy's  car.  No  kidding.  We'll  stay  in  these  cabin  camps 
and  stuff  like  that  till  the  dough  runs  out.  Then,  when  the  dough  runs  out,  I  could  get  a 
job  somewhere  and  we  could  live  somewhere  with  a  brook  and  all  and,  later  on,  we  could 
get  married  or  something.  I  could  chop  all  our  own  wood  in  the  wintertime  and  all. 
Honest  to  God,  we  could  have  a  terrific  time!  Wuddaya  say?  C’mon!  Wuddaya  say?  Will 
you  do  it  with  me?  Please!" 

"You  can't  just  do  something  like  that,"  old  Sally  said.  She  sounded  sore  as  hell. 

"Why  not?  Why  the  hell  not?" 

"Stop  screaming  at  me,  please,"  she  said.  Which  was  crap,  because  I  wasn't  even 
screaming  at  her. 

"Why  can'tcha?  Why  not?" 

"Because  you  can't,  that's  all.  In  the  first  place,  we’re  both  practically  children. 
And  did  you  ever  stop  to  think  what  you'd  do  if  you  didn't  get  a  job  when  your  money  ran 
out?  We’d  starve  to  death.  The  whole  thing's  so  fantastic,  it  isn’t  even—" 

"It  isn’t  fantastic.  I’d  get  a  job.  Don’t  worry  about  that.  You  don’t  have  to  worry 
about  that.  What's  the  matter?  Don’t  you  want  to  go  with  me?  Say  so,  if  you  don’t." 

"It  isn't  that.  It  isn’t  that  at  all,"  old  Sally  said.  I  was  beginning  to  hate  her,  in  a 
way.  "We’ll  have  oodles  of  time  to  do  those  things— all  those  things.  I  mean  after  you  go 
to  college  and  all,  and  if  we  should  get  married  and  all.  There’ll  be  oodles  of  marvelous 
places  to  go  to.  You're  just— " 

"No,  there  wouldn’t  be.  There  wouldn’t  be  oodles  of  places  to  go  to  at  all.  It’d  be 
entirely  different,"  I  said.  I  was  getting  depressed  as  hell  again. 

"What?"  she  said.  "I  can't  hear  you.  One  minute  you  scream  at  me,  and  the  next 

you—" 

"I  said  no,  there  wouldn’t  be  marvelous  places  to  go  to  after  I  went  to  college  and 
all.  Open  your  ears.  It’d  be  entirely  different.  We’d  have  to  go  downstairs  in  elevators 
with  suitcases  and  stuff.  We’d  have  to  phone  up  everybody  and  tell  ’em  good-by  and  send 
’em  postcards  from  hotels  and  all.  And  I’d  be  working  in  some  office,  making  a  lot  of 
dough,  and  riding  to  work  in  cabs  and  Madison  Avenue  buses,  and  reading  newspapers, 


and  playing  bridge  all  the  time,  and  going  to  the  movies  and  seeing  a  lot  of  stupid  shorts 
and  coming  attractions  and  newsreels.  Newsreels.  Christ  almighty.  There's  always  a 
dumb  horse  race,  and  some  dame  breaking  a  bottle  over  a  ship,  and  some  chimpanzee 
riding  a  goddam  bicycle  with  pants  on.  It  wouldn't  be  the  same  at  all.  Y ou  don't  see  what 
I  mean  at  all." 

"Maybe  I  don’t!  Maybe  you  don't,  either,"  old  Sally  said.  We  both  hated  each 
other's  guts  by  that  time.  You  could  see  there  wasn't  any  sense  trying  to  have  an 
intelligent  conversation.  I  was  sorry  as  hell  I’d  started  it. 

"C'mon,  let's  get  outa  here,"  I  said.  "You  give  me  a  royal  pain  in  the  ass,  if  you 
want  to  know  the  truth." 

Boy,  did  she  hit  the  ceiling  when  I  said  that.  I  know  I  shouldn’t've  said  it,  and  I 
probably  wouldn’t've  ordinarily,  but  she  was  depressing  the  hell  out  of  me.  Usually  I 
never  say  crude  things  like  that  to  girls.  Boy,  did  she  hit  the  ceiling.  I  apologized  like  a 
madman,  but  she  wouldn't  accept  my  apology.  She  was  even  crying.  Which  scared  me  a 
little  bit,  because  I  was  a  little  afraid  she’d  go  home  and  tell  her  father  I  called  her  a  pain 
in  the  ass.  Her  father  was  one  of  those  big  silent  bastards,  and  he  wasn’t  too  crazy  about 
me  anyhow.  He  once  told  old  Sally  I  was  too  goddam  noisy. 

"No  kidding.  I'm  sorry,"  I  kept  telling  her. 

"You're  sorry.  You're  sorry.  That’s  very  funny,"  she  said.  She  was  still  sort  of 
crying,  and  all  of  a  sudden  I  did  feel  sort  of  sorry  I'd  said  it. 

"C’mon,  I'll  take  ya  home.  No  kidding." 

"I  can  go  home  by  myself,  thank  you.  If  you  think  I’d  let  you  take  me  home, 
you're  mad.  No  boy  ever  said  that  to  me  in  my  entire  life." 

The  whole  thing  was  sort  of  funny,  in  a  way,  if  you  thought  about  it,  and  all  of  a 
sudden  I  did  something  I  shouldn’t  have.  I  laughed.  And  I  have  one  of  these  very  loud, 
stupid  laughs.  I  mean  if  I  ever  sat  behind  myself  in  a  movie  or  something.  I’d  probably 
lean  over  and  tell  myself  to  please  shut  up.  It  made  old  Sally  madder  than  ever. 

I  stuck  around  for  a  while,  apologizing  and  trying  to  get  her  to  excuse  me,  but  she 
wouldn't.  She  kept  telling  me  to  go  away  and  leave  her  alone.  So  finally  I  did  it.  I  went 
inside  and  got  my  shoes  and  stuff,  and  left  without  her.  I  shouldn’t' ve,  but  I  was  pretty 
goddam  fed  up  by  that  time. 

If  you  want  to  know  the  truth,  I  don’t  even  know  why  I  started  all  that  stuff  with 
her.  I  mean  about  going  away  somewhere,  to  Massachusetts  and  Vennont  and  all.  I 
probably  wouldn’t've  taken  her  even  if  she’d  wanted  to  go  with  me.  She  wouldn’t  have 
been  anybody  to  go  with.  The  terrible  part,  though,  is  that  I  meant  it  when  I  asked  her. 
That's  the  terrible  part.  I  swear  to  God  I'm  a  madman. 


18 


When  I  left  the  skating  rink  I  felt  sort  of  hungry,  so  I  went  in  this  drugstore  and 
had  a  Swiss  cheese  sandwich  and  a  malted,  and  then  I  went  in  a  phone  booth.  I  thought 
maybe  I  might  give  old  Jane  another  buzz  and  see  if  she  was  home  yet.  I  mean  I  had  the 
whole  evening  free,  and  I  thought  I’d  give  her  a  buzz  and,  if  she  was  home  yet,  take  her 
dancing  or  something  somewhere.  I  never  danced  with  her  or  anything  the  whole  time  I 
knew  her.  I  saw  her  dancing  once,  though.  She  looked  like  a  very  good  dancer.  It  was  at 


this  Fourth  of  July  dance  at  the  club.  I  didn’t  know  her  too  well  then,  and  I  didn’t  think  I 
ought  to  cut  in  on  her  date.  She  was  dating  this  terrible  guy,  A1  Pike,  that  went  to  Choate. 
I  didn't  know  him  too  well,  but  he  was  always  hanging  around  the  swimming  pool.  He 
wore  those  white  Lastex  kind  of  swimming  trunks,  and  he  was  always  going  off  the  high 
dive.  He  did  the  same  lousy  old  half  gainer  all  day  long.  It  was  the  only  dive  he  could  do, 
but  he  thought  he  was  very  hot  stuff.  All  muscles  and  no  brains.  Anyway,  that's  who  Jane 
dated  that  night.  I  couldn't  understand  it.  I  swear  I  couldn’t.  After  we  started  going  around 
together,  I  asked  her  how  come  she  could  date  a  showoff  bastard  like  A1  Pike.  Jane  said 
he  wasn't  a  show-off.  She  said  he  had  an  inferiority  complex.  She  acted  like  she  felt  sorry 
for  him  or  something,  and  she  wasn’t  just  putting  it  on.  She  meant  it.  It's  a  funny  thing 
about  girls.  Every  time  you  mention  some  guy  that's  strictly  a  bastard— very  mean,  or  very 
conceited  and  all— and  when  you  mention  it  to  the  girl,  she’ll  tell  you  he  has  an  inferiority 
complex.  Maybe  he  has,  but  that  still  doesn’t  keep  him  from  being  a  bastard,  in  my 
opinion.  Girls.  You  never  know  what  they're  going  to  think.  I  once  got  this  girl  Roberta 
Walsh's  roommate  a  date  with  a  friend  of  mine.  His  name  was  Bob  Robinson  and  he 
really  had  an  inferiority  complex.  You  could  tell  he  was  very  ashamed  of  his  parents  and 
all,  because  they  said  "he  don’t"  and  "she  don't"  and  stuff  like  that  and  they  weren't  very 
wealthy.  But  he  wasn’t  a  bastard  or  anything.  He  was  a  very  nice  guy.  But  this  Roberta 
Walsh's  roommate  didn't  like  him  at  all.  She  told  Roberta  he  was  too  conceited— and  the 
reason  she  thought  he  was  conceited  was  because  he  happened  to  mention  to  her  that  he 
was  captain  of  the  debating  team.  A  little  thing  like  that,  and  she  thought  he  was 
conceited!  The  trouble  with  girls  is,  if  they  like  a  boy,  no  matter  how  big  a  bastard  he  is, 
they'll  say  he  has  an  inferiority  complex,  and  if  they  don’t  like  him,  no  matter  how  nice  a 
guy  he  is,  or  how  big  an  inferiority  complex  he  has,  they'll  say  he's  conceited.  Even  smart 
girls  do  it. 

Anyway,  I  gave  old  Jane  a  buzz  again,  but  her  phone  didn’t  answer,  so  I  had  to 
hang  up.  Then  I  had  to  look  through  my  address  book  to  see  who  the  hell  might  be 
available  for  the  evening.  The  trouble  was,  though,  my  address  book  only  has  about  three 
people  in  it.  Jane,  and  this  man,  Mr.  Antolini,  that  was  my  teacher  at  Elkton  Hills,  and  my 
father's  office  number.  I  keep  forgetting  to  put  people's  names  in.  So  what  I  did  finally,  I 
gave  old  Carl  Luce  a  buzz.  He  graduated  from  the  Whooton  School  after  I  left.  He  was 
about  three  years  older  than  I  was,  and  I  didn’t  like  him  too  much,  but  he  was  one  of  these 
very  intellectual  guys—  he  had  the  highest  I.Q.  of  any  boy  at  Whooton— and  I  thought  he 
might  want  to  have  dinner  with  me  somewhere  and  have  a  slightly  intellectual 
conversation.  He  was  very  enlightening  sometimes.  So  I  gave  him  a  buzz.  He  went  to 
Columbia  now,  but  he  lived  on  65th  Street  and  all,  and  I  knew  he’d  be  home.  When  I  got 
him  on  the  phone,  he  said  he  couldn’t  make  it  for  dinner  but  that  he’d  meet  me  for  a  drink 
at  ten  o'clock  at  the  Wicker  Bar,  on  54th.  I  think  he  was  pretty  surprised  to  hear  from  me. 

I  once  called  him  a  fat-assed  phony. 

I  had  quite  a  bit  of  time  to  kill  till  ten  o'clock,  so  what  I  did,  I  went  to  the  movies 
at  Radio  City.  It  was  probably  the  worst  thing  I  could've  done,  but  it  was  near,  and  I 
couldn’t  think  of  anything  else. 

I  came  in  when  the  goddam  stage  show  was  on.  The  Rockettes  were  kicking  their 
heads  off,  the  way  they  do  when  they're  all  in  line  with  their  anns  around  each  other’s 
waist.  The  audience  applauded  like  mad,  and  some  guy  behind  me  kept  saying  to  his 
wife,  "You  know  what  that  is?  That’s  precision."  He  killed  me.  Then,  after  the  Rockettes, 


a  guy  came  out  in  a  tuxedo  and  roller  skates  on,  and  started  skating  under  a  bunch  of  little 
tables,  and  telling  jokes  while  he  did  it.  He  was  a  very  good  skater  and  all,  but  I  couldn’t 
enjoy  it  much  because  I  kept  picturing  him  practicing  to  be  a  guy  that  roller-skates  on  the 
stage.  It  seemed  so  stupid.  I  guess  I  just  wasn’t  in  the  right  mood.  Then,  after  him,  they 
had  this  Christmas  thing  they  have  at  Radio  City  every  year.  All  these  angels  start  coming 
out  of  the  boxes  and  everywhere,  guys  carrying  crucifixes  and  stuff  all  over  the  place, 
and  the  whole  bunch  of  them— thousands  of  them— singing  "Come  All  Ye  Faithful!"  like 
mad.  Big  deal.  It’s  supposed  to  be  religious  as  hell,  I  know,  and  very  pretty  and  all,  but  I 
can't  see  anything  religious  or  pretty,  for  God's  sake,  about  a  bunch  of  actors  carrying 
crucifixes  all  over  the  stage.  When  they  were  all  finished  and  started  going  out  the  boxes 
again,  you  could  tell  they  could  hardly  wait  to  get  a  cigarette  or  something.  I  saw  it  with 
old  Sally  Hayes  the  year  before,  and  she  kept  saying  how  beautiful  it  was,  the  costumes 
and  all.  I  said  old  Jesus  probably  would've  puked  if  He  could  see  it— all  those  fancy 
costumes  and  all.  Sally  said  I  was  a  sacrilegious  atheist.  I  probably  am.  The  thing  Jesus 
really  would've  liked  would  be  the  guy  that  plays  the  kettle  drums  in  the  orchestra.  I've 
watched  that  guy  since  I  was  about  eight  years  old.  My  brother  Allie  and  I,  if  we  were 
with  our  parents  and  all,  we  used  to  move  our  seats  and  go  way  down  so  we  could  watch 
him.  He's  the  best  drummer  I  ever  saw.  He  only  gets  a  chance  to  bang  them  a  couple  of 
times  during  a  whole  piece,  but  he  never  looks  bored  when  he  isn’t  doing  it.  Then  when 
he  does  bang  them,  he  does  it  so  nice  and  sweet,  with  this  nervous  expression  on  his  face. 
One  time  when  we  went  to  Washington  with  my  father,  Allie  sent  him  a  postcard,  but  I'll 
bet  he  never  got  it.  We  weren’t  too  sure  how  to  address  it. 

After  the  Christmas  thing  was  over,  the  goddam  picture  started.  It  was  so  putrid  I 
couldn’t  take  my  eyes  off  it.  It  was  about  this  English  guy,  Alec  something,  that  was  in 
the  war  and  loses  his  memory  in  the  hospital  and  all.  He  comes  out  of  the  hospital 
carrying  a  cane  and  limping  all  over  the  place,  all  over  London,  not  knowing  who  the  hell 
he  is.  He’s  really  a  duke,  but  he  doesn’t  know  it.  Then  he  meets  this  nice,  homey,  sincere 
girl  getting  on  a  bus.  Her  goddam  hat  blows  off  and  he  catches  it,  and  then  they  go 
upstairs  and  sit  down  and  start  talking  about  Charles  Dickens.  He's  both  their  favorite 
author  and  all.  He's  carrying  this  copy  of  Oliver  Twist  and  so's  she.  I  could've  puked. 
Anyway,  they  fell  in  love  right  away,  on  account  of  they're  both  so  nuts  about  Charles 
Dickens  and  all,  and  he  helps  her  run  her  publishing  business.  She's  a  publisher,  the  girl. 
Only,  she's  not  doing  so  hot,  because  her  brother's  a  drunkard  and  he  spends  all  their 
dough.  He's  a  very  bitter  guy,  the  brother,  because  he  was  a  doctor  in  the  war  and  now  he 
can’t  operate  any  more  because  his  nerves  are  shot,  so  he  boozes  all  the  time,  but  he's 
pretty  witty  and  all.  Anyway,  old  Alec  writes  a  book,  and  this  girl  publishes  it,  and  they 
both  make  a  hatful  of  dough  on  it.  They're  all  set  to  get  married  when  this  other  girl,  old 
Marcia,  shows  up.  Marcia  was  Alec's  fiancee  before  he  lost  his  memory,  and  she 
recognizes  him  when  he's  in  this  store  autographing  books.  She  tells  old  Alec  he's  really  a 
duke  and  all,  but  he  doesn’t  believe  her  and  doesn’t  want  to  go  with  her  to  visit  his  mother 
and  all.  His  mother's  blind  as  a  bat.  But  the  other  girl,  the  homey  one,  makes  him  go. 

She's  very  noble  and  all.  So  he  goes.  But  he  still  doesn't  get  his  memory  back,  even  when 
his  great  Dane  jumps  all  over  him  and  his  mother  sticks  her  fingers  all  over  his  face  and 
brings  him  this  teddy  bear  he  used  to  slobber  around  with  when  he  was  a  kid.  But  then, 
one  day,  some  kids  are  playing  cricket  on  the  lawn  and  he  gets  smacked  in  the  head  with 
a  cricket  ball.  Then  right  away  he  gets  his  goddam  memory  back  and  he  goes  in  and 


kisses  his  mother  on  the  forehead  and  all.  Then  he  starts  being  a  regular  duke  again,  and 
he  forgets  all  about  the  homey  babe  that  has  the  publishing  business.  I’d  tell  you  the  rest 
of  the  story,  but  I  might  puke  if  I  did.  It  isn’t  that  I’d  spoil  it  for  you  or  anything.  There 
isn't  anything  to  spoil  for  Chrissake.  Anyway,  it  ends  up  with  Alec  and  the  homey  babe 
getting  married,  and  the  brother  that's  a  drunkard  gets  his  nerves  back  and  operates  on 
Alec's  mother  so  she  can  see  again,  and  then  the  drunken  brother  and  old  Marcia  go  for 
each  other.  It  ends  up  with  everybody  at  this  long  dinner  table  laughing  their  asses  off 
because  the  great  Dane  comes  in  with  a  bunch  of  puppies.  Everybody  thought  it  was  a 
male,  I  suppose,  or  some  goddam  thing.  All  I  can  say  is,  don’t  see  it  if  you  don’t  want  to 
puke  all  over  yourself. 

The  part  that  got  me  was,  there  was  a  lady  sitting  next  to  me  that  cried  all  through 
the  goddam  picture.  The  phonier  it  got,  the  more  she  cried.  You'd  have  thought  she  did  it 
because  she  was  kindhearted  as  hell,  but  I  was  sitting  right  next  to  her,  and  she  wasn’t. 

She  had  this  little  kid  with  her  that  was  bored  as  hell  and  had  to  go  to  the  bathroom,  but 
she  wouldn’t  take  him.  She  kept  telling  him  to  sit  still  and  behave  himself.  She  was  about 
as  kindhearted  as  a  goddam  wolf.  You  take  somebody  that  cries  their  goddam  eyes  out 
over  phony  stuff  in  the  movies,  and  nine  times  out  of  ten  they're  mean  bastards  at  heart. 
I'm  not  kidding. 

After  the  movie  was  over,  I  started  walking  down  to  the  Wicker  Bar,  where  I  was 
supposed  to  meet  old  Carl  Luce,  and  while  I  walked  I  sort  of  thought  about  war  and  all. 
Those  war  movies  always  do  that  to  me.  I  don't  think  I  could  stand  it  if  I  had  to  go  to  war. 
I  really  couldn’t.  It  wouldn’t  be  too  bad  if  they’d  just  take  you  out  and  shoot  you  or 
something,  but  you  have  to  stay  in  the  Anny  so  goddam  long.  That's  the  whole  trouble. 
My  brother  D.B.  was  in  the  Army  for  four  goddam  years.  He  was  in  the  war,  too— he 
landed  on  D-Day  and  all— but  I  really  think  he  hated  the  Army  worse  than  the  war.  I  was 
practically  a  child  at  the  time,  but  I  remember  when  he  used  to  come  home  on  furlough 
and  all,  all  he  did  was  lie  on  his  bed,  practically.  He  hardly  ever  even  came  in  the  living 
room.  Later,  when  he  went  overseas  and  was  in  the  war  and  all,  he  didn't  get  wounded  or 
anything  and  he  didn’t  have  to  shoot  anybody.  All  he  had  to  do  was  drive  some  cowboy 
general  around  all  day  in  a  command  car.  He  once  told  Allie  and  I  that  if  he’d  had  to 
shoot  anybody,  he  wouldn’t' ve  known  which  direction  to  shoot  in.  He  said  the  Army  was 
practically  as  full  of  bastards  as  the  Nazis  were.  I  remember  Allie  once  asked  him  wasn't 
it  sort  of  good  that  he  was  in  the  war  because  he  was  a  writer  and  it  gave  him  a  lot  to 
write  about  and  all.  He  made  Allie  go  get  his  baseball  mitt  and  then  he  asked  him  who 
was  the  best  war  poet,  Rupert  Brooke  or  Emily  Dickinson.  Allie  said  Emily  Dickinson.  I 
don’t  know  too  much  about  it  myself,  because  I  don't  read  much  poetry,  but  I  do  know  it’d 
drive  me  crazy  if  I  had  to  be  in  the  Army  and  be  with  a  bunch  of  guys  like  Ackley  and 
Stradlater  and  old  Maurice  all  the  time,  marching  with  them  and  all.  I  was  in  the  Boy 
Scouts  once,  for  about  a  week,  and  I  couldn’t  even  stand  looking  at  the  back  of  the  guy's 
neck  in  front  of  me.  They  kept  telling  you  to  look  at  the  back  of  the  guy's  neck  in  front  of 
you.  I  swear  if  there’s  ever  another  war,  they  better  just  take  me  out  and  stick  me  in  front 
of  a  firing  squad.  I  wouldn't  object.  What  gets  me  about  D.B.,  though,  he  hated  the  war  so 
much,  and  yet  he  got  me  to  read  this  book  A  Farewell  to  Arms  last  summer.  He  said  it 
was  so  terrific.  That’s  what  I  can’t  understand.  It  had  this  guy  in  it  named  Lieutenant 
Henry  that  was  supposed  to  be  a  nice  guy  and  all.  I  don't  see  how  D.B.  could  hate  the 
Anny  and  war  and  all  so  much  and  still  like  a  phony  like  that.  I  mean,  for  instance,  I  don’t 


see  how  he  could  like  a  phony  book  like  that  and  still  like  that  one  by  Ring  Lardner,  or 
that  other  one  he's  so  crazy  about,  The  Great  Gatsby.  D.B.  got  sore  when  I  said  that,  and 
said  I  was  too  young  and  all  to  appreciate  it,  but  I  don't  think  so.  I  told  him  I  liked  Ring 
Lardner  and  The  Great  Gatsby  and  all.  I  did,  too.  I  was  crazy  about  The  Great  Gatsby. 
Old  Gatsby.  Old  sport.  That  killed  me.  Anyway,  I'm  sort  of  glad  they've  got  the  atomic 
bomb  invented.  If  there's  ever  another  war,  I'm  going  to  sit  right  the  hell  on  top  of  it.  I'll 
volunteer  for  it,  I  swear  to  God  I  will. 


19 


In  case  you  don’t  live  in  New  York,  the  Wicker  Bar  is  in  this  sort  of  swanky  hotel, 
the  Seton  Hotel.  I  used  to  go  there  quite  a  lot,  but  I  don’t  any  more.  I  gradually  cut  it  out. 
It's  one  of  those  places  that  are  supposed  to  be  very  sophisticated  and  all,  and  the  phonies 
are  coming  in  the  window.  They  used  to  have  these  two  French  babes,  Tina  and  Janine, 
come  out  and  play  the  piano  and  sing  about  three  times  every  night.  One  of  them  played 
the  piano— strictly  lousy— and  the  other  one  sang,  and  most  of  the  songs  were  either  pretty 
dirty  or  in  French.  The  one  that  sang,  old  Janine,  was  always  whispering  into  the  goddam 
microphone  before  she  sang.  She’d  say,  "And  now  we  like  to  geeve  you  our  impression  of 
Vooly  Voo  Fransay.  Eet  ees  the  story  of  a  leetle  Fransh  girl  who  comes  to  a  beeg  ceety, 
just  like  New  York,  and  falls  een  love  wees  a  leetle  boy  from  Brookleen.  We  hope  you 
like  eet."  Then,  when  she  was  all  done  whispering  and  being  cute  as  hell,  she’d  sing  some 
dopey  song,  half  in  English  and  half  in  French,  and  drive  all  the  phonies  in  the  place  mad 
with  joy.  If  you  sat  around  there  long  enough  and  heard  all  the  phonies  applauding  and 
all,  you  got  to  hate  everybody  in  the  world,  I  swear  you  did.  The  bartender  was  a  louse, 
too.  He  was  a  big  snob.  He  didn’t  talk  to  you  at  all  hardly  unless  you  were  a  big  shot  or  a 
celebrity  or  something.  If  you  were  a  big  shot  or  a  celebrity  or  something,  then  he  was 
even  more  nauseating.  He’d  go  up  to  you  and  say,  with  this  big  charming  smile,  like  he 
was  a  helluva  swell  guy  if  you  knew  him,  "Well!  How's  Connecticut?"  or  "How's 
Florida?"  It  was  a  terrible  place,  I'm  not  kidding.  I  cut  out  going  there  entirely,  gradually. 

It  was  pretty  early  when  I  got  there.  I  sat  down  at  the  bar— it  was  pretty  crowded— 
and  had  a  couple  of  Scotch  and  sodas  before  old  Luce  even  showed  up.  I  stood  up  when  I 
ordered  them  so  they  could  see  how  tall  I  was  and  all  and  not  think  I  was  a  goddam 
minor.  Then  I  watched  the  phonies  for  a  while.  Some  guy  next  to  me  was  snowing  hell 
out  of  the  babe  he  was  with.  He  kept  telling  her  she  had  aristocratic  hands.  That  killed 
me.  The  other  end  of  the  bar  was  full  of  flits.  They  weren’t  too  flitty-looking— I  mean  they 
didn’t  have  their  hair  too  long  or  anything— but  you  could  tell  they  were  flits  anyway. 
Finally  old  Luce  showed  up. 

Old  Luce.  What  a  guy.  He  was  supposed  to  be  my  Student  Adviser  when  I  was  at 
Whooton.  The  only  thing  he  ever  did,  though,  was  give  these  sex  talks  and  all,  late  at 
night  when  there  was  a  bunch  of  guys  in  his  room.  He  knew  quite  a  bit  about  sex, 
especially  perverts  and  all.  He  was  always  telling  us  about  a  lot  of  creepy  guys  that  go 
around  having  affairs  with  sheep,  and  guys  that  go  around  with  girls’  pants  sewed  in  the 
lining  of  their  hats  and  all.  And  flits  and  Lesbians.  Old  Luce  knew  who  every  flit  and 
Lesbian  in  the  United  States  was.  All  you  had  to  do  was  mention  somebody— anybody— 
and  old  Luce’d  tell  you  if  he  was  a  flit  or  not.  Sometimes  it  was  hard  to  believe,  the 


people  he  said  were  flits  and  Lesbians  and  all,  movie  actors  and  like  that.  Some  of  the 
ones  he  said  were  flits  were  even  married,  for  God’s  sake.  You'd  keep  saying  to  him, 

"You  mean  Joe  Blow's  a  flit?  Joe  Blow?  That  big,  tough  guy  that  plays  gangsters  and 
cowboys  all  the  time?"  Old  Luce'd  say,  "Certainly."  He  was  always  saying  "Certainly." 

He  said  it  didn’t  matter  if  a  guy  was  married  or  not.  He  said  half  the  married  guys  in  the 
world  were  flits  and  didn't  even  know  it.  He  said  you  could  turn  into  one  practically 
overnight,  if  you  had  all  the  traits  and  all.  He  used  to  scare  the  hell  out  of  us.  I  kept 
waiting  to  turn  into  a  flit  or  something.  The  funny  thing  about  old  Luce,  I  used  to  think  he 
was  sort  of  flitty  himself,  in  a  way.  He  was  always  saying,  "Try  this  for  size,"  and  then 
he’d  goose  the  hell  out  of  you  while  you  were  going  down  the  corridor.  And  whenever  he 
went  to  the  can,  he  always  left  the  goddam  door  open  and  talked  to  you  while  you  were 
brushing  your  teeth  or  something.  That  stuffs  sort  of  flitty.  It  really  is.  I've  known  quite  a 
few  real  flits,  at  schools  and  all,  and  they’re  always  doing  stuff  like  that,  and  that's  why  I 
always  had  my  doubts  about  old  Luce.  He  was  a  pretty  intelligent  guy,  though.  He  really 
was. 

He  never  said  hello  or  anything  when  he  met  you.  The  first  thing  he  said  when  he 
sat  down  was  that  he  could  only  stay  a  couple  of  minutes.  He  said  he  had  a  date.  Then  he 
ordered  a  dry  Martini.  He  told  the  bartender  to  make  it  very  dry,  and  no  olive. 

"Hey,  I  got  a  flit  for  you,"  I  told  him.  "At  the  end  of  the  bar.  Don't  look  now.  I 
been  saving  him  for  ya." 

"Very  funny,"  he  said.  "Same  old  Caulfield.  When  are  you  going  to  grow  up?" 

I  bored  him  a  lot.  I  really  did.  He  amused  me,  though.  He  was  one  of  those  guys 
that  sort  of  amuse  me  a  lot. 

"How's  your  sex  life?"  I  asked  him.  He  hated  you  to  ask  him  stuff  like  that. 

"Relax,"  he  said.  "Just  sit  back  and  relax,  for  Chrissake." 

"I’m  relaxed,"  I  said.  "How's  Columbia?  Ya  like  it?" 

"Certainly  I  like  it.  If  I  didn’t  like  it  I  wouldn't  have  gone  there,"  he  said.  He  could 
be  pretty  boring  himself  sometimes. 

"What're  you  majoring  in?"  I  asked  him.  "Perverts?"  I  was  only  horsing  around. 

"What’re  you  trying  to  be— funny?" 

"No.  I'm  only  kidding,"  I  said.  "Listen,  hey,  Luce.  You're  one  of  these  intellectual 
guys.  I  need  your  advice.  I'm  in  a  terrific—" 

He  let  out  this  big  groan  on  me.  "Listen,  Caulfield.  If  you  want  to  sit  here  and 
have  a  quiet,  peaceful  drink  and  a  quiet,  peaceful  conver— " 

"All  right,  all  right,"  I  said.  "Relax."  You  could  tell  he  didn't  feel  like  discussing 
anything  serious  with  me.  That’s  the  trouble  with  these  intellectual  guys.  They  never  want 
to  discuss  anything  serious  unless  they  feel  like  it.  So  all  I  did  was,  I  started  discussing 
topics  in  general  with  him.  "No  kidding,  how's  your  sex  life?"  I  asked  him.  "You  still 
going  around  with  that  same  babe  you  used  to  at  Whooton?  The  one  with  the  terrffic— " 

"Good  God,  no,"  he  said. 

"How  come?  What  happened  to  her?" 

"I  haven’t  the  faintest  idea.  For  all  I  know,  since  you  ask,  she's  probably  the 
Whore  of  New  Hampshire  by  this  time." 

"That  isn’t  nice.  If  she  was  decent  enough  to  let  you  get  sexy  with  her  all  the  time, 
you  at  least  shouldn’t  talk  about  her  that  way." 


"Oh,  God!"  old  Luce  said.  "Is  this  going  to  be  a  typical  Caulfield  conversation?  I 
want  to  know  right  now." 

"No,"  I  said,  "but  it  isn’t  nice  anyway.  If  she  was  decent  and  nice  enough  to  let 

you—" 

"Must  we  pursue  this  horrible  trend  of  thought?" 

I  didn’t  say  anything.  I  was  sort  of  afraid  he’d  get  up  and  leave  on  me  if  I  didn’t 
shut  up.  So  all  I  did  was,  I  ordered  another  drink.  I  felt  like  getting  stinking  drunk. 

"Who ’re  you  going  around  with  now?"  I  asked  him.  "You  feel  like  telling  me?" 

"Nobody  you  know." 

"Yeah,  but  who?  I  might  know  her." 

"Girl  lives  in  the  Village.  Sculptress.  If  you  must  know." 

"Yeah?  No  kidding?  How  old  is  she?" 

"I've  never  asked  her,  for  God's  sake." 

"Well,  around  how  old?" 

"I  should  imagine  she's  in  her  late  thirties,"  old  Luce  said. 

"In  her  late  thirties?  Yeah?  You  like  that?"  I  asked  him.  "You  like  'em  that  old?" 
The  reason  I  was  asking  was  because  he  really  knew  quite  a  bit  about  sex  and  all.  He  was 
one  of  the  few  guys  I  knew  that  did.  He  lost  his  virginity  when  he  was  only  fourteen,  in 
Nantucket.  He  really  did. 

"I  like  a  mature  person,  if  that's  what  you  mean.  Certainly." 

"You  do?  Why?  No  kidding,  they  better  for  sex  and  all?" 

"Listen.  Let's  get  one  thing  straight.  I  refuse  to  answer  any  typical  Caulfield 
questions  tonight.  When  in  hell  are  you  going  to  grow  up?" 

I  didn’t  say  anything  for  a  while.  I  let  it  drop  for  a  while.  Then  old  Luce  ordered 
another  Martini  and  told  the  bartender  to  make  it  a  lot  dryer. 

"Listen.  How  long  you  been  going  around  with  her,  this  sculpture  babe?"  I  asked 
him.  I  was  really  interested.  "Did  you  know  her  when  you  were  at  Whooton?" 

"Hardly.  She  just  arrived  in  this  country  a  few  months  ago." 

"She  did?  Where's  she  from?" 

"She  happens  to  be  from  Shanghai." 

"No  kidding!  She  Chinese,  for  Chrissake?" 

"Obviously." 

"No  kidding!  Do  you  like  that?  Her  being  Chinese?" 

"Obviously." 

"Why?  I’d  be  interested  to  know— I  really  would." 

"I  simply  happen  to  find  Eastern  philosophy  more  satisfactory  than  Western. 

Since  you  ask." 

"You  do?  Wuddaya  mean  'philosophy'?  Ya  mean  sex  and  all?  You  mean  it's  better 
in  China?  That  what  you  mean?" 

"Not  necessarily  in  China,  for  God's  sake.  The  East  I  said.  Must  we  go  on  with 
this  inane  conversation?" 

"Listen,  I'm  serious,"  I  said.  "No  kidding.  Why's  it  better  in  the  East?" 

"It's  too  involved  to  go  into,  for  God's  sake,"  old  Luce  said.  "They  simply  happen 
to  regard  sex  as  both  a  physical  and  a  spiritual  experience.  If  you  think  I'm—" 


"So  do  I!  So  do  I  regard  it  as  a  wuddayacallit— a  physical  and  spiritual  experience 
and  all.  I  really  do.  But  it  depends  on  who  the  hell  I'm  doing  it  with.  If  I'm  doing  it  with 
somebody  I  don't  even—" 

"Not  so  loud,  for  God's  sake,  Caulfield.  If  you  can't  manage  to  keep  your  voice 
down,  let's  drop  the  whole—" 

"All  right,  but  listen,"  I  said.  I  was  getting  excited  and  I  was  talking  a  little  too 
loud.  Sometimes  I  talk  a  little  loud  when  I  get  excited.  "This  is  what  I  mean,  though,"  I 
said.  "I  know  it's  supposed  to  be  physical  and  spiritual,  and  artistic  and  all.  But  what  I 
mean  is,  you  can’t  do  it  with  everybody— every  girl  you  neck  with  and  all— and  make  it 
come  out  that  way.  Can  you?" 

"Let's  drop  it,"  old  Luce  said.  "Do  you  mind?" 

"All  right,  but  listen.  Take  you  and  this  Chinese  babe.  What's  so  good  about  you 

two?" 

"Drop  it,  I  said." 

I  was  getting  a  little  too  personal.  I  realize  that.  But  that  was  one  of  the  annoying 
things  about  Luce.  When  we  were  at  Whooton,  he’d  make  you  describe  the  most  personal 
stuff  that  happened  to  you,  but  if  you  started  asking  him  questions  about  himself,  he  got 
sore.  These  intellectual  guys  don't  like  to  have  an  intellectual  conversation  with  you 
unless  they're  running  the  whole  thing.  They  always  want  you  to  shut  up  when  they  shut 
up,  and  go  back  to  your  room  when  they  go  back  to  their  room.  When  I  was  at  Whooton 
old  Luce  used  to  hate  it— you  really  could  tell  he  did— when  after  he  was  finished  giving 
his  sex  talk  to  a  bunch  of  us  in  his  room  we  stuck  around  and  chewed  the  fat  by  ourselves 
for  a  while.  I  mean  the  other  guys  and  myself.  In  somebody  else's  room.  Old  Luce  hated 
that.  He  always  wanted  everybody  to  go  back  to  their  own  room  and  shut  up  when  he  was 
finished  being  the  big  shot.  The  thing  he  was  afraid  of,  he  was  afraid  somebody’d  say 
something  smarter  than  he  had.  He  really  amused  me. 

"Maybe  I'll  go  to  China.  My  sex  life  is  lousy,"  I  said. 

"Naturally.  Your  mind  is  immature." 

"It  is.  It  really  is.  I  know  it,"  I  said.  "You  know  what  the  trouble  with  me  is?  I  can 
never  get  really  sexy— I  mean  really  sexy— with  a  girl  I  don't  like  a  lot.  I  mean  I  have  to 
like  her  a  lot.  If  I  don't,  I  sort  of  lose  my  goddam  desire  for  her  and  all.  Boy,  it  really 
screws  up  my  sex  life  something  awful.  My  sex  life  stinks." 

"Naturally  it  does,  for  God's  sake.  I  told  you  the  last  time  I  saw  you  what  you 

need." 

"You  mean  to  go  to  a  psychoanalyst  and  all?"  I  said.  That's  what  he’d  told  me  I 
ought  to  do.  His  father  was  a  psychoanalyst  and  all. 

"It's  up  to  you,  for  God's  sake.  It's  none  of  my  goddam  business  what  you  do  with 
your  life." 

I  didn’t  say  anything  for  a  while.  I  was  thinking. 

"Supposing  I  went  to  your  father  and  had  him  psychoanalyze  me  and  all,"  I  said. 
"What  would  he  do  to  me?  I  mean  what  would  he  do  to  me?" 

"He  wouldn’t  do  a  goddam  thing  to  you.  He’d  simply  talk  to  you,  and  you'd  talk  to 
him,  for  God's  sake.  For  one  thing,  he’d  help  you  to  recognize  the  patterns  of  your  mind." 

"The  what?" 


"The  patterns  of  your  mind.  Your  mind  runs  in—  Listen.  I'm  not  giving  an 
elementary  course  in  psychoanalysis.  If  you're  interested,  call  him  up  and  make  an 
appointment.  If  you're  not,  don’t.  I  couldn’t  care  less,  frankly." 

I  put  my  hand  on  his  shoulder.  Boy,  he  amused  me.  "You're  a  real  friendly 
bastard,"  I  told  him.  "You  know  that?" 

He  was  looking  at  his  wrist  watch.  "I  have  to  tear,"  he  said,  and  stood  up.  "Nice 
seeing  you."  He  got  the  bartender  and  told  him  to  bring  him  his  check. 

"Hey,"  I  said,  just  before  he  beat  it.  "Did  your  father  ever  psychoanalyze  you?" 

"Me?  Why  do  you  ask?" 

"No  reason.  Did  he,  though?  Has  he?" 

"Not  exactly.  He's  helped  me  to  adjust  myself  to  a  certain  extent,  but  an  extensive 
analysis  hasn’t  been  necessary.  Why  do  you  ask?" 

"No  reason.  I  was  just  wondering." 

"Well.  Take  it  easy,"  he  said.  He  was  leaving  his  tip  and  all  and  he  was  starting  to 
go- 

"Have  just  one  more  drink,"  I  told  him.  "Please.  I'm  lonesome  as  hell.  No 
kidding." 

He  said  he  couldn’t  do  it,  though.  He  said  he  was  late  now,  and  then  he  left. 

Old  Luce.  He  was  strictly  a  pain  in  the  ass,  but  he  certainly  had  a  good 
vocabulary.  He  had  the  largest  vocabulary  of  any  boy  at  Whooton  when  I  was  there.  They 
gave  us  a  test. 


20 


I  kept  sitting  there  getting  drunk  and  waiting  for  old  Tina  and  Janine  to  come  out 
and  do  their  stuff,  but  they  weren’t  there.  A  flitty-looking  guy  with  wavy  hair  came  out 
and  played  the  piano,  and  then  this  new  babe,  Valencia,  came  out  and  sang.  She  wasn’t 
any  good,  but  she  was  better  than  old  Tina  and  Janine,  and  at  least  she  sang  good  songs. 
The  piano  was  right  next  to  the  bar  where  I  was  sitting  and  all,  and  old  Valencia  was 
standing  practically  right  next  to  me.  I  sort  of  gave  her  the  old  eye,  but  she  pretended  she 
didn't  even  see  me.  I  probably  wouldn’t  have  done  it,  but  I  was  getting  drunk  as  hell. 
When  she  was  finished,  she  beat  it  out  of  the  room  so  fast  I  didn’t  even  get  a  chance  to 
invite  her  to  join  me  for  a  drink,  so  I  called  the  headwaiter  over.  I  told  him  to  ask  old 
Valencia  if  she’d  care  to  join  me  for  a  drink.  He  said  he  would,  but  he  probably  didn’t 
even  give  her  my  message.  People  never  give  your  message  to  anybody. 

Boy,  I  sat  at  that  goddam  bar  till  around  one  o'clock  or  so,  getting  drunk  as  a 
bastard.  I  could  hardly  see  straight.  The  one  thing  I  did,  though,  I  was  careful  as  hell  not 
to  get  boisterous  or  anything.  I  didn’t  want  anybody  to  notice  me  or  anything  or  ask  how 
old  I  was.  But,  boy,  I  could  hardly  see  straight.  When  I  was  really  drunk,  I  started  that 
stupid  business  with  the  bullet  in  my  guts  again.  I  was  the  only  guy  at  the  bar  with  a 
bullet  in  their  guts.  I  kept  putting  my  hand  under  my  jacket,  on  my  stomach  and  all,  to 
keep  the  blood  from  dripping  all  over  the  place.  I  didn’t  want  anybody  to  know  I  was 
even  wounded.  I  was  concealing  the  fact  that  I  was  a  wounded  sonuvabitch.  Finally  what 
I  felt  like,  I  felt  like  giving  old  Jane  a  buzz  and  see  if  she  was  home  yet.  So  I  paid  my 


check  and  all.  Then  I  left  the  bar  and  went  out  where  the  telephones  were.  I  kept  keeping 
my  hand  under  my  jacket  to  keep  the  blood  from  dripping.  Boy,  was  I  drunk. 

But  when  I  got  inside  this  phone  booth,  I  wasn’t  much  in  the  mood  any  more  to 
give  old  Jane  a  buzz.  I  was  too  drunk,  I  guess.  So  what  I  did,  I  gave  old  Sally  Hayes  a 
buzz. 

I  had  to  dial  about  twenty  numbers  before  I  got  the  right  one.  Boy,  was  I  blind. 

"Hello,"  I  said  when  somebody  answered  the  goddam  phone.  I  sort  of  yelled  it,  I 
was  so  drunk. 

"Who  is  this?"  this  very  cold  lady's  voice  said. 

"This  is  me.  Holden  Caulfield.  Lemine  speaka  Sally,  please." 

"Sally's  asleep.  This  is  Sally's  grandmother.  Why  are  you  calling  at  this  hour, 
Holden?  Do  you  know  what  time  it  is?" 

"Yeah.  Wanna  talka  Sally.  Very  important.  Put  her  on." 

"Sally's  asleep,  young  man.  Call  her  tomorrow.  Good  night." 

"Wake  'er  up!  Wake  'er  up,  hey.  Attaboy." 

Then  there  was  a  different  voice.  "Holden,  this  is  me."  It  was  old  Sally.  "What's 
the  big  idea?" 

"Sally?  That  you?" 

"Yes— stop  screaming.  Are  you  drunk?" 

"Yeah.  Listen.  Listen,  hey.  I'll  come  over  Christmas  Eve.  Okay?  Triinma  goddarn 
tree  for  ya.  Okay?  Okay,  hey,  Sally?" 

"Yes.  You're  drunk.  Go  to  bed  now.  Where  are  you?  Who's  with  you?" 

"Sally?  I'll  come  over  and  trimma  tree  for  ya,  okay?  Okay,  hey?" 

"Yes.  Go  to  bed  now.  Where  are  you?  Who's  with  you?" 

"Nobody.  Me,  myself  and  I."  Boy  was  I  drunk!  I  was  even  still  holding  onto  my 
guts.  "They  got  me.  Rocky's  mob  got  me.  You  know  that?  Sally,  you  know  that?" 

"I  can’t  hear  you.  Go  to  bed  now.  I  have  to  go.  Call  me  tomorrow." 

"Hey,  Sally!  You  want  me  trimma  tree  for  ya?  Ya  want  me  to?  Huh?" 

"Yes.  Good  night.  Go  home  and  go  to  bed." 

She  hung  up  on  me. 

"G’night.  G’night,  Sally  baby.  Sally  sweetheart  darling,"  I  said.  Can  you  imagine 
how  drunk  I  was?  I  hung  up  too,  then.  I  figured  she  probably  just  came  home  from  a  date. 
I  pictured  her  out  with  the  Lunts  and  all  somewhere,  and  that  Andover  jerk.  All  of  them 
swimming  around  in  a  goddam  pot  of  tea  and  saying  sophisticated  stuff  to  each  other  and 
being  channing  and  phony.  I  wished  to  God  I  hadn’t  even  phoned  her.  When  I'm  drunk, 
I'm  a  madman. 

I  stayed  in  the  damn  phone  booth  for  quite  a  while.  I  kept  holding  onto  the  phone, 
sort  of,  so  I  wouldn’t  pass  out.  I  wasn’t  feeling  too  marvelous,  to  tell  you  the  truth. 

Finally,  though,  I  came  out  and  went  in  the  men's  room,  staggering  around  like  a  moron, 
and  filled  one  of  the  washbowls  with  cold  water.  Then  I  dunked  my  head  in  it,  right  up  to 
the  ears.  I  didn’t  even  bother  to  dry  it  or  anything.  I  just  let  the  sonuvabitch  drip.  Then  I 
walked  over  to  this  radiator  by  the  window  and  sat  down  on  it.  It  was  nice  and  warm.  It 
felt  good  because  I  was  shivering  like  a  bastard.  It's  a  funny  thing,  I  always  shiver  like 
hell  when  I'm  drunk. 

I  didn’t  have  anything  else  to  do,  so  I  kept  sitting  on  the  radiator  and  counting 
these  little  white  squares  on  the  floor.  I  was  getting  soaked.  About  a  gallon  of  water  was 


dripping  down  my  neck,  getting  all  over  my  collar  and  tie  and  all,  but  I  didn’t  give  a 
damn.  I  was  too  drunk  to  give  a  damn.  Then,  pretty  soon,  the  guy  that  played  the  piano 
for  old  Valencia,  this  very  wavyhaired,  flitty-looking  guy,  came  in  to  comb  his  golden 
locks.  We  sort  of  struck  up  a  conversation  while  he  was  combing  it,  except  that  he  wasn't 
too  goddam  friendly. 

"Hey.  You  gonna  see  that  Valencia  babe  when  you  go  back  in  the  bar?"  I  asked 

him. 

"It's  highly  probable,"  he  said.  Witty  bastard.  All  I  ever  meet  is  witty  bastards. 

"Listen.  Give  her  my  compliments.  Ask  her  if  that  goddam  waiter  gave  her  my 
message,  willya?" 

"Why  don’t  you  go  home,  Mac?  How  old  are  you,  anyway?" 

"Eighty-six.  Listen.  Give  her  my  compliments.  Okay?" 

"Why  don't  you  go  home,  Mac?" 

"Not  me.  Boy,  you  can  play  that  goddam  piano."  I  told  him.  I  was  just  flattering 
him.  He  played  the  piano  stinking,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth.  "You  oughta  go  on  the 
radio,"  I  said.  "Handsome  chap  like  you.  All  those  goddam  golden  locks.  Ya  need  a 
manager?" 

"Go  home,  Mac,  like  a  good  guy.  Go  home  and  hit  the  sack." 

"No  home  to  go  to.  No  kidding— you  need  a  manager?" 

He  didn't  answer  me.  He  just  went  out.  He  was  all  through  combing  his  hair  and 
patting  it  and  all,  so  he  left.  Like  Stradlater.  All  these  handsome  guys  are  the  same.  When 
they're  done  combing  their  goddam  hair,  they  beat  it  on  you. 

When  I  finally  got  down  off  the  radiator  and  went  out  to  the  hat-check  room,  I 
was  crying  and  all.  I  don’t  know  why,  but  I  was.  I  guess  it  was  because  I  was  feeling  so 
damn  depressed  and  lonesome.  Then,  when  I  went  out  to  the  checkroom,  I  couldn’t  find 
my  goddam  check.  The  hat-check  girl  was  very  nice  about  it,  though.  She  gave  me  my 
coat  anyway.  And  my  "Little  Shirley  Beans"  record— I  still  had  it  with  me  and  all.  I  gave 
her  a  buck  for  being  so  nice,  but  she  wouldn't  take  it.  She  kept  telling  me  to  go  home  and 
go  to  bed.  I  sort  of  tried  to  make  a  date  with  her  for  when  she  got  through  working,  but 
she  wouldn’t  do  it.  She  said  she  was  old  enough  to  be  my  mother  and  all.  I  showed  her 
my  goddam  gray  hair  and  told  her  I  was  forty-two— I  was  only  horsing  around,  naturally. 
She  was  nice,  though.  I  showed  her  my  goddam  red  hunting  hat,  and  she  liked  it.  She 
made  me  put  it  on  before  I  went  out,  because  my  hair  was  still  pretty  wet.  She  was  all 
right. 

I  didn’t  feel  too  drunk  any  more  when  I  went  outside,  but  it  was  getting  very  cold 
out  again,  and  my  teeth  started  chattering  like  hell.  I  couldn’t  make  them  stop.  I  walked 
over  to  Madison  Avenue  and  started  to  wait  around  for  a  bus  because  I  didn’t  have  hardly 
any  money  left  and  I  had  to  start  economizing  on  cabs  and  all.  But  I  didn’t  feel  like 
getting  on  a  damn  bus.  And  besides,  I  didn't  even  know  where  I  was  supposed  to  go.  So 
what  I  did,  I  started  walking  over  to  the  park.  I  figured  I’d  go  by  that  little  lake  and  see 
what  the  hell  the  ducks  were  doing,  see  if  they  were  around  or  not,  I  still  didn’t  know  if 
they  were  around  or  not.  It  wasn't  far  over  to  the  park,  and  I  didn’t  have  anyplace  else 
special  to  go  to— I  didn’t  even  know  where  I  was  going  to  sleep  yet— so  I  went.  I  wasn’t 
tired  or  anything.  I  just  felt  blue  as  hell. 

Then  something  terrible  happened  just  as  I  got  in  the  park.  I  dropped  old  Phoebe's 
record.  It  broke-into  about  fifty  pieces.  It  was  in  a  big  envelope  and  all,  but  it  broke 


anyway.  I  damn  near  cried,  it  made  me  feel  so  terrible,  but  all  I  did  was,  I  took  the  pieces 
out  of  the  envelope  and  put  them  in  my  coat  pocket.  They  weren't  any  good  for  anything, 
but  I  didn’t  feel  like  just  throwing  them  away.  Then  I  went  in  the  park.  Boy,  was  it  dark. 

I've  lived  in  New  York  all  my  life,  and  I  know  Central  Park  like  the  back  of  my 
hand,  because  I  used  to  roller-skate  there  all  the  time  and  ride  my  bike  when  I  was  a  kid, 
but  I  had  the  most  terrific  trouble  finding  that  lagoon  that  night.  I  knew  right  where  it 
was— it  was  right  near  Central  Park  South  and  all— but  I  still  couldn’t  find  it.  I  must've 
been  drunker  than  I  thought.  I  kept  walking  and  walking,  and  it  kept  getting  darker  and 
darker  and  spookier  and  spookier.  I  didn’t  see  one  person  the  whole  time  I  was  in  the 
park.  I’m  just  as  glad.  I  probably  would’ve  jumped  about  a  mile  if  I  had.  Then,  finally,  I 
found  it.  What  it  was,  it  was  partly  frozen  and  partly  not  frozen.  But  I  didn't  see  any 
ducks  around.  I  walked  all  around  the  whole  damn  lake— I  damn  near  fell  in  once,  in  fact- 
-but  I  didn't  see  a  single  duck.  I  thought  maybe  if  there  were  any  around,  they  might  be 
asleep  or  something  near  the  edge  of  the  water,  near  the  grass  and  all.  That's  how  I  nearly 
fell  in.  But  I  couldn’t  find  any. 

Finally  I  sat  down  on  this  bench,  where  it  wasn’t  so  goddam  dark.  Boy,  I  was  still 
shivering  like  a  bastard,  and  the  back  of  my  hair,  even  though  I  had  my  hunting  hat  on, 
was  sort  of  full  of  little  hunks  of  ice.  That  worried  me.  I  thought  probably  I’d  get 
pneumonia  and  die.  I  started  picturing  millions  of  jerks  coming  to  my  funeral  and  all.  My 
grandfather  from  Detroit,  that  keeps  calling  out  the  numbers  of  the  streets  when  you  ride 
on  a  goddam  bus  with  him,  and  my  aunts— I  have  about  fifty  aunts— and  all  my  lousy 
cousins.  What  a  mob’d  be  there.  They  all  came  when  Allie  died,  the  whole  goddam  stupid 
bunch  of  them.  I  have  this  one  stupid  aunt  with  halitosis  that  kept  saying  how  peaceful  he 
looked  lying  there,  D.B.  told  me.  I  wasn’t  there.  I  was  still  in  the  hospital.  I  had  to  go  to 
the  hospital  and  all  after  I  hurt  my  hand.  Anyway,  I  kept  worrying  that  I  was  getting 
pneumonia,  with  all  those  hunks  of  ice  in  my  hair,  and  that  I  was  going  to  die.  I  felt  sorry 
as  hell  for  my  mother  and  father.  Especially  my  mother,  because  she  still  isn’t  over  my 
brother  Allie  yet.  I  kept  picturing  her  not  knowing  what  to  do  with  all  my  suits  and 
athletic  equipment  and  all.  The  only  good  thing,  I  knew  she  wouldn’t  let  old  Phoebe  come 
to  my  goddam  funeral  because  she  was  only  a  little  kid.  That  was  the  only  good  part. 

Then  I  thought  about  the  whole  bunch  of  them  sticking  me  in  a  goddam  cemetery  and  all, 
with  my  name  on  this  tombstone  and  all.  Surrounded  by  dead  guys.  Boy,  when  you're 
dead,  they  really  fix  you  up.  I  hope  to  hell  when  I  do  die  somebody  has  sense  enough  to 
just  dump  me  in  the  river  or  something.  Anything  except  sticking  me  in  a  goddam 
cemetery.  People  coming  and  putting  a  bunch  of  flowers  on  your  stomach  on  Sunday,  and 
all  that  crap.  Who  wants  flowers  when  you're  dead?  Nobody. 

When  the  weather's  nice,  my  parents  go  out  quite  frequently  and  stick  a  bunch  of 
flowers  on  old  Allie's  grave.  I  went  with  them  a  couple  of  times,  but  I  cut  it  out.  In  the 
first  place,  I  certainly  don’t  enjoy  seeing  him  in  that  crazy  cemetery.  Surrounded  by  dead 
guys  and  tombstones  and  all.  It  wasn’t  too  bad  when  the  sun  was  out,  but  twice— twice— 
we  were  there  when  it  started  to  rain.  It  was  awful.  It  rained  on  his  lousy  tombstone,  and 
it  rained  on  the  grass  on  his  stomach.  It  rained  all  over  the  place.  All  the  visitors  that  were 
visiting  the  cemetery  started  running  like  hell  over  to  their  cars.  That's  what  nearly  drove 
me  crazy.  All  the  visitors  could  get  in  their  cars  and  turn  on  their  radios  and  all  and  then 
go  someplace  nice  for  dinner— everybody  except  Allie.  I  couldn’t  stand  it.  I  know  it's  only 
his  body  and  all  that's  in  the  cemetery,  and  his  soul's  in  Heaven  and  all  that  crap,  but  I 


couldn’t  stand  it  anyway.  I  just  wish  he  wasn’t  there.  You  didn’t  know  him.  If  you’d 
known  him,  you'd  know  what  I  mean.  It's  not  too  bad  when  the  sun's  out,  but  the  sun  only 
comes  out  when  it  feels  like  coming  out. 

After  a  while,  just  to  get  my  mind  off  getting  pneumonia  and  all,  I  took  out  my 
dough  and  tried  to  count  it  in  the  lousy  light  from  the  street  lamp.  All  I  had  was  three 
singles  and  five  quarters  and  a  nickel  left— boy,  I  spent  a  fortune  since  I  left  Pencey.  Then 
what  I  did,  I  went  down  near  the  lagoon  and  I  sort  of  skipped  the  quarters  and  the  nickel 
across  it,  where  it  wasn't  frozen.  I  don't  know  why  I  did  it,  but  I  did  it.  I  guess  I  thought 
it'd  take  my  mind  off  getting  pneumonia  and  dying.  It  didn't,  though. 

I  started  thinking  how  old  Phoebe  would  feel  if  I  got  pneumonia  and  died.  It  was  a 
childish  way  to  think,  but  I  couldn’t  stop  myself.  She’d  feel  pretty  bad  if  something  like 
that  happened.  She  likes  me  a  lot.  I  mean  she's  quite  fond  of  me.  She  really  is.  Anyway,  I 
couldn’t  get  that  off  my  mind,  so  finally  what  I  figured  I’d  do,  I  figured  I’d  better  sneak 
home  and  see  her,  in  case  I  died  and  all.  I  had  my  door  key  with  me  and  all,  and  I  figured 
what  I’d  do,  I’d  sneak  in  the  apartment,  very  quiet  and  all,  and  just  sort  of  chew  the  fat 
with  her  for  a  while.  The  only  thing  that  worried  me  was  our  front  door.  It  creaks  like  a 
bastard.  It's  a  pretty  old  apartment  house,  and  the  superintendent's  a  lazy  bastard,  and 
everything  creaks  and  squeaks.  I  was  afraid  my  parents  might  hear  me  sneaking  in.  But  I 
decided  I’d  try  it  anyhow. 

So  I  got  the  hell  out  of  the  park,  and  went  home.  I  walked  all  the  way.  It  wasn’t 
too  far,  and  I  wasn't  tired  or  even  drunk  any  more.  It  was  just  very  cold  and  nobody 
around  anywhere. 


21 


The  best  break  I  had  in  years,  when  I  got  home  the  regular  night  elevator  boy, 
Pete,  wasn't  on  the  car.  Some  new  guy  I’d  never  seen  was  on  the  car,  so  I  figured  that  if  I 
didn't  bump  smack  into  my  parents  and  all  I’d  be  able  to  say  hello  to  old  Phoebe  and  then 
beat  it  and  nobody'd  even  know  I’d  been  around.  It  was  really  a  terrific  break.  What  made 
it  even  better,  the  new  elevator  boy  was  sort  of  on  the  stupid  side.  I  told  him,  in  this  very 
casual  voice,  to  take  me  up  to  the  Dicksteins’.  The  Dicksteins  were  these  people  that  had 
the  other  apartment  on  our  floor.  I’d  already  taken  off  my  hunting  hat,  so  as  not  to  look 
suspicious  or  anything.  I  went  in  the  elevator  like  I  was  in  a  terrific  hurry. 

He  had  the  elevator  doors  all  shut  and  all,  and  was  all  set  to  take  me  up,  and  then 
he  turned  around  and  said,  "They  ain't  in.  They're  at  a  party  on  the  fourteenth  floor." 

"That's  all  right,"  I  said.  "I’m  supposed  to  wait  for  them.  I'm  their  nephew." 

He  gave  me  this  sort  of  stupid,  suspicious  look.  " Y ou  better  wait  in  the  lobby, 
fella,"  he  said. 

"I’d  like  to— I  really  would,"  I  said.  "But  I  have  a  bad  leg.  I  have  to  hold  it  in  a 
certain  position.  I  think  I’d  better  sit  down  in  the  chair  outside  their  door." 

He  didn't  know  what  the  hell  I  was  talking  about,  so  all  he  said  was  "Oh"  and  took 
me  up.  Not  bad,  boy.  It's  funny.  All  you  have  to  do  is  say  something  nobody  understands 
and  they'll  do  practically  anything  you  want  them  to. 

I  got  off  at  our  floor— limping  like  a  bastard— and  started  walking  over  toward  the 
Dicksteins'  side.  Then,  when  I  heard  the  elevator  doors  shut,  I  turned  around  and  went 


over  to  our  side.  I  was  doing  all  right.  I  didn’t  even  feel  drunk  anymore.  Then  I  took  out 
my  door  key  and  opened  our  door,  quiet  as  hell.  Then,  very,  very  carefully  and  all,  I  went 
inside  and  closed  the  door.  I  really  should've  been  a  crook. 

It  was  dark  as  hell  in  the  foyer,  naturally,  and  naturally  I  couldn’t  turn  on  any 
lights.  I  had  to  be  careful  not  to  bump  into  anything  and  make  a  racket.  I  certainly  knew  I 
was  home,  though.  Our  foyer  has  a  funny  smell  that  doesn’t  smell  like  anyplace  else.  I 
don’t  know  what  the  hell  it  is.  It  isn’t  cauliflower  and  it  isn’t  perfume— I  don’t  know  what 
the  hell  it  is— but  you  always  know  you're  home.  I  started  to  take  off  my  coat  and  hang  it 
up  in  the  foyer  closet,  but  that  closet's  full  of  hangers  that  rattle  like  madmen  when  you 
open  the  door,  so  I  left  it  on.  Then  I  started  walking  very,  very  slowly  back  toward  old 
Phoebe’s  room.  I  knew  the  maid  wouldn’t  hear  me  because  she  had  only  one  eardrum.  She 
had  this  brother  that  stuck  a  straw  down  her  ear  when  she  was  a  kid,  she  once  told  me. 

She  was  pretty  deaf  and  all.  But  my  parents,  especially  my  mother,  she  has  ears  like  a 
goddam  bloodhound.  So  I  took  it  very,  very  easy  when  I  went  past  their  door.  I  even  held 
my  breath,  for  God's  sake.  You  can  hit  my  father  over  the  head  with  a  chair  and  he  won't 
wake  up,  but  my  mother,  all  you  have  to  do  to  my  mother  is  cough  somewhere  in  Siberia 
and  she'll  hear  you.  She's  nervous  as  hell.  Half  the  time  she's  up  all  night  smoking 
cigarettes. 

Finally,  after  about  an  hour,  I  got  to  old  Phoebe's  room.  She  wasn't  there,  though. 

I  forgot  about  that.  I  forgot  she  always  sleeps  in  D.B.'s  room  when  he's  away  in 
Hollywood  or  some  place.  She  likes  it  because  it's  the  biggest  room  in  the  house.  Also 
because  it  has  this  big  old  madman  desk  in  it  that  D.B.  bought  off  some  lady  alcoholic  in 
Philadelphia,  and  this  big,  gigantic  bed  that's  about  ten  miles  wide  and  ten  miles  long.  I 
don’t  know  where  he  bought  that  bed.  Anyway,  old  Phoebe  likes  to  sleep  in  D.B.'s  room 
when  he's  away,  and  he  lets  her.  You  ought  to  see  her  doing  her  homework  or  something 
at  that  crazy  desk.  It’s  almost  as  big  as  the  bed.  You  can  hardly  see  her  when  she's  doing 
her  homework.  That's  the  kind  of  stuff  she  likes,  though.  She  doesn’t  like  her  own  room 
because  it's  too  little,  she  says.  She  says  she  likes  to  spread  out.  That  kills  me.  What's  old 
Phoebe  got  to  spread  out?  Nothing. 

Anyway,  I  went  into  D.B.'s  room  quiet  as  hell,  and  turned  on  the  lamp  on  the 
desk.  Old  Phoebe  didn’t  even  wake  up.  When  the  light  was  on  and  all,  I  sort  of  looked  at 
her  for  a  while.  She  was  laying  there  asleep,  with  her  face  sort  of  on  the  side  of  the 
pillow.  She  had  her  mouth  way  open.  It's  funny.  You  take  adults,  they  look  lousy  when 
they're  asleep  and  they  have  their  mouths  way  open,  but  kids  don't.  Kids  look  all  right. 
They  can  even  have  spit  all  over  the  pillow  and  they  still  look  all  right. 

I  went  around  the  room,  very  quiet  and  all,  looking  at  stuff  for  a  while.  I  felt 
swell,  for  a  change.  I  didn’t  even  feel  like  I  was  getting  pneumonia  or  anything  any  more. 

I  just  felt  good,  for  a  change.  Old  Phoebe's  clothes  were  on  this  chair  right  next  to  the 
bed.  She's  very  neat,  for  a  child.  I  mean  she  doesn’t  just  throw  her  stuff  around,  like  some 
kids.  She's  no  slob.  She  had  the  jacket  to  this  tan  suit  my  mother  bought  her  in  Canada 
hung  up  on  the  back  of  the  chair.  Then  her  blouse  and  stuff  were  on  the  seat.  Her  shoes 
and  socks  were  on  the  floor,  right  underneath  the  chair,  right  next  to  each  other.  I  never 
saw  the  shoes  before.  They  were  new.  They  were  these  dark  brown  loafers,  sort  of  like 
this  pair  I  have,  and  they  went  swell  with  that  suit  my  mother  bought  her  in  Canada.  My 
mother  dresses  her  nice.  She  really  does.  My  mother  has  terrific  taste  in  some  things. 

She's  no  good  at  buying  ice  skates  or  anything  like  that,  but  clothes,  she's  perfect.  I  mean 


Phoebe  always  has  some  dress  on  that  can  kill  you.  You  take  most  little  kids,  even  if  their 
parents  are  wealthy  and  all,  they  usually  have  some  terrible  dress  on.  I  wish  you  could  see 
old  Phoebe  in  that  suit  my  mother  bought  her  in  Canada.  I'm  not  kidding. 

I  sat  down  on  old  D.B.'s  desk  and  looked  at  the  stuff  on  it.  It  was  mostly  Phoebe's 
stuff,  from  school  and  all.  Mostly  books.  The  one  on  top  was  called  Arithmetic  Is  Fun!  I 
sort  of  opened  the  first  page  and  took  a  look  at  it.  This  is  what  old  Phoebe  had  on  it: 

PHOEBE  WEATHERFIELD  CAULFIELD 
4B-1 

That  killed  me.  Her  middle  name  is  Josephine,  for  God's  sake,  not  Weatherfield. 
She  doesn’t  like  it,  though.  Every  time  I  see  her  she's  got  a  new  middle  name  for  herself. 

The  book  underneath  the  arithmetic  was  a  geography,  and  the  book  under  the 
geography  was  a  speller.  She's  very  good  in  spelling.  She's  very  good  in  all  her  subjects, 
but  she's  best  in  spelling.  Then,  under  the  speller,  there  were  a  bunch  of  notebooks.  She 
has  about  five  thousand  notebooks.  You  never  saw  a  kid  with  so  many  notebooks.  I 
opened  the  one  on  top  and  looked  at  the  first  page.  It  had  on  it: 

Bernice  meet  me  at  recess  I  have  something 
very  very  important  to  tell  you. 

That  was  all  there  was  on  that  page.  The  next  one  had  on  it: 

Why  has  south  eastern  Alaska  so  many  caning  factories? 

Because  theres  so  much  salmon 
Why  has  it  valuable  forests? 
because  it  has  the  right  climate. 

What  has  our  government  done  to  make 
life  easier  for  the  alaskan  eskimos? 
look  it  up  for  tomorrow! ! ! 

Phoebe  Weatherfield  Caulfield 
Phoebe  Weatherfield  Caulfield 
Phoebe  Weatherfield  Caulfield 
Phoebe  W.  Caulfield 
Phoebe  Weatherfield  Caulfield,  Esq. 

Please  pass  to  Shirley! ! ! ! 

Shirley  you  said  you  were  sagitarius 
but  your  only  taurus  bring  your  skates 
when  you  come  over  to  my  house 

I  sat  there  on  D.B.'s  desk  and  read  the  whole  notebook.  It  didn't  take  me  long,  and 
I  can  read  that  kind  of  stuff,  some  kid's  notebook,  Phoebe's  or  anybody's,  all  day  and  all 
night  long.  Kid’s  notebooks  kill  me.  Then  I  lit  another  cigarette— it  was  my  last  one.  I 
must've  smoked  about  three  cartons  that  day.  Then,  finally,  I  woke  her  up.  I  mean  I 
couldn’t  sit  there  on  that  desk  for  the  rest  of  my  life,  and  besides,  I  was  afraid  my  parents 


might  barge  in  on  me  all  of  a  sudden  and  I  wanted  to  at  least  say  hello  to  her  before  they 
did.  So  I  woke  her  up. 

She  wakes  up  very  easily.  I  mean  you  don’t  have  to  yell  at  her  or  anything.  All 
you  have  to  do,  practically,  is  sit  down  on  the  bed  and  say,  "Wake  up,  Phoeb,"  and  bingo, 
she's  awake. 

"Holden!"  she  said  right  away.  She  put  her  arms  around  my  neck  and  all.  She's 
very  affectionate.  I  mean  she's  quite  affectionate,  for  a  child.  Sometimes  she's  even  too 
affectionate.  I  sort  of  gave  her  a  kiss,  and  she  said,  "Whenja  get  home7’  She  was  glad  as 
hell  to  see  me.  You  could  tell. 

"Not  so  loud.  Just  now.  How  are  ya  anyway?" 

"I'm  fine.  Did  you  get  my  letter?  I  wrote  you  a  five-page—" 

"Yeah— not  so  loud.  Thanks." 

She  wrote  me  this  letter.  I  didn’t  get  a  chance  to  answer  it,  though.  It  was  all  about 
this  play  she  was  in  in  school.  She  told  me  not  to  make  any  dates  or  anything  for  Friday 
so  that  I  could  come  see  it. 

"How's  the  play?"  I  asked  her.  "What'd  you  say  the  name  of  it  was?" 

"’A  Christmas  Pageant  for  Americans.'  It  stinks,  but  I'm  Benedict  Arnold.  I  have 
practically  the  biggest  part,"  she  said.  Boy,  was  she  wide-awake.  She  gets  very  excited 
when  she  tells  you  that  stuff.  "It  starts  out  when  I'm  dying.  This  ghost  comes  in  on 
Christmas  Eve  and  asks  me  if  I'm  ashamed  and  everything.  You  know.  For  betraying  my 
country  and  everything.  Are  you  coming  to  it?"  She  was  sitting  way  the  hell  up  in  the  bed 
and  all.  "That's  what  I  wrote  you  about.  Are  you?" 

"Sure  I'm  coming.  Certainly  I'm  coming." 

"Daddy  can’t  come.  He  has  to  fly  to  California,"  she  said.  Boy,  was  she  wide¬ 
awake.  It  only  takes  her  about  two  seconds  to  get  wide-awake.  She  was  sitting— sort  of 
kneeling— way  up  in  bed,  and  she  was  holding  my  goddam  hand.  "Listen.  Mother  said 
you’d  be  home  Wednesday,"  she  said.  "She  said  Wednesday." 

"I  got  out  early.  Not  so  loud.  You'll  wake  everybody  up." 

"What  time  is  it?  They  won't  be  home  till  very  late,  Mother  said.  They  went  to  a 
party  in  Norwalk,  Connecticut,"  old  Phoebe  said.  "Guess  what  I  did  this  afternoon!  What 
movie  I  saw.  Guess!" 

"I  don’t  know— Listen.  Didn’t  they  say  what  time  they'd—" 

"The  Doctor,"  old  Phoebe  said.  "It's  a  special  movie  they  had  at  the  Lister 
Foundation.  Just  this  one  day  they  had  it— today  was  the  only  day.  It  was  all  about  this 
doctor  in  Kentucky  and  everything  that  sticks  a  blanket  over  this  child's  face  that's  a 
cripple  and  can’t  walk.  Then  they  send  him  to  jail  and  everything.  It  was  excellent." 

"Listen  a  second.  Didn’t  they  say  what  time  they'd—" 

"He  feels  sorry  for  it,  the  doctor.  That's  why  he  sticks  this  blanket  over  her  face 
and  everything  and  makes  her  suffocate.  Then  they  make  him  go  to  jail  for  life 
imprisonment,  but  this  child  that  he  stuck  the  blanket  over  its  head  comes  to  visit  him  all 
the  time  and  thanks  him  for  what  he  did.  He  was  a  mercy  killer.  Only,  he  knows  he 
deserves  to  go  to  jail  because  a  doctor  isn’t  supposed  to  take  things  away  from  God.  This 
girl  in  my  class's  mother  took  us.  Alice  Holmborg,  She's  my  best  friend.  She's  the  only 
girl  in  the  whole—" 

"Wait  a  second,  willya?"  I  said.  "I'm  asking  you  a  question.  Did  they  say  what 
time  they'd  be  back,  or  didn’t  they?" 


"No,  but  not  till  very  late.  Daddy  took  the  car  and  everything  so  they  wouldn't 
have  to  worry  about  trains.  We  have  a  radio  in  it  now!  Except  that  Mother  said  nobody 
can  play  it  when  the  car's  in  traffic." 

I  began  to  relax,  sort  of.  I  mean  I  finally  quit  worrying  about  whether  they'd  catch 
me  home  or  not.  I  figured  the  hell  with  it.  If  they  did,  they  did. 

You  should've  seen  old  Phoebe.  She  had  on  these  blue  pajamas  with  red  elephants 
on  the  collars.  Elephants  knock  her  out. 

"So  it  was  a  good  picture,  huh?"  I  said. 

"Swell,  except  Alice  had  a  cold,  and  her  mother  kept  asking  her  all  the  time  if  she 
felt  grippy.  Right  in  the  middle  of  the  picture.  Always  in  the  middle  of  something 
important,  her  mother’d  lean  all  over  me  and  everything  and  ask  Alice  if  she  felt  grippy. 

It  got  on  my  nerves." 

Then  I  told  her  about  the  record.  "Listen,  I  bought  you  a  record,"  I  told  her.  "Only 
I  broke  it  on  the  way  home."  I  took  the  pieces  out  of  my  coat  pocket  and  showed  her.  "I 
was  plastered,"  I  said. 

"Gimme  the  pieces,"  she  said.  "I'm  saving  them."  She  took  them  right  out  of  my 
hand  and  then  she  put  them  in  the  drawer  of  the  night  table.  She  kills  me. 

"D.B.  coming  home  for  Christmas?"  I  asked  her. 

"He  may  and  he  may  not,  Mother  said.  It  all  depends.  He  may  have  to  stay  in 
Hollywood  and  write  a  picture  about  Annapolis." 

"Annapolis,  for  God's  sake!" 

"It's  a  love  story  and  everything.  Guess  who's  going  to  be  in  it!  What  movie  star. 
Guess!" 

"I'm  not  interested.  Annapolis,  for  God's  sake.  What's  D.B.  know  about 
Annapolis,  for  God's  sake?  What's  that  got  to  do  with  the  kind  of  stories  he  writes?"  I 
said.  Boy,  that  stuff  drives  me  crazy.  That  goddam  Hollywood.  "What’ d  you  do  to  your 
arm?"  I  asked  her.  I  noticed  she  had  this  big  hunk  of  adhesive  tape  on  her  elbow.  The 
reason  I  noticed  it,  her  pajamas  didn’t  have  any  sleeves. 

"This  boy,  Curtis  Weintraub,  that's  in  my  class,  pushed  me  while  I  was  going 
down  the  stairs  in  the  park,"  she  said.  "Wanna  see?"  She  started  taking  the  crazy  adhesive 
tape  off  her  ann. 

"Leave  it  alone.  Why'd  he  push  you  down  the  stairs?" 

"I  don’t  know.  I  think  he  hates  me,"  old  Phoebe  said.  "This  other  girl  and  me, 
Selma  Atterbury,  put  ink  and  stuff  all  over  his  windbreaker." 

"That  isn’t  nice.  What  are  you— a  child,  for  God's  sake?" 

"No,  but  every  time  I'm  in  the  park,  he  follows  me  everywhere.  He's  always 
following  me.  He  gets  on  my  nerves." 

"He  probably  likes  you.  That's  no  reason  to  put  ink  all—" 

"I  don’t  want  him  to  like  me,"  she  said.  Then  she  started  looking  at  me  funny. 
"Holden,"  she  said,  "how  come  you're  not  home  Wednesday?" 

"What?" 

Boy,  you  have  to  watch  her  every  minute.  If  you  don't  think  she’s  smart,  you're 

mad. 

"How  come  you're  not  home  Wednesday?"  she  asked  me.  "You  didn’t  get  kicked 
out  or  anything,  did  you?" 

"I  told  you.  They  let  us  out  early.  They  let  the  whole—" 


"You  did  get  kicked  out!  You  did!"  old  Phoebe  said.  Then  she  hit  me  on  the  leg 
with  her  fist.  She  gets  very  fisty  when  she  feels  like  it.  "You  did!  Oh,  Holden!"  She  had 
her  hand  on  her  mouth  and  all.  She  gets  very  emotional,  I  swear  to  God. 

"Who  said  I  got  kicked  out?  Nobody  said  I—" 

"You  did.  You  did,"  she  said.  Then  she  smacked  me  again  with  her  fist.  If  you 
don't  think  that  hurts,  you're  crazy.  "Daddy'll  kill  you!"  she  said.  Then  she  flopped  on  her 
stomach  on  the  bed  and  put  the  goddam  pillow  over  her  head.  She  does  that  quite 
frequently.  She’s  a  true  madman  sometimes. 

"Cut  it  out,  now,"  I  said.  "Nobody's  gonna  kill  me.  Nobody's  gonna  even— C’mon, 
Phoeb,  take  that  goddam  thing  off  your  head.  Nobody's  gonna  kill  me." 

She  wouldn’t  take  it  off,  though.  You  can't  make  her  do  something  if  she  doesn’t 
want  to.  All  she  kept  saying  was,  "Daddy  s  gonna  kill  you."  You  could  hardly  understand 
her  with  that  goddam  pillow  over  her  head. 

"Nobody's  gonna  kill  me.  Use  your  head.  In  the  first  place,  I'm  going  away.  What 
I  may  do,  I  may  get  a  job  on  a  ranch  or  something  for  a  while.  I  know  this  guy  whose 
grandfather's  got  a  ranch  in  Colorado.  I  may  get  a  job  out  there,"  I  said.  "I'll  keep  in  touch 
with  you  and  all  when  I'm  gone,  if  I  go.  C’mon.  Take  that  off  your  head.  C’mon,  hey, 
Phoeb.  Please.  Please,  willya?’ 

She  wouldn  t  take  it  off,  though  I  tried  pulling  it  off,  but  she's  strong  as  hell.  You 
get  tired  fighting  with  her.  Boy,  if  she  wants  to  keep  a  pillow  over  her  head,  she  keeps  it. 
"Phoebe,  please.  C'mon  outa  there,"  I  kept  saying.  "C’mon,  hey  .  .  .  Hey,  Weatherfield. 
C’mon  out." 

She  wouldn’t  come  out,  though.  You  can't  even  reason  with  her  sometimes. 
Finally,  I  got  up  and  went  out  in  the  living  room  and  got  some  cigarettes  out  of  the  box 
on  the  table  and  stuck  some  in  my  pocket.  I  was  all  out. 


22 


When  I  came  back,  she  had  the  pillow  off  her  head  all  right— I  knew  she  would— 
but  she  still  wouldn’t  look  at  me,  even  though  she  was  laying  on  her  back  and  all.  When  I 
came  around  the  side  of  the  bed  and  sat  down  again,  she  turned  her  crazy  face  the  other 
way.  She  was  ostracizing  the  hell  out  of  me.  Just  like  the  fencing  team  at  Pencey  when  I 
left  all  the  goddam  foils  on  the  subway. 

"How's  old  Hazel  Weatherfield?"  I  said.  "You  write  any  new  stories  about  her?  I 
got  that  one  you  sent  me  right  in  my  suitcase.  It's  down  at  the  station.  It’s  very  good." 

"Daddy’ll  kill  you." 

Boy,  she  really  gets  something  on  her  mind  when  she  gets  something  on  her  mind. 

"No,  he  won't.  The  worst  he’ll  do,  he’ll  give  me  hell  again,  and  then  he’ll  send  me 
to  that  goddam  military  school.  That's  all  he’ll  do  to  me.  And  in  the  first  place,  I  won’t 
even  be  around.  I'll  be  away.  I'll  be— I’ll  probably  be  in  Colorado  on  this  ranch." 

"Don’t  make  me  laugh.  You  can't  even  ride  a  horse." 

"Who  can't?  Sure  I  can.  Certainly  I  can.  They  can  teach  you  in  about  two 
minutes,"  I  said.  "Stop  picking  at  that."  She  was  picking  at  that  adhesive  tape  on  her  arm. 
"Who  gave  you  that  haircut?"  I  asked  her.  I  just  noticed  what  a  stupid  haircut  somebody 
gave  her.  It  was  way  too  short. 


"None  of  your  business,"  she  said.  She  can  be  very  snotty  sometimes.  She  can  be 
quite  snotty.  "I  suppose  you  failed  in  every  single  subject  again,"  she  said— very  snotty.  It 
was  sort  of  funny,  too,  in  a  way.  She  sounds  like  a  goddam  schoolteacher  sometimes,  and 
she's  only  a  little  child. 

"No,  I  didn't,"  I  said.  "I  passed  English."  Then,  just  for  the  hell  of  it,  I  gave  her  a 
pinch  on  the  behind.  It  was  sticking  way  out  in  the  breeze,  the  way  she  was  laying  on  her 
side.  She  has  hardly  any  behind.  I  didn’t  do  it  hard,  but  she  tried  to  hit  my  hand  anyway, 
but  she  missed. 

Then  all  of  a  sudden,  she  said,  "Oh,  why  did  you  do  it?"  She  meant  why  did  I  get 
the  ax  again.  It  made  me  sort  of  sad,  the  way  she  said  it. 

"Oh,  God,  Phoebe,  don’t  ask  me.  I'm  sick  of  everybody  asking  me  that,"  I  said.  "A 
million  reasons  why.  It  was  one  of  the  worst  schools  I  ever  went  to.  It  was  full  of 
phonies.  And  mean  guys.  You  never  saw  so  many  mean  guys  in  your  life.  For  instance,  if 
you  were  having  a  bull  session  in  somebody's  room,  and  somebody  wanted  to  come  in, 
nobody'd  let  them  in  if  they  were  some  dopey,  pimply  guy.  Everybody  was  always 
locking  their  door  when  somebody  wanted  to  come  in.  And  they  had  this  goddam  secret 
fraternity  that  I  was  too  yellow  not  to  join.  There  was  this  one  pimply,  boring  guy,  Robert 
Ackley,  that  wanted  to  get  in.  He  kept  trying  to  join,  and  they  wouldn't  let  him.  Just 
because  he  was  boring  and  pimply.  I  don't  even  feel  like  talking  about  it.  It  was  a  stinking 
school.  Take  my  word." 

Old  Phoebe  didn’t  say  anything,  but  she  was  listen  ing.  I  could  tell  by  the  back  of 
her  neck  that  she  was  listening.  She  always  listens  when  you  tell  her  something.  And  the 
funny  part  is  she  knows,  half  the  time,  what  the  hell  you're  talking  about.  She  really  does. 

I  kept  talking  about  old  Pencey.  I  sort  of  felt  like  it. 

"Even  the  couple  of  nice  teachers  on  the  faculty,  they  were  phonies,  too,"  I  said. 
"There  was  this  one  old  guy,  Mr.  Spencer.  His  wife  was  always  giving  you  hot  chocolate 
and  all  that  stuff,  and  they  were  really  pretty  nice.  But  you  should've  seen  him  when  the 
headmaster,  old  Thurmer,  came  in  the  history  class  and  sat  down  in  the  back  of  the  room. 
He  was  always  coming  in  and  sitting  down  in  the  back  of  the  room  for  about  a  half  an 
hour.  He  was  supposed  to  be  incognito  or  something.  After  a  while,  he’d  be  sitting  back 
there  and  then  he’d  start  interrupting  what  old  Spencer  was  saying  to  crack  a  lot  of  corny 
jokes.  Old  Spencer’d  practically  kill  himself  chuckling  and  smiling  and  all,  like  as  if 
Thurmer  was  a  goddam  prince  or  something." 

"Don't  swear  so  much." 

"It  would've  made  you  puke,  I  swear  it  would,"  I  said.  "Then,  on  Veterans'  Day. 
They  have  this  day,  Veterans'  Day,  that  all  the  jerks  that  graduated  from  Pencey  around 
1776  come  back  and  walk  all  over  the  place,  with  their  wives  and  children  and 
everybody.  You  should've  seen  this  one  old  guy  that  was  about  fifty.  What  he  did  was,  he 
came  in  our  room  and  knocked  on  the  door  and  asked  us  if  we’d  mind  if  he  used  the 
bathroom.  The  bathroom  was  at  the  end  of  the  corridor— I  don't  know  why  the  hell  he 
asked  us.  You  know  what  he  said?  He  said  he  wanted  to  see  if  his  initials  were  still  in  one 
of  the  can  doors.  What  he  did,  he  carved  his  goddam  stupid  sad  old  initials  in  one  of  the 
can  doors  about  ninety  years  ago,  and  he  wanted  to  see  if  they  were  still  there.  So  my 
roommate  and  I  walked  him  down  to  the  bathroom  and  all,  and  we  had  to  stand  there 
while  he  looked  for  his  initials  in  all  the  can  doors.  He  kept  talking  to  us  the  whole  time, 
telling  us  how  when  he  was  at  Pencey  they  were  the  happiest  days  of  his  life,  and  giving 


us  a  lot  of  advice  for  the  future  and  all.  Boy,  did  he  depress  me!  I  don’t  mean  he  was  a 
bad  guy— he  wasn’t.  But  you  don’t  have  to  be  a  bad  guy  to  depress  somebody— you  can  be 
a  good  guy  and  do  it.  All  you  have  to  do  to  depress  somebody  is  give  them  a  lot  of  phony 
advice  while  you're  looking  for  your  initials  in  some  can  door— that's  all  you  have  to  do.  I 
don’t  know.  Maybe  it  wouldn’t  have  been  so  bad  if  he  hadn’t  been  all  out  of  breath.  He 
was  all  out  of  breath  from  just  climbing  up  the  stairs,  and  the  whole  time  he  was  looking 
for  his  initials  he  kept  breathing  hard,  with  his  nostrils  all  funny  and  sad,  while  he  kept 
telling  Stradlater  and  I  to  get  all  we  could  out  of  Pencey.  God,  Phoebe!  I  can't  explain.  I 
just  didn’t  like  anything  that  was  happening  at  Pencey.  I  can't  explain." 

Old  Phoebe  said  something  then,  but  I  couldn’t  hear  her.  She  had  the  side  of  her 
mouth  right  smack  on  the  pillow,  and  I  couldn’t  hear  her. 

"What?"  I  said.  "Take  your  mouth  away.  I  can’t  hear  you  with  your  mouth  that 

way." 

"You  don’t  like  anything  that's  happening." 

It  made  me  even  more  depressed  when  she  said  that. 

"Yes  I  do.  Yes  I  do.  Sure  I  do.  Don’t  say  that.  Why  the  hell  do  you  say  that?" 

"Because  you  don't.  You  don’t  like  any  schools.  You  don't  like  a  million  things. 
You  don’t." 

"I  do!  That's  where  you're  wrong— that's  exactly  where  you're  wrong!  Why  the 
hell  do  you  have  to  say  that?"  I  said.  Boy,  was  she  depressing  me. 

"Because  you  don't,"  she  said.  "Name  one  thing." 

"One  thing?  One  thing  I  like?"  I  said.  "Okay." 

The  trouble  was,  I  couldn’t  concentrate  too  hot.  Sometimes  it's  hard  to 
concentrate. 

"One  thing  I  like  a  lot  you  mean?"  I  asked  her. 

She  didn’t  answer  me,  though.  She  was  in  a  cockeyed  position  way  the  hell  over 
the  other  side  of  the  bed.  She  was  about  a  thousand  miles  away.  "C’mon  answer  me,"  I 
said.  "One  thing  I  like  a  lot,  or  one  thing  I  just  like?" 

"You  like  a  lot." 

"All  right,"  I  said.  But  the  trouble  was,  I  couldn’t  concentrate.  About  all  I  could 
think  of  were  those  two  nuns  that  went  around  collecting  dough  in  those  heatup  old  straw 
baskets.  Especially  the  one  with  the  glasses  with  those  iron  rims.  And  this  boy  I  knew  at 
Elkton  Hills.  There  was  this  one  boy  at  Elkton  Hills,  named  James  Castle,  that  wouldn’t 
take  back  something  he  said  about  this  very  conceited  boy,  Phil  Stabile.  James  Castle 
called  him  a  very  conceited  guy,  and  one  of  Stabile's  lousy  friends  went  and  squealed  on 
him  to  Stabile.  So  Stabile,  with  about  six  other  dirty  bastards,  went  down  to  James 
Castle's  room  and  went  in  and  locked  the  goddam  door  and  tried  to  make  him  take  back 
what  he  said,  but  he  wouldn't  do  it.  So  they  started  in  on  him.  I  won't  even  tell  you  what 
they  did  to  him— if  s  too  repulsive— but  he  still  wouldn't  take  it  back,  old  James  Castle. 
And  you  should’ve  seen  him.  He  was  a  skinny  little  weak-looking  guy,  with  wrists  about 
as  big  as  pencils.  Finally,  what  he  did,  instead  of  taking  back  what  he  said,  he  jumped  out 
the  window.  I  was  in  the  shower  and  all,  and  even  I  could  hear  him  land  outside.  But  I 
just  thought  something  fell  out  the  window,  a  radio  or  a  desk  or  something,  not  a  boy  or 
anything.  Then  I  heard  everybody  running  through  the  corridor  and  down  the  stairs,  so  I 
put  on  my  bathrobe  and  I  ran  downstairs  too,  and  there  was  old  James  Castle  laying  right 
on  the  stone  steps  and  all.  He  was  dead,  and  his  teeth,  and  blood,  were  all  over  the  place, 


and  nobody  would  even  go  near  him.  He  had  on  this  turtleneck  sweater  I’d  lent  him.  All 
they  did  with  the  guys  that  were  in  the  room  with  him  was  expel  them.  They  didn’t  even 
go  to  jail. 

That  was  about  all  I  could  think  of,  though.  Those  two  nuns  I  saw  at  breakfast  and 
this  boy  James  Castle  I  knew  at  Elkton  Hills.  The  funny  part  is,  I  hardly  even  know 
James  Castle,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth.  He  was  one  of  these  very  quiet  guys.  He  was 
in  my  math  class,  but  he  was  way  over  on  the  other  side  of  the  room,  and  he  hardly  ever 
got  up  to  recite  or  go  to  the  blackboard  or  anything.  Some  guys  in  school  hardly  ever  get 
up  to  recite  or  go  to  the  blackboard.  I  think  the  only  time  I  ever  even  had  a  conversation 
with  him  was  that  time  he  asked  me  if  he  could  borrow  this  turtleneck  sweater  I  had.  I 
damn  near  dropped  dead  when  he  asked  me,  I  was  so  surprised  and  all.  I  remember  I  was 
brushing  my  teeth,  in  the  can,  when  he  asked  me.  He  said  his  cousin  was  coming  in  to 
take  him  for  a  drive  and  all.  I  didn't  even  know  he  knew  I  had  a  turtleneck  sweater.  All  I 
knew  about  him  was  that  his  name  was  always  right  ahead  of  me  at  roll  call.  Cabel,  R., 
Cabel,  W.,  Castle,  Caulfield— I  can  still  remember  it.  If  you  want  to  know  the  truth,  I 
almost  didn’t  lend  him  my  sweater.  Just  because  I  didn’t  know  him  too  well. 

"What?"  I  said  to  old  Phoebe.  She  said  something  to  me,  but  I  didn’t  hear  her. 

"You  can't  even  think  of  one  thing." 

"Yes,  I  can.  Yes,  I  can." 

"Well,  do  it,  then." 

"I  like  Allie,"  I  said.  "And  I  like  doing  what  I'm  doing  right  now.  Sitting  here  with 
you,  and  talking,  and  thinking  about  stuff,  and—" 

"Allie's  dead— You  always  say  that!  If  somebody's  dead  and  everything,  and  in 
Heaven,  then  it  isn't  really—" 

"I  know  he’s  dead!  Don’t  you  think  I  know  that?  I  can  still  like  him,  though,  can't 
I?  Just  because  somebody's  dead,  you  don’t  just  stop  liking  them,  for  God's  sake— 
especially  if  they  were  about  a  thousand  times  nicer  than  the  people  you  know  that’re 
alive  and  all." 

Old  Phoebe  didn’t  say  anything.  When  she  can't  think  of  anything  to  say,  she 
doesn't  say  a  goddam  word. 

"Anyway,  I  like  it  now,"  I  said.  "I  mean  right  now.  Sitting  here  with  you  and  just 
chewing  the  fat  and  horsing—" 

"That  isn’t  anything  really!" 

"It  is  so  something  really!  Certainly  it  is!  Why  the  hell  isn't  it?  People  never  think 
anything  is  anything  really.  I'm  getting  goddam  sick  of  it," 

"Stop  swearing.  All  right,  name  something  else.  Name  something  you'd  like  to  be. 
Like  a  scientist.  Or  a  lawyer  or  something." 

"I  couldn’t  be  a  scientist.  I'm  no  good  in  science." 

"Well,  a  lawyer— like  Daddy  and  all." 

"Lawyers  are  all  right,  I  guess— but  it  doesn’t  appeal  to  me,"  I  said.  "I  mean  they're 
all  right  if  they  go  around  saving  innocent  guys'  lives  all  the  time,  and  like  that,  but  you 
don’t  do  that  kind  of  stuff  if  you're  a  lawyer.  All  you  do  is  make  a  lot  of  dough  and  play 
golf  and  play  bridge  and  buy  cars  and  drink  Martinis  and  look  like  a  hot-shot.  And 
besides.  Even  if  you  did  go  around  saving  guys'  lives  and  all,  how  would  you  know  if  you 
did  it  because  you  really  wanted  to  save  guys’  lives,  or  because  you  did  it  because  what 
you  really  wanted  to  do  was  be  a  terrific  lawyer,  with  everybody  slapping  you  on  the 


back  and  congratulating  you  in  court  when  the  goddam  trial  was  over,  the  reporters  and 
everybody,  the  way  it  is  in  the  dirty  movies?  How  would  you  know  you  weren’t  being  a 
phony?  The  trouble  is,  you  wouldn’t." 

I'm  not  too  sure  old  Phoebe  knew  what  the  hell  I  was  talking  about.  I  mean  she's 
only  a  little  child  and  all.  But  she  was  listening,  at  least.  If  somebody  at  least  listens,  it's 
not  too  bad. 

"Daddy's  going  to  kill  you.  He's  going  to  kill  you,"  she  said. 

I  wasn’t  listening,  though.  I  was  thinking  about  something  else— something  crazy. 
"You  know  what  I'd  like  to  be?"  I  said.  "You  know  what  I’d  like  to  be?  I  mean  if  I  had  my 
goddam  choice?" 

"What?  Stop  swearing." 

"You  know  that  song  'If  a  body  catch  a  body  cornin’  through  the  rye'?  I’d  like—" 

"It's  'If  a  body  meet  a  body  coming  through  the  rye'!"  old  Phoebe  said.  "It’s  a 
poem.  By  Robert  Burns." 

"I  know  it's  a  poem  by  Robert  Burns." 

She  was  right,  though.  It  is  "If  a  body  meet  a  body  coming  through  the  rye."  I 
didn't  know  it  then,  though. 

"I  thought  it  was  'If  a  body  catch  a  body,"'  I  said.  "Anyway,  I  keep  picturing  all 
these  little  kids  playing  some  game  in  this  big  field  of  rye  and  all.  Thousands  of  little 
kids,  and  nobody's  around— nobody  big,  I  mean— except  me.  And  I'm  standing  on  the  edge 
of  some  crazy  cliff.  What  I  have  to  do,  I  have  to  catch  everybody  if  they  start  to  go  over 
the  cliff— I  mean  if  they’re  running  and  they  don’t  look  where  they're  going  I  have  to  come 
out  from  somewhere  and  catch  them.  That’s  all  I’d  do  all  day.  I'd  just  be  the  catcher  in  the 
rye  and  all.  I  know  it's  crazy,  but  that's  the  only  thing  I’d  really  like  to  be.  I  know  it's 
crazy." 

Old  Phoebe  didn’t  say  anything  for  a  long  time.  Then,  when  she  said  something, 
all  she  said  was,  "Daddy's  going  to  kill  you." 

"I  don’t  give  a  damn  if  he  does,"  I  said.  I  got  up  from  the  bed  then,  because  what  I 
wanted  to  do,  I  wanted  to  phone  up  this  guy  that  was  my  English  teacher  at  Elkton  Hills, 
Mr.  Antolini.  He  lived  in  New  York  now.  He  quit  Elkton  Hills.  He  took  this  job  teaching 
English  at  N.Y.U.  "I  have  to  make  a  phone  call,"  I  told  Phoebe.  "I'll  be  right  back.  Don’t 
go  to  sleep."  I  didn’t  want  her  to  go  to  sleep  while  I  was  in  the  living  room.  I  knew  she 
wouldn’t  but  I  said  it  anyway,  just  to  make  sure. 

While  I  was  walking  toward  the  door,  old  Phoebe  said,  "Holden!"  and  I  turned 

around. 

She  was  sitting  way  up  in  bed.  She  looked  so  pretty.  "I'm  taking  belching  lessons 
from  this  girl,  Phyllis  Margulies,"  she  said.  "Listen." 

I  listened,  and  I  heard  something,  but  it  wasn’t  much.  "Good,"  I  said.  Then  I  went 
out  in  the  living  room  and  called  up  this  teacher  I  had,  Mr.  Antolini. 


23 


I  made  it  very  snappy  on  the  phone  because  I  was  afraid  my  parents  would  barge 
in  on  me  right  in  the  middle  of  it.  They  didn't,  though.  Mr.  Antolini  was  very  nice.  He 
said  I  could  come  right  over  if  I  wanted  to.  I  think  I  probably  woke  he  and  his  wife  up, 


because  it  took  them  a  helluva  long  time  to  answer  the  phone.  The  first  thing  he  asked  me 
was  if  anything  was  wrong,  and  I  said  no.  I  said  I’d  flunked  out  of  Pencey,  though.  I 
thought  I  might  as  well  tell  him.  He  said  "Good  God,"  when  I  said  that.  He  had  a  good 
sense  of  humor  and  all.  He  told  me  to  come  right  over  if  I  felt  like  it. 

He  was  about  the  best  teacher  I  ever  had,  Mr.  Antolini.  He  was  a  pretty  young 
guy,  not  much  older  than  my  brother  D.B.,  and  you  could  kid  around  with  him  without 
losing  your  respect  for  him.  He  was  the  one  that  finally  picked  up  that  boy  that  jumped 
out  the  window  I  told  you  about,  James  Castle.  Old  Mr.  Antolini  felt  his  pulse  and  all, 
and  then  he  took  off  his  coat  and  put  it  over  James  Castle  and  carried  him  all  the  way 
over  to  the  infirmary.  He  didn't  even  give  a  damn  if  his  coat  got  all  bloody. 

When  I  got  back  to  D.B.'s  room,  old  Phoebe’d  turned  the  radio  on.  This  dance 
music  was  coming  out.  She’d  turned  it  on  low,  though,  so  the  maid  wouldn’t  hear  it.  You 
should've  seen  her.  She  was  sitting  smack  in  the  middle  of  the  bed,  outside  the  covers, 
with  her  legs  folded  like  one  of  those  Yogi  guys.  She  was  listening  to  the  music.  She  kills 
me. 

"C’mon,"  I  said.  "You  feel  like  dancing?"  I  taught  her  how  to  dance  and  all  when 
she  was  a  tiny  little  kid.  She’s  a  very  good  dancer.  I  mean  I  just  taught  her  a  few  things. 
She  learned  it  mostly  by  herself.  You  can't  teach  somebody  how  to  really  dance. 

"You  have  shoes  on,"  she  said. 

"I'll  take  ’em  off.  C'mon." 

She  practically  jumped  off  the  bed,  and  then  she  waited  while  I  took  my  shoes  off, 
and  then  I  danced  with  her  for  a  while.  She's  really  damn  good.  I  don’t  like  people  that 
dance  with  little  kids,  because  most  of  the  time  it  looks  terrible.  I  mean  if  you're  out  at  a 
restaurant  somewhere  and  you  see  some  old  guy  take  his  little  kid  out  on  the  dance  floor. 
Usually  they  keep  yanking  the  kid’s  dress  up  in  the  back  by  mistake,  and  the  kid  can't 
dance  worth  a  damn  anyway,  and  it  looks  terrible,  but  I  don't  do  it  out  in  public  with 
Phoebe  or  anything.  We  just  horse  around  in  the  house.  It's  different  with  her  anyway, 
because  she  can  dance.  She  can  follow  anything  you  do.  I  mean  if  you  hold  her  in  close 
as  hell  so  that  it  doesn’t  matter  that  your  legs  are  so  much  longer.  She  stays  right  with 
you.  You  can  cross  over,  or  do  some  corny  dips,  or  even  jitterbug  a  little,  and  she  stays 
right  with  you.  You  can  even  tango,  for  God's  sake. 

We  danced  about  four  numbers.  In  between  numbers  she's  funny  as  hell.  She  stays 
right  in  position.  She  won’t  even  talk  or  anything.  You  both  have  to  stay  right  in  position 
and  wait  for  the  orchestra  to  start  playing  again.  That  kills  me.  You're  not  supposed  to 
laugh  or  anything,  either. 

Anyway,  we  danced  about  four  numbers,  and  then  I  turned  off  the  radio.  Old 
Phoebe  jumped  back  in  bed  and  got  under  the  covers.  "I'm  improving,  aren't  I?"  she 
asked  me. 

"And  how,"  I  said.  I  sat  down  next  to  her  on  the  bed  again.  I  was  sort  of  out  of 
breath.  I  was  smoking  so  damn  much,  I  had  hardly  any  wind.  She  wasn’t  even  out  of 
breath. 

"Feel  my  forehead,"  she  said  all  of  a  sudden. 

"Why?" 

"Feel  it.  Just  feel  it  once." 

I  felt  it.  I  didn’t  feel  anything,  though. 

"Does  it  feel  very  feverish?"  she  said. 


"No.  Is  it  supposed  to?" 

"Yes— I'm  making  it.  Feel  it  again." 

I  felt  it  again,  and  I  still  didn't  feel  anything,  but  I  said,  "I  think  it's  starting  to, 
now."  I  didn’t  want  her  to  get  a  goddam  inferiority  complex. 

She  nodded.  "I  can  make  it  go  up  to  over  the  thermoneter." 

"Thermometer.  Who  said  so?" 

"Alice  Holmborg  showed  me  how.  You  cross  your  legs  and  hold  your  breath  and 
think  of  something  very,  very  hot.  A  radiator  or  something.  Then  your  whole  forehead 
gets  so  hot  you  can  bum  somebody's  hand." 

That  killed  me.  I  pulled  my  hand  away  from  her  forehead,  like  I  was  in  terrific 
danger.  "Thanks  for  telling  me,"  I  said. 

"Oh,  I  wouldn't've  burned  your  hand.  I’d've  stopped  before  it  got  too— Shhh!" 

Then,  quick  as  hell,  she  sat  way  the  hell  up  in  bed. 

She  scared  hell  out  of  me  when  she  did  that.  "What's  the  matter?"  I  said. 

"The  front  door!"  she  said  in  this  loud  whisper.  "It's  them!" 

I  quick  jumped  up  and  ran  over  and  turned  off  the  light  over  the  desk.  Then  I 
jammed  out  my  cigarette  on  my  shoe  and  put  it  in  my  pocket.  Then  I  fanned  hell  out  of 
the  air,  to  get  the  smoke  out— I  shouldn’t  even  have  been  smoking,  for  God's  sake.  Then  I 
grabbed  my  shoes  and  got  in  the  closet  and  shut  the  door.  Boy,  my  heart  was  beating  like 
a  bastard. 

I  heard  my  mother  come  in  the  room. 

"Phoebe?"  she  said.  "Now,  stop  that.  I  saw  the  light,  young  lady." 

"Hello!"  I  heard  old  Phoebe  say.  "I  couldn’t  sleep.  Did  you  have  a  good  time?" 

"Marvelous,"  my  mother  said,  but  you  could  tell  she  didn’t  mean  it.  She  doesn’t 
enjoy  herself  much  when  she  goes  out.  "Why  are  you  awake,  may  I  ask?  Were  you  warm 
enough?" 

"I  was  warm  enough,  I  just  couldn’t  sleep." 

"Phoebe,  have  you  been  smoking  a  cigarette  in  here?  Tell  me  the  truth,  please, 
young  lady." 

"What?"  old  Phoebe  said. 

"You  heard  me." 

"I  just  lit  one  for  one  second.  I  just  took  one  puff.  Then  I  threw  it  out  the 
window." 

"Why,  may  I  ask?" 

"I  couldn’t  sleep." 

"I  don't  like  that,  Phoebe.  I  don't  like  that  at  all,"  my  mother  said.  "Do  you  want 
another  blanket?" 

"No,  thanks.  G’night!"  old  Phoebe  said.  She  was  trying  to  get  rid  of  her,  you  could 

tell. 

"How  was  the  movie?"  my  mother  said. 

"Excellent.  Except  Alice's  mother.  She  kept  leaning  over  and  asking  her  if  she  felt 
grippy  during  the  whole  entire  movie.  We  took  a  taxi  home." 

"Let  me  feel  your  forehead." 

"I  didn’t  catch  anything.  She  didn’t  have  anything.  It  was  just  her  mother." 

"Well.  Go  to  sleep  now.  How  was  your  dinner?" 

"Lousy,"  Phoebe  said. 


"You  heard  what  your  father  said  about  using  that  word.  What  was  lousy  about  it? 
You  had  a  lovely  lamb  chop.  I  walked  all  over  Lexington  Avenue  just  to—" 

"The  lamb  chop  was  all  right,  but  Charlene  always  breathes  on  me  whenever  she 
puts  something  down.  She  breathes  all  over  the  food  and  everything.  She  breathes  on 
everything." 

"Well.  Go  to  sleep.  Give  Mother  a  kiss.  Did  you  say  your  prayers?" 

"I  said  them  in  the  bathroom.  G’night!" 

"Good  night.  Go  right  to  sleep  now.  I  have  a  splitting  headache,"  my  mother  said. 
She  gets  headaches  quite  frequently.  She  really  does. 

"Take  a  few  aspirins,"  old  Phoebe  said.  "Holden’ll  be  home  on  Wednesday,  won’t 

he?" 

"So  far  as  I  know.  Get  under  there,  now.  Way  down." 

I  heard  my  mother  go  out  and  close  the  door.  I  waited  a  couple  of  minutes.  Then  I 
came  out  of  the  closet.  I  bumped  smack  into  old  Phoebe  when  I  did  it,  because  it  was  so 
dark  and  she  was  out  of  bed  and  coming  to  tell  me.  "I  hurt  you?"  I  said.  You  had  to 
whisper  now,  because  they  were  both  home.  "I  gotta  get  a  move  on,"  I  said.  I  found  the 
edge  of  the  bed  in  the  dark  and  sat  down  on  it  and  started  putting  on  my  shoes.  I  was 
pretty  nervous.  I  admit  it. 

"Don’t  go  now,"  Phoebe  whispered.  "Wait’ll  they're  asleep!" 

"No.  Now.  Now's  the  best  time,"  I  said.  "She’ll  be  in  the  bathroom  and  Daddy'll 
turn  on  the  news  or  something.  Now's  the  best  time."  I  could  hardly  tie  my  shoelaces,  I 
was  so  damn  nervous.  Not  that  they  would've  killed  me  or  anything  if  they'd  caught  me 
home,  but  it  would've  been  very  unpleasant  and  all.  "Where  the  hell  are  ya?"  I  said  to  old 
Phoebe.  It  was  so  dark  I  couldn't  see  her. 

"Here."  She  was  standing  right  next  to  me.  I  didn’t  even  see  her. 

"I  got  my  damn  bags  at  the  station,"  I  said.  "Listen.  You  got  any  dough,  Phoeb? 
I'm  practically  broke." 

"Just  my  Christmas  dough.  For  presents  and  all.  I  haven’t  done  any  shopping  at  all 

yet." 

"Oh."  I  didn’t  want  to  take  her  Christmas  dough. 

"You  want  some?"  she  said. 

"I  don’t  want  to  take  your  Christmas  dough." 

"I  can  lend  you  some,"  she  said.  Then  I  heard  her  over  at  D.B.’s  desk,  opening  a 
million  drawers  and  feeling  around  with  her  hand.  It  was  pitch-black,  it  was  so  dark  in  the 
room.  "If  you  go  away,  you  won’t  see  me  in  the  play,"  she  said.  Her  voice  sounded  funny 
when  she  said  it. 

"Yes,  I  will.  I  won’t  go  way  before  that.  You  think  I  wanna  miss  the  play?"  I  said. 
"What  I'll  do,  I’ll  probably  stay  at  Mr.  Antolini’s  house  till  maybe  Tuesday  night.  Then  I'll 
come  home.  If  I  get  a  chance,  I'll  phone  ya." 

"Here,"  old  Phoebe  said.  She  was  trying  to  give  me  the  dough,  but  she  couldn’t 
find  my  hand. 

"Where?" 

She  put  the  dough  in  my  hand. 

"Hey,  I  don’t  need  all  this,"  I  said.  "Just  give  me  two  bucks,  is  all.  No  kidding— 
Here."  I  tried  to  give  it  back  to  her,  but  she  wouldn’t  take  it. 

"You  can  take  it  all.  You  can  pay  me  back.  Bring  it  to  the  play." 


"How  much  is  it,  for  God’s  sake?" 

"Eight  dollars  and  eighty-five  cents.  Sixty-five  cents.  I  spent  some." 

Then,  all  of  a  sudden,  I  started  to  cry.  I  couldn’t  help  it.  I  did  it  so  nobody  could 
hear  me,  but  I  did  it.  It  scared  hell  out  of  old  Phoebe  when  I  started  doing  it,  and  she 
came  over  and  tried  to  make  me  stop,  but  once  you  get  started,  you  can’t  just  stop  on  a 
goddam  dime.  I  was  still  sitting  on  the  edge  of  the  bed  when  I  did  it,  and  she  put  her  old 
ann  around  my  neck,  and  I  put  my  arm  around  her,  too,  but  I  still  couldn’t  stop  for  a  long 
time.  I  thought  I  was  going  to  choke  to  death  or  something.  Boy,  I  scared  hell  out  of  poor 
old  Phoebe.  The  damn  window  was  open  and  everything,  and  I  could  feel  her  shivering 
and  all,  because  all  she  had  on  was  her  pajamas.  I  tried  to  make  her  get  back  in  bed,  but 
she  wouldn’t  go.  Finally  I  stopped.  But  it  certainly  took  me  a  long,  long  time.  Then  I 
finished  buttoning  my  coat  and  all.  I  told  her  I’d  keep  in  touch  with  her.  She  told  me  I 
could  sleep  with  her  if  I  wanted  to,  but  I  said  no,  that  I’d  better  beat  it,  that  Mr.  Antolini 
was  waiting  for  me  and  all.  Then  I  took  my  hunting  hat  out  of  my  coat  pocket  and  gave  it 
to  her.  She  likes  those  kind  of  crazy  hats.  She  didn’t  want  to  take  it,  but  I  made  her.  I'll  bet 
she  slept  with  it  on.  She  really  likes  those  kind  of  hats.  Then  I  told  her  again  I’d  give  her  a 
buzz  if  I  got  a  chance,  and  then  I  left. 

It  was  a  helluva  lot  easier  getting  out  of  the  house  than  it  was  getting  in,  for  some 
reason.  For  one  thing,  I  didn't  give  much  of  a  damn  any  more  if  they  caught  me.  I  really 
didn't.  I  figured  if  they  caught  me,  they  caught  me.  I  almost  wished  they  did,  in  a  way. 

I  walked  all  the  way  downstairs,  instead  of  taking  the  elevator.  I  went  down  the 
back  stairs.  I  nearly  broke  my  neck  on  about  ten  million  garbage  pails,  but  I  got  out  all 
right.  The  elevator  boy  didn’t  even  see  me.  He  probably  still  thinks  I'm  up  at  the 
Dicksteins'. 


24 


Mr.  and  Mrs.  Antolini  had  this  very  swanky  apartment  over  on  Sutton  Place,  with 
two  steps  that  you  go  down  to  get  in  the  living  room,  and  a  bar  and  all.  I’d  been  there 
quite  a  few  times,  because  after  I  left  Elkton  Hills  Mr.  Antoilni  came  up  to  our  house  for 
dinner  quite  frequently  to  find  out  how  I  was  getting  along.  He  wasn’t  married  then.  Then 
when  he  got  married,  I  used  to  play  tennis  with  he  and  Mrs.  Antolini  quite  frequently,  out 
at  the  West  Side  Tennis  Club,  in  Forest  Hills,  Long  Island.  Mrs.  Antolini,  belonged  there. 
She  was  lousy  with  dough.  She  was  about  sixty  years  older  than  Mr.  Antolini,  but  they 
seemed  to  get  along  quite  well.  For  one  thing,  they  were  both  very  intellectual,  especially 
Mr.  Antolini  except  that  he  was  more  witty  than  intellectual  when  you  were  with  him, 
sort  of  like  D.B.  Mrs.  Antolini  was  mostly  serious.  She  had  asthma  pretty  bad.  They  both 
read  all  D.B.'s  stories— Mrs.  Antolini,  too— and  when  D.B.  went  to  Hollywood,  Mr. 
Antolini  phoned  him  up  and  told  him  not  to  go.  He  went  anyway,  though.  Mr.  Antolini 
said  that  anybody  that  could  write  like  D.B.  had  no  business  going  out  to  Hollywood. 
That's  exactly  what  I  said,  practically. 

I  would  have  walked  down  to  their  house,  because  I  didn’t  want  to  spend  any  of 
Phoebe’s  Christmas  dough  that  I  didn’t  have  to,  but  I  felt  funny  when  I  got  outside.  Sort  of 
dizzy.  So  I  took  a  cab.  I  didn’t  want  to,  but  I  did.  I  had  a  helluva  time  even  finding  a  cab. 


Old  Mr.  Antolini  answered  the  door  when  I  rang  the  bell— after  the  elevator  boy 
finally  let  me  up,  the  bastard.  He  had  on  his  bathrobe  and  slippers,  and  he  had  a  highball 
in  one  hand.  He  was  a  pretty  sophisticated  guy,  and  he  was  a  pretty  heavy  drinker. 
"Holden,  m’boy!"  he  said.  "My  God,  he's  grown  another  twenty  inches.  Fine  to  see  you." 

"How  are  you,  Mr.  Antolini?  How's  Mrs.  Antolini?" 

"We’re  both  just  dandy.  Let's  have  that  coat."  He  took  my  coat  off  me  and  hung  it 
up.  "I  expected  to  see  a  day-old  infant  in  your  anns.  Nowhere  to  turn.  Snowflakes  in  your 
eyelashes."  He's  a  very  witty  guy  sometimes.  He  turned  around  and  yelled  out  to  the 
kitchen,  "Lillian!  How's  the  coffee  coming?"  Lillian  was  Mrs.  Antolini's  first  name. 

"It's  all  ready,"  she  yelled  back.  "Is  that  Holden?  Hello,  Holden!" 

"Hello,  Mrs.  Antolini!" 

You  were  always  yelling  when  you  were  there.  That's  because  the  both  of  them 
were  never  in  the  same  room  at  the  same  time.  It  was  sort  of  funny. 

"Sit  down,  Holden,"  Mr.  Antolini  said.  You  could  tell  he  was  a  little  oiled  up.  The 
room  looked  like  they’d  just  had  a  party.  Glasses  were  all  over  the  place,  and  dishes  with 
peanuts  in  them.  "Excuse  the  appearance  of  the  place,"  he  said.  "We've  been  entertaining 
some  Buffalo  friends  of  Mrs.  Antolini's  .  .  .  Some  buffaloes,  as  a  matter  of  fact." 

I  laughed,  and  Mrs.  Antolini  yelled  something  in  to  me  from  the  kitchen,  but  I 
couldn’t  hear  her.  "What’ d  she  say?"  I  asked  Mr.  Antolini. 

"She  said  not  to  look  at  her  when  she  comes  in.  She  just  arose  from  the  sack. 

Have  a  cigarette.  Are  you  smoking  now?" 

"Thanks,"  I  said.  I  took  a  cigarette  from  the  box  he  offered  me.  "Just  once  in  a 
while.  I'm  a  moderate  smoker." 

"I'll  bet  you  are,"  he  said.  He  gave  me  a  light  from  this  big  lighter  off  the  table. 
"So.  You  and  Pencey  are  no  longer  one,"  he  said.  He  always  said  things  that  way. 
Sometimes  it  amused  me  a  lot  and  sometimes  it  didn’t.  He  sort  of  did  it  a  little  bit  too 
much.  I  don’t  mean  he  wasn’t  witty  or  anything— he  was— but  sometimes  it  gets  on  your 
nerves  when  somebody's  always  saying  things  like  "So  you  and  Pencey  are  no  longer 
one."  D.B.  does  it  too  much  sometimes,  too. 

"What  was  the  trouble?"  Mr.  Antolini  asked  me.  "How'd  you  do  in  English?  I'll 
show  you  the  door  in  short  order  if  you  flunked  English,  you  little  ace  composition 
writer." 

"Oh,  I  passed  English  all  right.  It  was  mostly  literature,  though.  I  only  wrote  about 
two  compositions  the  whole  term,"  I  said.  "I  flunked  Oral  Expression,  though.  They  had 
this  course  you  had  to  take,  Oral  Expression.  That  I  flunked." 

"Why?" 

"Oh,  I  don’t  know."  I  didn’t  feel  much  like  going  into  It.  I  was  still  feeling  sort  of 
dizzy  or  something,  and  I  had  a  helluva  headache  all  of  a  sudden.  I  really  did.  But  you 
could  tell  he  was  interested,  so  I  told  him  a  little  bit  about  it.  "It's  this  course  where  each 
boy  in  class  has  to  get  up  in  class  and  make  a  speech.  You  know.  Spontaneous  and  all. 
And  if  the  boy  digresses  at  all,  you're  supposed  to  yell  'Digression!'  at  him  as  fast  as  you 
can.  It  just  about  drove  me  crazy.  I  got  an  F  in  it." 

"Why?" 

"Oh,  I  don’t  know.  That  digression  business  got  on  my  nerves.  I  don’t  know.  The 
trouble  with  me  is,  I  like  it  when  somebody  digresses.  It's  more  interesting  and  all." 


"You  don't  care  to  have  somebody  stick  to  the  point  when  he  tells  you 
something?" 

"Oh,  sure!  I  like  somebody  to  stick  to  the  point  and  all.  But  I  don’t  like  them  to 
stick  too  much  to  the  point.  I  don't  know.  I  guess  I  don’t  like  it  when  somebody  sticks  to 
the  point  all  the  time.  The  boys  that  got  the  best  marks  in  Oral  Expression  were  the  ones 
that  stuck  to  the  point  all  the  time— I  admit  it.  But  there  was  this  one  boy,  Richard 
Kinsella.  He  didn’t  stick  to  the  point  too  much,  and  they  were  always  yelling  'Digression!' 
at  him.  It  was  terrible,  because  in  the  first  place,  he  was  a  very  nervous  guy— I  mean  he 
was  a  very  nervous  guy— and  his  lips  were  always  shaking  whenever  it  was  his  time  to 
make  a  speech,  and  you  could  hardly  hear  him  if  you  were  sitting  way  in  the  back  of  the 
room.  When  his  lips  sort  of  quit  shaking  a  little  bit,  though,  I  liked  his  speeches  better 
than  anybody  else's.  He  practically  flunked  the  course,  though,  too.  He  got  a  D  plus 
because  they  kept  yelling  'Digression!'  at  him  all  the  time.  For  instance,  he  made  this 
speech  about  this  farm  his  father  bought  in  Vermont.  They  kept  yelling  'Digression!'  at 
him  the  whole  time  he  was  making  it,  and  this  teacher,  Mr.  Vinson,  gave  him  an  F  on  it 
because  he  hadn’t  told  what  kind  of  animals  and  vegetables  and  stuff  grew  on  the  fann 
and  all.  What  he  did  was,  Richard  Kinsella,  he’d  start  telling  you  all  about  that  stuff— then 
all  of  a  sudden  he’d  start  telling  you  about  this  letter  his  mother  got  from  his  uncle,  and 
how  his  uncle  got  polio  and  all  when  he  was  forty-two  years  old,  and  how  he  wouldn’t  let 
anybody  come  to  see  him  in  the  hospital  because  he  didn’t  want  anybody  to  see  him  with 
a  brace  on.  It  didn’t  have  much  to  do  with  the  fann— I  admit  it— but  it  was  nice.  It's  nice 
when  somebody  tells  you  about  their  uncle.  Especially  when  they  start  out  telling  you 
about  their  father's  farm  and  then  all  of  a  sudden  get  more  interested  in  their  uncle.  I 
mean  it's  dirty  to  keep  yelling  'Digression!'  at  him  when  he's  all  nice  and  excited.  I  don’t 
know.  It's  hard  to  explain."  I  didn’t  feel  too  much  like  trying,  either.  For  one  thing,  I  had 
this  terrific  headache  all  of  a  sudden.  I  wished  to  God  old  Mrs.  Antolini  would  come  in 
with  the  coffee.  That's  something  that  annoys  hell  out  of  me— I  mean  if  somebody  says 
the  coffee's  all  ready  and  it  isn’t. 

"Holden.  .  .  One  short,  faintly  stuffy,  pedagogical  question.  Don't  you  think  there's 
a  time  and  place  for  everything?  Don’t  you  think  if  someone  starts  out  to  tell  you  about 
his  father's  farm,  he  should  stick  to  his  guns,  then  get  around  to  telling  you  about  his 
uncle's  brace?  Or,  if  his  uncle’s  brace  is  such  a  provocative  subject,  shouldn’t  he  have 
selected  it  in  the  first  place  as  his  subject— not  the  farm?" 

I  didn’t  feel  much  like  thinking  and  answering  and  all.  I  had  a  headache  and  I  felt 
lousy.  I  even  had  sort  of  a  stomach-ache,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth. 

"Yes— I  don’t  know.  I  guess  he  should.  I  mean  I  guess  he  should've  picked  his 
uncle  as  a  subject,  instead  of  the  fann,  if  that  interested  him  most.  But  what  I  mean  is, 
lots  of  time  you  don’t  know  what  interests  you  most  till  you  start  talking  about  something 
that  doesn't  interest  you  most.  I  mean  you  can’t  help  it  sometimes.  What  I  think  is,  you're 
supposed  to  leave  somebody  alone  if  he's  at  least  being  interesting  and  he's  getting  all 
excited  about  something.  I  like  it  when  somebody  gets  excited  about  something.  It’s  nice. 
You  just  didn’t  know  this  teacher,  Mr.  Vinson.  He  could  drive  you  crazy  sometimes,  him 
and  the  goddam  class.  I  mean  he’d  keep  telling  you  to  unify  and  simplify  all  the  time. 
Some  things  you  just  can't  do  that  to.  I  mean  you  can't  hardly  ever  simplify  and  unify 
something  just  because  somebody  wants  you  to.  You  didn’t  know  this  guy,  Mr.  Vinson.  I 
mean  he  was  very  intelligent  and  all,  but  you  could  tell  he  didn’t  have  too  much  brains." 


"Coffee,  gentlemen,  finally,"  Mrs.  Antolini  said.  She  came  in  carrying  this  tray 
with  coffee  and  cakes  and  stuff  on  it.  "Holden,  don’t  you  even  peek  at  me.  I'm  a  mess." 

"Hello,  Mrs.  Antolini,"  I  said.  I  started  to  get  up  and  all,  but  Mr.  Antolini  got  hold 
of  my  jacket  and  pulled  me  back  down.  Old  Mrs.  Antolini's  hair  was  full  of  those  iron 
curler  jobs,  and  she  didn’t  have  any  lipstick  or  anything  on.  She  didn’t  look  too  gorgeous. 
She  looked  pretty  old  and  all. 

"I'll  leave  this  right  here.  Just  dive  in,  you  two,"  she  said.  She  put  the  tray  down 
on  the  cigarette  table,  pushing  all  these  glasses  out  of  the  way.  "How's  your  mother, 
Holden?" 

"She's  fine,  thanks.  I  haven't  seen  her  too  recently,  but  the  last  I—" 

"Darling,  if  Holden  needs  anything,  everything's  in  the  linen  closet.  The  top  shelf. 
I'm  going  to  bed.  I'm  exhausted,"  Mrs.  Antolini  said.  She  looked  it,  too.  "Can  you  boys 
make  up  the  couch  by  yourselves?" 

"We’ll  take  care  of  everything.  You  run  along  to  bed,"  Mr.  Antolini  said.  He  gave 
Mrs.  Antolini  a  kiss  and  she  said  good-by  to  me  and  went  in  the  bedroom.  They  were 
always  kissing  each  other  a  lot  in  public. 

I  had  part  of  a  cup  of  coffee  and  about  half  of  some  cake  that  was  as  hard  as  a 
rock.  All  old  Mr.  Antolini  had  was  another  highball,  though.  He  makes  them  strong,  too, 
you  could  tell.  He  may  get  to  be  an  alcoholic  if  he  doesn’t  watch  his  step. 

"I  had  lunch  with  your  dad  a  couple  of  weeks  ago,"  he  said  all  of  a  sudden.  "Did 
you  know  that?" 

"No,  I  didn't." 

"You're  aware,  of  course,  that  he's  terribly  concerned  about  you." 

"I  know  it.  I  know  he  is,"  I  said. 

"Apparently  before  he  phoned  me  he’d  just  had  a  long,  rather  harrowing  letter 
from  your  latest  headmaster,  to  the  effect  that  you  were  making  absolutely  no  effort  at  all. 
Cutting  classes.  Coming  unprepared  to  all  your  classes.  In  general,  being  an  all-around—" 

"I  didn’t  cut  any  classes.  You  weren’t  allowed  to  cut  any.  There  were  a  couple  of 
them  I  didn’t  attend  once  in  a  while,  like  that  Oral  Expression  I  told  you  about,  but  I 
didn't  cut  any." 

I  didn’t  feel  at  all  like  discussing  it.  The  coffee  made  my  stomach  feel  a  little 
better,  but  I  still  had  this  awful  headache. 

Mr.  Antolini  lit  another  cigarette.  He  smoked  like  a  fiend.  Then  he  said,  "Frankly, 
I  don’t  know  what  the  hell  to  say  to  you,  Holden." 

"I  know.  I'm  very  hard  to  talk  to.  I  realize  that." 

"I  have  a  feeling  that  you're  riding  for  some  kind  of  a  terrible,  terrible  fall.  But  I 
don’t  honestly  know  what  kind.  .  .  Are  you  listening  to  me?" 

"Yes." 

You  could  tell  he  was  trying  to  concentrate  and  all. 

"It  may  be  the  kind  where,  at  the  age  of  thirty,  you  sit  in  some  bar  hating 
everybody  who  comes  in  looking  as  if  he  might  have  played  football  in  college.  Then 
again,  you  may  pick  up  just  enough  education  to  hate  people  who  say,  'It's  a  secret 
between  he  and  I.’  Or  you  may  end  up  in  some  business  office,  throwing  paper  clips  at  the 
nearest  stenographer.  I  just  don’t  know.  But  do  you  know  what  I'm  driving  at,  at  all?" 

"Yes.  Sure,"  I  said.  I  did,  too.  "But  you're  wrong  about  that  hating  business.  I 
mean  about  hating  football  players  and  all.  You  really  are.  I  don't  hate  too  many  guys. 


What  I  may  do,  I  may  hate  them  for  a  little  while,  like  this  guy  Stradlater  I  knew  at 
Pencey,  and  this  other  boy,  Robert  Ackley.  I  hated  them  once  in  a  while— I  admit  it— but  it 
doesn't  last  too  long,  is  what  I  mean.  After  a  while,  if  I  didn’t  see  them,  if  they  didn’t 
come  in  the  room,  or  if  I  didn’t  see  them  in  the  dining  room  for  a  couple  of  meals,  I  sort 
of  missed  them.  I  mean  I  sort  of  missed  them." 

Mr.  Antolini  didn't  say  anything  for  a  while.  He  got  up  and  got  another  hunk  of 
ice  and  put  it  in  his  drink,  then  he  sat  down  again.  You  could  tell  he  was  thinking.  I  kept 
wishing,  though,  that  he’d  continue  the  conversation  in  the  morning,  instead  of  now,  but 
he  was  hot.  People  are  mostly  hot  to  have  a  discussion  when  you're  not. 

"All  right.  Listen  to  me  a  minute  now  ...  I  may  not  word  this  as  memorably  as  I’d 
like  to,  but  I'll  write  you  a  letter  about  it  in  a  day  or  two.  Then  you  can  get  it  all  straight. 
But  listen  now,  anyway."  He  started  concentrating  again.  Then  he  said,  "This  fall  I  think 
you're  riding  for— if  s  a  special  kind  of  fall,  a  horrible  kind.  The  man  falling  isn't  permitted 
to  feel  or  hear  himself  hit  bottom.  He  just  keeps  falling  and  falling.  The  whole 
arrangement's  designed  for  men  who,  at  some  time  or  other  in  their  lives,  were  looking 
for  something  their  own  environment  couldn’t  supply  them  with.  Or  they  thought  their 
own  environment  couldn’t  supply  them  with.  So  they  gave  up  looking.  They  gave  it  up 
before  they  ever  really  even  got  started.  You  follow  me?" 

"Yes,  sir." 

"Sure?" 

"Yes." 

He  got  up  and  poured  some  more  booze  in  his  glass.  Then  he  sat  down  again.  He 
didn't  say  anything  for  a  long  time. 

"I  don’t  want  to  scare  you,"  he  said,  "but  I  can  very  clearly  see  you  dying  nobly, 
one  way  or  another,  for  some  highly  unworthy  cause."  He  gave  me  a  funny  look.  "If  I 
write  something  down  for  you,  will  you  read  it  carefully?  And  keep  it?" 

"Yes.  Sure,"  I  said.  I  did,  too.  I  still  have  the  paper  he  gave  me. 

He  went  over  to  this  desk  on  the  other  side  of  the  room,  and  without  sitting  down 
wrote  something  on  a  piece  of  paper.  Then  he  came  back  and  sat  down  with  the  paper  in 
his  hand.  "Oddly  enough,  this  wasn’t  written  by  a  practicing  poet.  It  was  written  by  a 
psychoanalyst  named  Wilhelm  Stekel.  Here's  what  he— Are  you  still  with  me?" 

"Yes,  sure  I  am." 

"Here's  what  he  said:  'The  mark  of  the  immature  man  is  that  he  wants  to  die  nobly 
for  a  cause,  while  the  mark  of  the  mature  man  is  that  he  wants  to  live  humbly  for  one.'" 

He  leaned  over  and  handed  it  to  me.  I  read  it  right  when  he  gave  it  to  me,  and  then 
I  thanked  him  and  all  and  put  it  in  my  pocket.  It  was  nice  of  him  to  go  to  all  that  trouble. 

It  really  was.  The  thing  was,  though,  I  didn’t  feel  much  like  concentrating.  Boy,  I  felt  so 
damn  tired  all  of  a  sudden. 

You  could  tell  he  wasn’t  tired  at  all,  though.  He  was  pretty  oiled  up,  for  one  thing. 
"I  think  that  one  of  these  days,"  he  said,  "you're  going  to  have  to  find  out  where  you  want 
to  go.  And  then  you've  got  to  start  going  there.  But  immediately.  You  can’t  afford  to  lose 
a  minute.  Not  you." 

I  nodded,  because  he  was  looking  right  at  me  and  all,  but  I  wasn’t  too  sure  what  he 
was  talking  about.  I  was  pretty  sure  I  knew,  but  I  wasn't  too  positive  at  the  time.  I  was  too 
damn  tired. 


"And  I  hate  to  tell  you,"  he  said,  "but  I  think  that  once  you  have  a  fair  idea  where 
you  want  to  go,  your  first  move  will  be  to  apply  yourself  in  school.  You'll  have  to.  You're 
a  student— whether  the  idea  appeals  to  you  or  not.  You're  in  love  with  knowledge.  And  I 
think  you'll  find,  once  you  get  past  all  the  Mr.  Vineses  and  their  Oral  Comp—" 

"Mr.  Vinsons,"  I  said.  He  meant  all  the  Mr.  Vinsons,  not  all  the  Mr.  Vineses.  I 
shouldn’t  have  interrupted  him,  though. 

"All  right— the  Mr.  Vinsons.  Once  you  get  past  all  the  Mr.  Vinsons,  you're  going 
to  start  getting  closer  and  closer— that  is,  if  you  want  to,  and  if  you  look  for  it  and  wait  for 
it— to  the  kind  of  information  that  will  be  very,  very  dear  to  your  heart.  Among  other 
things,  you'll  find  that  you're  not  the  first  person  who  was  ever  confused  and  frightened 
and  even  sickened  by  human  behavior.  You're  by  no  means  alone  on  that  score,  you'll  be 
excited  and  stimulated  to  know.  Many,  many  men  have  been  just  as  troubled  morally  and 
spiritually  as  you  are  right  now.  Happily,  some  of  them  kept  records  of  their  troubles. 
You’ll  learn  from  them— if  you  want  to.  Just  as  someday,  if  you  have  something  to  offer, 
someone  will  learn  something  from  you.  It's  a  beautiful  reciprocal  arrangement.  And  it 
isn’t  education.  It's  history.  It's  poetry."  He  stopped  and  took  a  big  drink  out  of  his 
highball.  Then  he  started  again.  Boy,  he  was  really  hot.  I  was  glad  I  didn’t  try  to  stop  him 
or  anything.  "I'm  not  trying  to  tell  you,"  he  said,  "that  only  educated  and  scholarly  men 
are  able  to  contribute  something  valuable  to  the  world.  It's  not  so.  But  I  do  say  that 
educated  and  scholarly  men,  if  they're  brilliant  and  creative  to  begin  with— which, 
unfortunately,  is  rarely  the  case— tend  to  leave  infinitely  more  valuable  records  behind 
them  than  men  do  who  are  merely  brilliant  and  creative.  They  tend  to  express  themselves 
more  clearly,  and  they  usually  have  a  passion  for  following  their  thoughts  through  to  the 
end.  And— most  important— nine  times  out  of  ten  they  have  more  humility  than  the 
unscholarly  thinker.  Do  you  follow  me  at  all?" 

"Yes,  sir." 

He  didn't  say  anything  again  for  quite  a  while.  I  don’t  know  if  you've  ever  done  it, 
but  it's  sort  of  hard  to  sit  around  waiting  for  somebody  to  say  something  when  they're 
thinking  and  all.  It  really  is.  I  kept  trying  not  to  yawn.  It  wasn’t  that  I  was  bored  or 
anything— I  wasn’t— but  I  was  so  damn  sleepy  all  of  a  sudden. 

"Something  else  an  academic  education  will  do  for  you.  If  you  go  along  with  it 
any  considerable  distance,  it'll  begin  to  give  you  an  idea  what  size  mind  you  have.  What 
it’ll  fit  and,  maybe,  what  it  won’t.  After  a  while,  you'll  have  an  idea  what  kind  of  thoughts 
your  particular  size  mind  should  be  wearing.  For  one  thing,  it  may  save  you  an 
extraordinary  amount  of  time  trying  on  ideas  that  don’t  suit  you,  aren’t  becoming  to  you. 
You'll  begin  to  know  your  true  measurements  and  dress  your  mind  accordingly." 

Then,  all  of  a  sudden,  I  yawned.  What  a  rude  bastard,  but  I  couldn’t  help  it! 

Mr.  Antolini  just  laughed,  though.  "C’mon,"  he  said,  and  got  up.  "We’ll  fix  up  the 
couch  for  you." 

I  followed  him  and  he  went  over  to  this  closet  and  tried  to  take  down  some  sheets 
and  blankets  and  stuff  that  was  on  the  top  shelf,  but  he  couldn't  do  it  with  this  highball 
glass  in  his  hand.  So  he  drank  it  and  then  put  the  glass  down  on  the  floor  and  then  he  took 
the  stuff  down.  I  helped  him  bring  it  over  to  the  couch.  We  both  made  the  bed  together. 
He  wasn’t  too  hot  at  it.  He  didn’t  tuck  anything  in  very  tight.  I  didn't  care,  though.  I 
could've  slept  standing  up  I  was  so  tired. 

"How're  all  your  women?" 


"They're  okay."  I  was  being  a  lousy  conversationalist,  but  I  didn’t  feel  like  it. 

"How's  Sally?"  He  knew  old  Sally  Hayes.  I  introduced  him  once. 

"She's  all  right.  I  had  a  date  with  her  this  afternoon."  Boy,  it  seemed  like  twenty 
years  ago!  "We  don’t  have  too  much  in  common  any  more." 

"Helluva  pretty  girl.  What  about  that  other  girl?  The  one  you  told  me  about,  in 
Maine?" 

"Oh— Jane  Gallagher.  She's  all  right.  I'm  probably  gonna  give  her  a  buzz 
tomorrow." 

We  were  all  done  making  up  the  couch  then.  "It's  all  yours,"  Mr.  Antolini  said.  "I 
don’t  know  what  the  hell  you're  going  to  do  with  those  legs  of  yours." 

"That's  all  right.  I'm  used  to  short  beds,"  I  said.  "Thanks  a  lot,  sir.  You  and  Mrs. 
Antolini  really  saved  my  life  tonight." 

"You  know  where  the  bathroom  is.  If  there’s  anything  you  want,  just  holler.  I'll  be 
in  the  kitchen  for  a  while— will  the  light  bother  you?" 

"No— heck,  no.  Thanks  a  lot." 

"All  right.  Good  night,  handsome." 

"G’night,  sir.  Thanks  a  lot." 

He  went  out  in  the  kitchen  and  I  went  in  the  bathroom  and  got  undressed  and  all.  I 
couldn’t  brush  my  teeth  because  I  didn’t  have  any  toothbrush  with  me.  I  didn't  have  any 
pajamas  either  and  Mr.  Antolini  forgot  to  lend  me  some.  So  I  just  went  back  in  the  living 
room  and  turned  off  this  little  lamp  next  to  the  couch,  and  then  I  got  in  bed  with  just  my 
shorts  on.  It  was  way  too  short  for  me,  the  couch,  but  I  really  could've  slept  standing  up 
without  batting  an  eyelash.  I  laid  awake  for  just  a  couple  of  seconds  thinking  about  all 
that  stuff  Mr.  Antolini’d  told  me.  About  finding  out  the  size  of  your  mind  and  all.  He  was 
really  a  pretty  smart  guy.  But  I  couldn’t  keep  my  goddam  eyes  open,  and  I  fell  asleep. 

Then  something  happened.  I  don’t  even  like  to  talk  about  it. 

I  woke  up  all  of  a  sudden.  I  don’t  know  what  time  it  was  or  anything,  but  I  woke 
up.  I  felt  something  on  my  head,  some  guy's  hand.  Boy,  it  really  scared  hell  out  of  me. 
What  it  was,  it  was  Mr.  Antolini's  hand.  What  he  was  doing  was,  he  was  sitting  on  the 
floor  right  next  to  the  couch,  in  the  dark  and  all,  and  he  was  sort  of  petting  me  or  patting 
me  on  the  goddam  head.  Boy,  I'll  bet  I  jumped  about  a  thousand  feet. 

"What  the  hellya  doing?"  I  said. 

"Nothing!  I'm  simply  sitting  here,  admiring—" 

"What' re  ya  doing,  anyway?"  I  said  over  again.  I  didn’t  know  what  the  hell  to  say- 
-I  mean  I  was  embarrassed  as  hell. 

"How  'bout  keeping  your  voice  down?  I'm  simply  sitting  here—" 

"I  have  to  go,  anyway,"  I  said— boy,  was  I  nervous!  I  started  putting  on  my  damn 
pants  in  the  dark.  I  could  hardly  get  them  on  I  was  so  damn  nervous.  I  know  more  damn 
perverts,  at  schools  and  all,  than  anybody  you  ever  met,  and  they're  always  being  perverty 
when  I'm  around. 

"You  have  to  go  where?"  Mr.  Antolini  said.  He  was  trying  to  act  very  goddam 
casual  and  cool  and  all,  but  he  wasn’t  any  too  goddam  cool.  Take  my  word. 

"I  left  my  bags  and  all  at  the  station.  I  think  maybe  I'd  better  go  down  and  get 
them.  I  have  all  my  stuff  in  them." 

"They'll  be  there  in  the  morning.  Now,  go  back  to  bed.  I'm  going  to  bed  myself. 
What's  the  matter  with  you?" 


"Nothing's  the  matter,  it's  just  that  all  my  money  and  stuffs  in  one  of  my  bags.  I'll 
be  right  back.  I'll  get  a  cab  and  be  right  back,"  I  said.  Boy,  I  was  falling  all  over  myself  in 
the  dark.  "The  thing  is,  it  isn't  mine,  the  money.  It's  my  mother's,  and  I—" 

"Don't  be  ridiculous,  Holden.  Get  back  in  that  bed.  I'm  going  to  bed  myself.  The 
money  will  be  there  safe  and  sound  in  the  morn—" 

"No,  no  kidding.  I  gotta  get  going.  I  really  do."  I  was  damn  near  all  dressed 
already,  except  that  I  couldn't  find  my  tie.  I  couldn't  remember  where  I’d  put  my  tie.  I  put 
on  my  jacket  and  all  without  it.  Old  Mr.  Antolini  was  sitting  now  in  the  big  chair  a  little 
ways  away  from  me,  watching  me.  It  was  dark  and  all  and  I  couldn’t  see  him  so  hot,  but  I 
knew  he  was  watching  me,  all  right.  He  was  still  boozing,  too.  I  could  see  his  trusty 
highball  glass  in  his  hand. 

"You're  a  very,  very  strange  boy." 

"I  know  it,"  I  said.  I  didn’t  even  look  around  much  for  my  tie.  So  I  went  without  it. 
"Good-by,  sir,"  I  said,  "Thanks  a  lot.  No  kidding." 

He  kept  walking  right  behind  me  when  I  went  to  the  front  door,  and  when  I  rang 
the  elevator  bell  he  stayed  in  the  damn  doorway.  All  he  said  was  that  business  about  my 
being  a  "very,  very  strange  boy"  again.  Strange,  my  ass.  Then  he  waited  in  the  doorway 
and  all  till  the  goddam  elevator  came.  I  never  waited  so  long  for  an  elevator  in  my  whole 
goddam  life.  I  swear. 

I  didn’t  know  what  the  hell  to  talk  about  while  I  was  waiting  for  the  elevator,  and 
he  kept  standing  there,  so  I  said,  "I'm  gonna  start  reading  some  good  books.  I  really  am." 

I  mean  you  had  to  say  something.  It  was  very  embarrassing. 

"You  grab  your  bags  and  scoot  right  on  back  here  again.  I'll  leave  the  door 
unlatched." 

"Thanks  a  lot,"  I  said.  "G’by!"  The  elevator  was  finally  there.  I  got  in  and  went 
down.  Boy,  I  was  shaking  like  a  madman.  I  was  sweating,  too.  When  something  perverty 
like  that  happens,  I  start  sweating  like  a  bastard.  That  kind  of  stuffs  happened  to  me 
about  twenty  times  since  I  was  a  kid.  I  can’t  stand  it. 


25 


When  I  got  outside,  it  was  just  getting  light  out.  It  was  pretty  cold,  too,  but  it  felt 
good  because  I  was  sweating  so  much. 

I  didn’t  know  where  the  hell  to  go.  I  didn’t  want  to  go  to  another  hotel  and  spend 
all  Phoebe’s  dough.  So  finally  all  I  did  was  I  walked  over  to  Lexington  and  took  the 
subway  down  to  Grand  Central.  My  bags  were  there  and  all,  and  I  figured  I’d  sleep  in  that 
crazy  waiting  room  where  all  the  benches  are.  So  that's  what  I  did.  It  wasn't  too  bad  for  a 
while  because  there  weren’t  many  people  around  and  I  could  stick  my  feet  up.  But  I  don't 
feel  much  like  discussing  it.  It  wasn’t  too  nice.  Don’t  ever  try  it.  I  mean  it.  It'll  depress 
you. 

I  only  slept  till  around  nine  o'clock  because  a  million  people  started  coming  in  the 
waiting  room  and  I  had  to  take  my  feet  down.  I  can't  sleep  so  hot  if  I  have  to  keep  my  feet 
on  the  floor.  So  I  sat  up.  I  still  had  that  headache.  It  was  even  worse.  And  I  think  I  was 
more  depressed  than  I  ever  was  in  my  whole  life. 


I  didn’t  want  to,  but  I  started  thinking  about  old  Mr.  Antolini  and  I  wondered  what 
he’d  tell  Mrs.  Antolini  when  she  saw  I  hadn’t  slept  there  or  anything.  That  part  didn’t 
worry  me  too  much,  though,  because  I  knew  Mr.  Antolini  was  very  smart  and  that  he 
could  make  up  something  to  tell  her.  He  could  tell  her  I’d  gone  home  or  something.  That 
part  didn’t  worry  me  much.  But  what  did  worry  me  was  the  part  about  how  I'd  woke  up 
and  found  him  patting  me  on  the  head  and  all.  I  mean  I  wondered  if  just  maybe  I  was 
wrong  about  thinking  be  was  making  a  flitty  pass  at  ne.  I  wondered  if  maybe  he  just  liked 
to  pat  guys  on  the  head  when  they're  asleep.  I  mean  how  can  you  tell  about  that  stuff  for 
sure?  You  can’t.  I  even  started  wondering  if  maybe  I  should've  got  my  bags  and  gone 
back  to  his  house,  the  way  I’d  said  I  would.  I  mean  I  started  thinking  that  even  if  he  was  a 
flit  he  certainly'd  been  very  nice  to  me.  I  thought  how  he  hadn’t  minded  it  when  I'd  called 
him  up  so  late,  and  how  he’d  told  me  to  come  right  over  if  I  felt  like  it.  And  how  he  went 
to  all  that  trouble  giving  me  that  advice  about  finding  out  the  size  of  your  mind  and  all, 
and  how  he  was  the  only  guy  that' d  even  gone  near  that  boy  James  Castle  I  told  you  about 
when  he  was  dead.  I  thought  about  all  that  stuff.  And  the  more  I  thought  about  it,  the 
more  depressed  I  got.  I  mean  I  started  thinking  maybe  I  should've  gone  back  to  his  house. 
Maybe  he  was  only  patting  my  head  just  for  the  hell  of  it.  The  more  I  thought  about  it, 
though,  the  more  depressed  and  screwed  up  about  it  I  got.  What  made  it  even  worse,  my 
eyes  were  sore  as  hell.  They  felt  sore  and  bumy  from  not  getting  too  much  sleep.  Besides 
that,  I  was  getting  sort  of  a  cold,  and  I  didn’t  even  have  a  goddam  handkerchief  with  me.  I 
had  some  in  my  suitcase,  but  I  didn’t  feel  like  taking  it  out  of  that  strong  box  and  opening 
it  up  right  in  public  and  all. 

There  was  this  magazine  that  somebody’d  left  on  the  bench  next  to  me,  so  I 
started  reading  it,  thinking  it’d  make  me  stop  thinking  about  Mr.  Antolini  and  a  million 
other  things  for  at  least  a  little  while.  But  this  damn  article  I  started  reading  made  me  feel 
almost  worse.  It  was  all  about  honnones.  It  described  how  you  should  look,  your  face  and 
eyes  and  all,  if  your  hormones  were  in  good  shape,  and  I  didn’t  look  that  way  at  all.  I 
looked  exactly  like  the  guy  in  the  article  with  lousy  hormones.  So  I  started  getting 
worried  about  my  honnones.  Then  I  read  this  other  article  about  how  you  can  tell  if  you 
have  cancer  or  not.  It  said  if  you  had  any  sores  in  your  mouth  that  didn’t  heal  pretty 
quickly,  it  was  a  sign  that  you  probably  had  cancer.  I'd  had  this  sore  on  the  inside  of  my 
lip  for  about  two  weeks.  So  figured  I  was  getting  cancer.  That  magazine  was  some  little 
cheerer  upper.  I  finally  quit  reading  it  and  went  outside  for  a  walk.  I  figured  I’d  be  dead  in 
a  couple  of  months  because  I  had  cancer.  I  really  did.  I  was  even  positive  I  would  be.  It 
certainly  didn’t  make  me  feel  too  gorgeous.  If  sort  of  looked  like  it  was  going  to  rain,  but  I 
went  for  this  walk  anyway.  For  one  thing,  I  figured  I  ought  to  get  some  breakfast.  I  wasn’t 
at  all  hungry,  but  I  figured  I  ought  to  at  least  eat  something.  I  mean  at  least  get  something 
with  some  vitamins  in  it.  So  I  started  walking  way  over  east,  where  the  pretty  cheap 
restaurants  are,  because  I  didn’t  want  to  spend  a  lot  of  dough. 

While  I  was  walking,  I  passed  these  two  guys  that  were  unloading  this  big 
Christmas  tree  off  a  truck.  One  guy  kept  saying  to  the  other  guy,  "Hold  the  sonuvabitch 
up!  Hold  it  up,  for  Chrissake!"  It  certainly  was  a  gorgeous  way  to  talk  about  a  Christmas 
tree.  It  was  sort  of  funny,  though,  in  an  awful  way,  and  I  started  to  sort  of  laugh.  It  was 
about  the  worst  thing  I  could've  done,  because  the  minute  I  started  to  laugh  I  thought  I 
was  going  to  vomit.  I  really  did.  I  even  started  to,  but  it  went  away.  I  don't  know  why.  I 
mean  I  hadn't  eaten  anything  unsanitary  or  like  that  and  usually  I  have  quite  a  strong 


stomach.  Anyway,  I  got  over  it,  and  I  figured  I’d  feel  better  if  I  had  something  to  eat.  So  I 
went  in  this  very  cheap-looking  restaurant  and  had  doughnuts  and  coffee.  Only,  I  didn’t 
eat  the  doughnuts.  I  couldn’t  swallow  them  too  well.  The  thing  is,  if  you  get  very 
depressed  about  something,  it's  hard  as  hell  to  swallow.  The  waiter  was  very  nice, 
though.  He  took  them  back  without  charging  me.  I  just  drank  the  coffee.  Then  I  left  and 
started  walking  over  toward  Fifth  Avenue. 

It  was  Monday  and  all,  and  pretty  near  Christmas,  and  all  the  stores  were  open.  So 
it  wasn’t  too  bad  walking  on  Fifth  Avenue.  It  was  fairly  Christmasy.  All  those  scraggy- 
looking  Santa  Clauses  were  standing  on  corners  ringing  those  bells,  and  the  Salvation 
Anny  girls,  the  ones  that  don’t  wear  any  lipstick  or  anything,  were  tinging  bells  too.  I  sort 
of  kept  looking  around  for  those  two  nuns  I’d  met  at  breakfast  the  day  before,  but  I  didn’t 
see  them.  I  knew  I  wouldn’t,  because  they'd  told  me  they'd  come  to  New  York  to  be 
schoolteachers,  but  I  kept  looking  for  them  anyway.  Anyway,  it  was  pretty  Christmasy  all 
of  a  sudden.  A  million  little  kids  were  downtown  with  their  mothers,  getting  on  and  off 
buses  and  coming  in  and  out  of  stores.  I  wished  old  Phoebe  was  around.  She's  not  little 
enough  any  more  to  go  stark  staring  mad  in  the  toy  department,  but  she  enjoys  horsing 
around  and  looking  at  the  people.  The  Christmas  before  last  I  took  her  downtown 
shopping  with  me.  We  had  a  helluva  time.  I  think  it  was  in  Bloomingdale's.  We  went  in 
the  shoe  department  and  we  pretended  she— old  Phoebe—  wanted  to  get  a  pair  of  those 
very  high  storm  shoes,  the  kind  that  have  about  a  million  holes  to  lace  up.  We  had  the 
poor  salesman  guy  going  crazy.  Old  Phoebe  tried  on  about  twenty  pairs,  and  each  time 
the  poor  guy  had  to  lace  one  shoe  all  the  way  up.  It  was  a  dirty  trick,  but  it  killed  old 
Phoebe.  We  finally  bought  a  pair  of  moccasins  and  charged  them.  The  salesman  was  very 
nice  about  it.  I  think  he  knew  we  were  horsing  around,  because  old  Phoebe  always  starts 
giggling. 

Anyway,  I  kept  walking  and  walking  up  Fifth  Avenue,  without  any  tie  on  or 
anything.  Then  all  of  a  sudden,  something  very  spooky  started  happening.  Every  time  I 
came  to  the  end  of  a  block  and  stepped  off  the  goddam  curb,  I  had  this  feeling  that  I’d 
never  get  to  the  other  side  of  the  street.  I  thought  I’d  just  go  down,  down,  down,  and 
nobody’d  ever  see  me  again.  Boy,  did  it  scare  me.  You  can’t  imagine.  I  started  sweating 
like  a  bastard— my  whole  shirt  and  underwear  and  everything.  Then  I  started  doing 
something  else.  Every  time  I’d  get  to  the  end  of  a  block  I’d  make  believe  I  was  talking  to 
my  brother  Allie.  I’d  say  to  him,  "Allie,  don't  let  me  disappear.  Allie,  don't  let  me 
disappear.  Allie,  don’t  let  me  disappear.  Please,  Allie."  And  then  when  I’d  reach  the  other 
side  of  the  street  without  disappearing,  I’d  thank  him.  Then  it  would  start  all  over  again  as 
soon  as  I  got  to  the  next  comer.  But  I  kept  going  and  all.  I  was  sort  of  afraid  to  stop,  I 
think— I  don't  remember,  to  tell  you  the  truth.  I  know  I  didn’t  stop  till  I  was  way  up  in  the 
Sixties,  past  the  zoo  and  all.  Then  I  sat  down  on  this  bench.  I  could  hardly  get  my  breath, 
and  I  was  still  sweating  like  a  bastard.  I  sat  there,  I  guess,  for  about  an  hour.  Finally,  what 
I  decided  I’d  do,  I  decided  I’d  go  away.  I  decided  I’d  never  go  home  again  and  I’d  never 
go  away  to  another  school  again.  I  decided  I’d  just  see  old  Phoebe  and  sort  of  say  good- 
by  to  her  and  all,  and  give  her  back  her  Christmas  dough,  and  then  I’d  start  hitchhiking 
my  way  out  West.  What  I’d  do,  I  figured,  I’d  go  down  to  the  Holland  Tunnel  and  bum  a 
ride,  and  then  I’d  bum  another  one,  and  another  one,  and  another  one,  and  in  a  few  days 
I’d  be  somewhere  out  West  where  it  was  very  pretty  and  sunny  and  where  nobody'd  know 
me  and  I’d  get  a  job.  I  figured  I  could  get  a  job  at  a  filling  station  somewhere,  putting  gas 


and  oil  in  people's  cars.  I  didn't  care  what  kind  of  job  it  was,  though.  Just  so  people  didn’t 
know  me  and  I  didn’t  know  anybody.  I  thought  what  I'd  do  was,  I’d  pretend  I  was  one  of 
those  deaf-mutes.  That  way  I  wouldn’t  have  to  have  any  goddam  stupid  useless 
conversations  with  anybody.  If  anybody  wanted  to  tell  me  something,  they’d  have  to 
write  it  on  a  piece  of  paper  and  shove  it  over  to  me.  They’d  get  bored  as  hell  doing  that 
after  a  while,  and  then  I’d  be  through  with  having  conversations  for  the  rest  of  my  life. 
Everybody'd  think  I  was  just  a  poor  deaf-mute  bastard  and  they'd  leave  me  alone.  They'd 
let  me  put  gas  and  oil  in  their  stupid  cars,  and  they'd  pay  me  a  salary  and  all  for  it,  and  I’d 
build  me  a  little  cabin  somewhere  with  the  dough  I  made  and  live  there  for  the  rest  of  my 
life.  I’d  build  it  right  near  the  woods,  but  not  right  in  them,  because  I’d  want  it  to  be  sunny 
as  hell  all  the  time.  I’d  cook  all  my  own  food,  and  later  on,  if  I  wanted  to  get  married  or 
something,  I’d  meet  this  beautiful  girl  that  was  also  a  deaf-mute  and  we'd  get  married. 
She’d  come  and  live  in  my  cabin  with  me,  and  if  she  wanted  to  say  anything  to  me,  she’d 
have  to  write  it  on  a  goddam  piece  of  paper,  like  everybody  else.  If  we  had  any  children, 
we’d  hide  them  somewhere.  We  could  buy  them  a  lot  of  books  and  teach  them  how  to 
read  and  write  by  ourselves. 

I  got  excited  as  hell  thinking  about  it.  I  really  did.  I  knew  the  part  about 
pretending  I  was  a  deaf-mute  was  crazy,  but  I  liked  thinking  about  it  anyway.  But  I  really 
decided  to  go  out  West  and  all.  All  I  wanted  to  do  first  was  say  good-by  to  old  Phoebe. 

So  all  of  a  sudden,  I  ran  like  a  madman  across  the  street— I  damn  near  got  killed  doing  it, 
if  you  want  to  know  the  truth— and  went  in  this  stationery  store  and  bought  a  pad  and 
pencil.  I  figured  I’d  write  her  a  note  telling  her  where  to  meet  me  so  I  could  say  good-by 
to  her  and  give  her  back  her  Christmas  dough,  and  then  I’d  take  the  note  up  to  her  school 
and  get  somebody  in  the  principal's  office  to  give  it  to  her.  But  I  just  put  the  pad  and 
pencil  in  my  pocket  and  started  walking  fast  as  hell  up  to  her  school— I  was  too  excited  to 
write  the  note  right  in  the  stationery  store.  I  walked  fast  because  I  wanted  her  to  get  the 
note  before  she  went  home  for  lunch,  and  I  didn’t  have  any  too  much  time. 

I  knew  where  her  school  was,  naturally,  because  I  went  there  myself  when  I  was  a 
kid.  When  I  got  there,  it  felt  funny.  I  wasn’t  sure  I’d  remember  what  it  was  like  inside,  but 
I  did.  It  was  exactly  the  same  as  it  was  when  I  went  there.  They  had  that  same  big  yard 
inside,  that  was  always  sort  of  dark,  with  those  cages  around  the  light  bulbs  so  they 
wouldn’t  break  if  they  got  hit  with  a  ball.  They  had  those  same  white  circles  painted  all 
over  the  floor,  for  games  and  stuff.  And  those  same  old  basketball  rings  without  any  nets- 
-just  the  backboards  and  the  rings. 

Nobody  was  around  at  all,  probably  because  it  wasn’t  recess  period,  and  it  wasn’t 
lunchtime  yet.  All  I  saw  was  one  little  kid,  a  colored  kid,  on  his  way  to  the  bathroom.  He 
had  one  of  those  wooden  passes  sticking  out  of  his  hip  pocket,  the  same  way  we  used  to 
have,  to  show  he  had  permission  and  all  to  go  to  the  bathroom. 

I  was  still  sweating,  but  not  so  bad  any  more.  I  went  over  to  the  stairs  and  sat 
down  on  the  first  step  and  took  out  the  pad  and  pencil  I'd  bought.  The  stairs  had  the  same 
smell  they  used  to  have  when  I  went  there.  Like  somebody’d  just  taken  a  leak  on  them. 
School  stairs  always  smell  like  that.  Anyway,  I  sat  there  and  wrote  this  note: 

DEAR  PHOEBE, 

I  can't  wait  around  till  Wednesday  any  more  so  I  will 


probably  hitch  hike  out  west  this  afternoon.  Meet  me  at  the 
Museum  of  art  near  the  door  at  quarter  past  12  if  you  can  and  I 
will  give  you  your  Christmas  dough  back.  I  didn’t  spend  much. 

Love, 

HOLDEN 


Her  school  was  practically  right  near  the  museum,  and  she  had  to  pass  it  on  her 
way  home  for  lunch  anyway,  so  I  knew  she  could  meet  me  all  right. 

Then  I  started  walking  up  the  stairs  to  the  principal's  office  so  I  could  give  the 
note  to  somebody  that  would  bring  it  to  her  in  her  classroom.  I  folded  it  about  ten  times 
so  nobody'd  open  it.  You  can’t  trust  anybody  in  a  goddam  school.  But  I  knew  they'd  give 
it  to  her  if  I  was  her  brother  and  all. 

While  I  was  walking  up  the  stairs,  though,  all  of  a  sudden  I  thought  I  was  going  to 
puke  again.  Only,  I  didn’t.  I  sat  down  for  a  second,  and  then  I  felt  better.  But  while  I  was 
sitting  down,  I  saw  something  that  drove  me  crazy.  Somebody'd  written  "....  you"  on  the 
wall.  It  drove  me  damn  near  crazy.  I  thought  how  Phoebe  and  all  the  other  little  kids 
would  see  it,  and  how  they’d  wonder  what  the  hell  it  meant,  and  then  finally  some  dirty 
kid  would  tell  them— all  cockeyed,  naturally— what  it  meant,  and  how  they'd  all  think 
about  it  and  maybe  even  worry  about  it  for  a  couple  of  days.  I  kept  wanting  to  kill 
whoever’d  written  it.  I  figured  it  was  some  perverty  bum  that’ d  sneaked  in  the  school  late 
at  night  to  take  a  leak  or  something  and  then  wrote  it  on  the  wall.  I  kept  picturing  myself 
catching  him  at  it,  and  how  I’d  smash  his  head  on  the  stone  steps  till  he  was  good  and 
goddam  dead  and  bloody.  But  I  knew,  too,  I  wouldn’t  have  the  guts  to  do  it.  I  knew  that. 
That  made  me  even  more  depressed.  I  hardly  even  had  the  guts  to  rub  it  off  the  wall  with 
my  hand,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth.  I  was  afraid  some  teacher  would  catch  me 
rubbing  it  off  and  would  think  I’d  written  it.  But  I  rubbed  it  out  anyway,  finally.  Then  I 
went  on  up  to  the  principal's  office. 

The  principal  didn’t  seem  to  be  around,  but  some  old  lady  around  a  hundred  years 
old  was  sitting  at  a  typewriter.  I  told  her  I  was  Phoebe  Caulfield's  brother,  in  4B-1,  and  I 
asked  her  to  please  give  Phoebe  the  note.  I  said  it  was  very  important  because  my  mother 
was  sick  and  wouldn’t  have  lunch  ready  for  Phoebe  and  that  she’d  have  to  meet  me  and 
have  lunch  in  a  drugstore.  She  was  very  nice  about  it,  the  old  lady.  She  took  the  note  off 
me  and  called  some  other  lady,  from  the  next  office,  and  the  other  lady  went  to  give  it  to 
Phoebe.  Then  the  old  lady  that  was  around  a  hundred  years  old  and  I  shot  the  breeze  for  a 
while,  She  was  pretty  nice,  and  I  told  her  how  I’d  gone  there  to  school,  too,  and  my 
brothers.  She  asked  me  where  I  went  to  school  now,  and  I  told  her  Pencey,  and  she  said 
Pencey  was  a  very  good  school.  Even  if  I’d  wanted  to,  I  wouldn’t  have  had  the  strength  to 
straighten  her  out.  Besides,  if  she  thought  Pencey  was  a  very  good  school,  let  her  think  it. 
You  hate  to  tell  new  stuff  to  somebody  around  a  hundred  years  old.  They  don’t  like  to 
hear  it.  Then,  after  a  while,  I  left.  It  was  funny.  She  yelled  "Good  luck!"  at  me  the  same 
way  old  Spencer  did  when  I  left  Pencey.  God,  how  I  hate  it  when  somebody  yells  "Good 
luck!"  at  me  when  I'm  leaving  somewhere.  It's  depressing. 

I  went  down  by  a  different  staircase,  and  I  saw  another  "....  you"  on  the  wall.  I 
tried  to  rub  it  off  with  my  hand  again,  but  this  one  was  scratched  on,  with  a  knife  or 


something.  It  wouldn’t  come  off.  It's  hopeless,  anyway.  If  you  had  a  million  years  to  do 
it  in,  you  couldn’t  rub  out  even  half  the  "....  you"  signs  in  the  world.  It’s  impossible. 

I  looked  at  the  clock  in  the  recess  yard,  and  it  was  only  twenty  to  twelve,  so  I  had 
quite  a  lot  of  time  to  kill  before  I  met  old  Phoebe.  But  I  just  walked  over  to  the  museum 
anyway.  There  wasn’t  anyplace  else  to  go.  I  thought  maybe  I  might  stop  in  a  phone  booth 
and  give  old  Jane  Gallagher  a  buzz  before  I  started  bumming  my  way  west,  but  I  wasn’t 
in  the  mood.  For  one  thing,  I  wasn’t  even  sure  she  was  home  for  vacation  yet.  So  I  just 
went  over  to  the  museum,  and  hung  around. 

While  I  was  waiting  around  for  Phoebe  in  the  museum,  right  inside  the  doors  and 
all,  these  two  little  kids  came  up  to  me  and  asked  me  if  I  knew  where  the  mummies  were. 
The  one  little  kid,  the  one  that  asked  me,  had  his  pants  open.  I  told  him  about  it.  So  he 
buttoned  them  up  right  where  he  was  standing  talking  to  me— he  didn’t  even  bother  to  go 
behind  a  post  or  anything.  He  killed  me.  I  would've  laughed,  but  I  was  afraid  I’d  feel  like 
vomiting  again,  so  I  didn't.  "Where're  the  mummies,  fella?"  the  kid  said  again.  "Ya 
know?" 

I  horsed  around  with  the  two  of  them  a  little  bit.  "The  mummies?  What're  they?"  I 
asked  the  one  kid. 

"You  know.  The  mummies— them  dead  guys.  That  get  buried  in  them  toons  and 

all." 

Toons.  That  killed  me.  He  meant  tombs. 

"How  come  you  two  guys  aren’t  in  school?"  I  said. 

"No  school  t'day,"  the  kid  that  did  all  the  talking  said.  He  was  lying,  sure  as  I'm 
alive,  the  little  bastard.  I  didn’t  have  anything  to  do,  though,  till  old  Phoebe  showed  up,  so 
I  helped  them  find  the  place  where  the  mummies  were.  Boy,  I  used  to  know  exactly 
where  they  were,  but  I  hadn’t  been  in  that  museum  in  years. 

"You  two  guys  so  interested  in  mummies?"  I  said. 

"Yeah." 

"Can’t  your  friend  talk?"  I  said. 

"He  ain't  my  friend.  He's  my  brudda." 

"Can't  he  talk?"  I  looked  at  the  one  that  wasn’t  doing  any  talking.  "Can’t  you  talk 
at  all?"  I  asked  him. 

"Yeah,"  he  said.  "I  don’t  feel  like  it." 

Finally  we  found  the  place  where  the  mummies  were,  and  we  went  in. 

"You  know  how  the  Egyptians  buried  their  dead?"  I  asked  the  one  kid. 

"Naa." 

"Well,  you  should.  It's  very  interesting.  They  wrapped  their  faces  up  in  these 
cloths  that  were  treated  with  some  secret  chemical.  That  way  they  could  be  buried  in  their 
tombs  for  thousands  of  years  and  their  faces  wouldn’t  rot  or  anything.  Nobody  knows 
how  to  do  it  except  the  Egyptians.  Even  modern  science." 

To  get  to  where  the  mummies  were,  you  had  to  go  down  this  very  narrow  sort  of 
hall  with  stones  on  the  side  that  they'd  taken  right  out  of  this  Pharaoh's  tomb  and  all.  It 
was  pretty  spooky,  and  you  could  tell  the  two  hot-shots  I  was  with  weren't  enjoying  it  too 
much.  They  stuck  close  as  hell  to  me,  and  the  one  that  didn’t  talk  at  all  practically  was 
holding  onto  my  sleeve.  "Let's  go,"  he  said  to  his  brother.  "I  seen  'em  awreddy.  C'mon, 
hey."  He  turned  around  and  beat  it. 

"He's  got  a  yella  streak  a  mile  wide,"  the  other  one  said.  "So  long!"  He  beat  it  too. 


I  was  the  only  one  left  in  the  tomb  then.  I  sort  of  liked  it,  in  a  way.  It  was  so  nice 
and  peaceful.  Then,  all  of  a  sudden,  you'd  never  guess  what  I  saw  on  the  wall.  Another 
"....  you."  It  was  written  with  a  red  crayon  or  something,  right  under  the  glass  part  of 
the  wall,  under  the  stones. 

That’s  the  whole  trouble.  You  can't  ever  find  a  place  that's  nice  and  peaceful, 
because  there  isn't  any.  You  may  think  there  is,  but  once  you  get  there,  when  you’re 
not  looking,  somebody'll  sneak  up  and  write  "....  you"  right  under  your  nose.  Try  it 
sometime.  I  think,  even,  if  I  ever  die,  and  they  stick  me  in  a  cemetery,  and  I  have  a 
tombstone  and  all,  it’ll  say  "Holden  Caulfield"  on  it,  and  then  what  year  I  was  bom  and 
what  year  I  died,  and  then  right  under  that  it'll  say  "....  you."  I'm  positive,  in  fact. 

After  I  came  out  of  the  place  where  the  mummies  were,  I  had  to  go  to  the 
bathroom.  I  sort  of  had  diarrhea,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth.  I  didn’t  mind  the  diarrhea 
part  too  much,  but  something  else  happened.  When  I  was  coming  out  of  the  can,  right 
before  I  got  to  the  door,  I  sort  of  passed  out.  I  was  lucky,  though.  I  mean  I  could've  killed 
myself  when  I  hit  the  floor,  but  all  I  did  was  sort  of  land  on  my  side,  it  was  a  funny  thing, 
though.  I  felt  better  after  I  passed  out.  I  really  did.  My  arm  sort  of  hurt,  from  where  I  fell, 
but  I  didn’t  feel  so  damn  dizzy  any  more. 

It  was  about  ten  after  twelve  or  so  then,  and  so  I  went  back  and  stood  by  the  door 
and  waited  for  old  Phoebe.  I  thought  how  it  might  be  the  last  time  I’d  ever  see  her  again. 
Any  of  my  relatives,  I  mean.  I  figured  I’d  probably  see  them  again,  but  not  for  years.  I 
might  come  home  when  I  was  about  thirty-five.  I  figured,  in  case  somebody  got  sick  and 
wanted  to  see  me  before  they  died,  but  that  would  be  the  only  reason  I’d  leave  my  cabin 
and  come  back.  I  even  started  picturing  how  it  would  be  when  I  came  back.  I  knew  my 
mother’d  get  nervous  as  hell  and  start  to  cry  and  beg  me  to  stay  home  and  not  go  back  to 
my  cabin,  but  I’d  go  anyway.  I’d  be  casual  as  hell.  I’d  make  her  calm  down,  and  then  I'd 
go  over  to  the  other  side  of  the  living  room  and  take  out  this  cigarette  case  and  light  a 
cigarette,  cool  as  all  hell.  I'd  ask  them  all  to  visit  me  sometime  if  they  wanted  to,  but  I 
wouldn't  insist  or  anything.  What  I’d  do.  I’d  let  old  Phoebe  come  out  and  visit  me  in  the 
summertime  and  on  Christmas  vacation  and  Easter  vacation.  And  I’d  let  D.B.  come  out 
and  visit  me  for  a  while  if  he  wanted  a  nice,  quiet  place  for  his  writing,  but  he  couldn’t 
write  any  movies  in  my  cabin,  only  stories  and  books.  I'd  have  this  rule  that  nobody  could 
do  anything  phony  when  they  visited  me.  If  anybody  tried  to  do  anything  phony,  they 
couldn’t  stay. 

All  of  a  sudden  I  looked  at  the  clock  in  the  checkroom  and  it  was  twenty-five  of 
one.  I  began  to  get  scared  that  maybe  that  old  lady  in  the  school  had  told  that  other  lady 
not  to  give  old  Phoebe  my  message.  I  began  to  get  scared  that  maybe  she’d  told  her  to 
bum  it  or  something.  It  really  scared  hell  out  of  me.  I  really  wanted  to  see  old  Phoebe 
before  I  hit  the  road.  I  mean  I  had  her  Christmas  dough  and  all. 

Finally,  I  saw  her.  I  saw  her  through  the  glass  part  of  the  door.  The  reason  I  saw 
her,  she  had  my  crazy  hunting  hat  on— you  could  see  that  hat  about  ten  miles  away. 

I  went  out  the  doors  and  started  down  these  stone  stairs  to  meet  her.  The  thing  I 
couldn’t  understand,  she  had  this  big  suitcase  with  her.  She  was  just  coming  across  Fifth 
Avenue,  and  she  was  dragging  this  goddam  big  suitcase  with  her.  She  could  hardly  drag 
it.  When  I  got  up  closer,  I  saw  it  was  my  old  suitcase,  the  one  I  used  to  use  when  I  was  at 
Whooton.  I  couldn't  figure  out  what  the  hell  she  was  doing  with  it.  "Hi,"  she  said  when 
she  got  up  close.  She  was  all  out  of  breath  from  that  crazy  suitcase. 


"I  thought  maybe  you  weren’t  coming,"  I  said.  "What  the  hell's  in  that  bag?  I  don’t 
need  anything.  I'm  just  going  the  way  I  am.  I'm  not  even  taking  the  bags  I  got  at  the 
station.  What  the  hellya  got  in  there?" 

She  put  the  suitcase  down.  "My  clothes,"  she  said.  "I'm  going  with  you.  Can  I? 

Okay?" 

"What?"  I  said.  I  almost  fell  over  when  she  said  that.  I  swear  to  God  I  did.  I  got 
sort  of  dizzy  and  I  thought  I  was  going  to  pass  out  or  something  again. 

"I  took  them  down  the  back  elevator  so  Charlene  wouldn’t  see  me.  It  isn’t  heavy. 
All  I  have  in  it  is  two  dresses  and  my  moccasins  and  my  underwear  and  socks  and  some 
other  things.  Feel  it.  It  isn't  heavy.  Feel  it  once.  .  .  Can't  I  go  with  you?  Holden?  Can’t  I? 
Please." 

"No.  Shut  up." 

I  thought  I  was  going  to  pass  out  cold.  I  mean  I  didn’t  mean  to  tell  her  to  shut  up 
and  all,  but  I  thought  I  was  going  to  pass  out  again. 

"Why  can’t  I?  Please,  Holden!  I  won’t  do  anything—  I’ll  just  go  with  you,  that's  all! 
I  won’t  even  take  my  clothes  with  me  if  you  don’t  want  me  to— I'll  just  take  my—" 

"You  can’t  take  anything.  Because  you're  not  going.  I'm  going  alone.  So  shut  up." 

"Please,  Holden.  Please  let  me  go.  I'll  be  very,  very,  very— You  won't  even—" 

"You're  not  going.  Now,  shut  up!  Gimme  that  bag,"  I  said.  I  took  the  bag  off  her.  I 
was  almost  all  set  to  hit  her,  I  thought  I  was  going  to  smack  her  for  a  second.  I  really  did. 

She  started  to  cry. 

"I  thought  you  were  supposed  to  be  in  a  play  at  school  and  all  I  thought  you  were 
supposed  to  be  Benedict  Arnold  in  that  play  and  all,"  I  said.  I  said  it  very  nasty. 
"Whuddaya  want  to  do?  Not  be  in  the  play,  for  God's  sake?"  That  made  her  cry  even 
harder.  I  was  glad.  All  of  a  sudden  I  wanted  her  to  cry  till  her  eyes  practically  dropped 
out.  I  almost  hated  her.  I  think  I  hated  her  most  because  she  wouldn’t  be  in  that  play  any 
more  if  she  went  away  with  me. 

"Come  on,"  I  said.  I  started  up  the  steps  to  the  museum  again.  I  figured  what  I’d 
do  was,  I’d  check  the  crazy  suitcase  she’d  brought  in  the  checkroom,  andy  then  she  could 
get  it  again  at  three  o'clock,  after  school.  I  knew  she  couldn’t  take  it  back  to  school  with 
her.  "Come  on,  now,"  I  said. 

She  didn’t  go  up  the  steps  with  me,  though.  She  wouldn’t  come  with  me.  I  went  up 
anyway,  though,  and  brought  the  bag  in  the  checkroom  and  checked  it,  and  then  I  came 
down  again.  She  was  still  standing  there  on  the  sidewalk,  but  she  turned  her  back  on  me 
when  I  came  up  to  her.  She  can  do  that.  She  can  turn  her  back  on  you  when  she  feels  like 
it.  "I'm  not  going  away  anywhere.  I  changed  my  mind.  So  stop  crying,  and  shut  up,"  I 
said.  The  funny  part  was,  she  wasn’t  even  crying  when  I  said  that.  I  said  it  anyway, 
though,  "C'mon,  now.  I'll  walk  you  back  to  school.  C’mon,  now.  You'll  be  late." 

She  wouldn’t  answer  me  or  anything.  I  sort  of  tried  to  get  hold  of  her  old  hand,  but 
she  wouldn’t  let  me.  She  kept  turning  around  on  me. 

"Didja  have  your  lunch?  Ya  had  your  lunch  yet?"  I  asked  her. 

She  wouldn’t  answer  me.  All  she  did  was,  she  took  off  my  red  hunting  hat— the 
one  I  gave  her— and  practically  chucked  it  right  in  my  face.  Then  she  turned  her  back  on 
me  again.  It  nearly  killed  me,  but  I  didn’t  say  anything.  I  just  picked  it  up  and  stuck  it  in 
my  coat  pocket. 

"Come  on,  hey.  I'll  walk  you  back  to  school,"  I  said. 


"I'm  not  going  back  to  school." 

I  didn’t  know  what  to  say  when  she  said  that.  I  just  stood  there  for  a  couple  of 
minutes. 

"You  have  to  go  back  to  school.  You  want  to  be  in  that  play,  don’t  you?  You  want 
to  be  Benedict  Arnold,  don’t  you?" 

"No." 

"Sure  you  do.  Certainly  you  do.  C’mon,  now,  let's  go,"  I  said.  "In  the  first  place, 
I’m  not  going  away  anywhere,  I  told  you.  I'm  going  home.  I'm  going  home  as  soon  as  you 
go  back  to  school.  First  I'm  gonna  go  down  to  the  station  and  get  my  bags,  and  then  I'm 
gonna  go  straight—" 

"I  said  I'm  not  going  back  to  school.  You  can  do  what  you  want  to  do,  but  I'm  not 
going  back  to  chool,"  she  said.  "So  shut  up."  It  was  the  first  time  she  ever  told  me  to  shut 
up.  It  sounded  terrible.  God,  it  sounded  terrible.  It  sounded  worse  than  swearing.  She  still 
wouldn't  look  at  me  either,  and  every  time  I  sort  of  put  my  hand  on  her  shoulder  or 
something,  she  wouldn’t  let  me. 

"Listen,  do  you  want  to  go  for  a  walk?"  I  asked  her.  "Do  you  want  to  take  a  walk 
down  to  the  zoo?  If  I  let  you  not  go  back  to  school  this  afternoon  and  go  for  walk,  will 
you  cut  out  this  crazy  stuff?" 

She  wouldn’t  answer  me,  so  I  said  it  over  again.  "If  I  let  you  skip  school  this 
afternoon  and  go  for  a  little  walk,  will  you  cut  out  the  crazy  stuff?  Will  you  go  back  to 
school  tomorrow  like  a  good  girl?" 

"I  may  and  I  may  not,"  she  said.  Then  she  ran  right  the  hell  across  the  street, 
without  even  looking  to  see  if  any  cars  were  coming.  She's  a  madman  sometimes. 

I  didn’t  follow  her,  though.  I  knew  she’d  follow  me,  so  I  started  walking 
downtown  toward  the  zoo,  on  the  park  side  of  the  street,  and  she  started  walking 
downtown  on  the  other  goddam  side  of  the  street,  She  wouldn't  look  over  at  me  at  all,  but 
I  could  tell  she  was  probably  watching  me  out  of  the  corner  of  her  crazy  eye  to  see  where 
I  was  going  and  all.  Anyway,  we  kept  walking  that  way  all  the  way  to  the  zoo.  The  only 
thing  that  bothered  me  was  when  a  double-decker  bus  came  along  because  then  I  couldn’t 
see  across  the  street  and  I  couldn’t  see  where  the  hell  she  was.  But  when  we  got  to  the 
zoo,  I  yelled  over  to  her,  "Phoebe!  I'm  going  in  the  zoo!  C’mon,  now!"  She  wouldn’t  look 
at  me,  but  I  could  tell  she  heard  me,  and  when  I  started  down  the  steps  to  the  zoo  I  turned 
around  and  saw  she  was  crossing  the  street  and  following  me  and  all. 

There  weren't  too  many  people  in  the  zoo  because  it  was  sort  of  a  lousy  day,  but 
there  were  a  few  around  the  sea  lions'  swimming  pool  and  all.  I  started  to  go  by  but  old 
Phoebe  stopped  and  made  out  she  was  watching  the  sea  lions  getting  fed— a  guy  was 
throwing  fish  at  them— so  I  went  back.  I  figured  it  was  a  good  chance  to  catch  up  with  her 
and  all.  I  went  up  and  sort  of  stood  behind  her  and  sort  of  put  my  hands  on  her  shoulders, 
but  she  bent  her  knees  and  slid  out  from  me— she  can  certainly  be  very  snotty  when  she 
wants  to.  She  kept  standing  there  while  the  sea  lions  were  getting  fed  and  I  stood  right 
behind  her.  I  didn’t  put  my  hands  on  her  shoulders  again  or  anything  because  if  I  had  she 
really  would've  beat  it  on  me.  Kids  are  funny.  You  have  to  watch  what  you're  doing. 

She  wouldn’t  walk  right  next  to  me  when  we  left  the  sea  lions,  but  she  didn’t  walk 
too  far  away.  She  sort  of  walked  on  one  side  of  the  sidewalk  and  I  walked  on  the  other 
side.  It  wasn’t  too  gorgeous,  but  it  was  better  than  having  her  walk  about  a  mile  away 
from  me,  like  before.  We  went  up  and  watched  the  bears,  on  that  little  hill,  for  a  while, 


but  there  wasn’t  much  to  watch.  Only  one  of  the  bears  was  out,  the  polar  bear.  The  other 
one,  the  brown  one,  was  in  his  goddam  cave  and  wouldn’t  come  out.  All  you  could  see 
was  his  rear  end.  There  was  a  little  kid  standing  next  to  me,  with  a  cowboy  hat  on 
practically  over  his  ears,  and  he  kept  telling  his  father,  "Make  him  come  out,  Daddy. 
Make  him  come  out."  I  looked  at  old  Phoebe,  but  she  wouldn’t  laugh.  You  know  kids 
when  they're  sore  at  you.  They  won’t  laugh  or  anything. 

After  we  left  the  bears,  we  left  the  zoo  and  crossed  over  this  little  street  in  the 
park,  and  then  we  went  through  one  of  those  little  tunnels  that  always  smell  from 
somebody's  taking  a  leak.  It  was  on  the  way  to  the  carrousel.  Old  Phoebe  still  wouldn’t 
talk  to  me  or  anything,  but  she  was  sort  of  walking  next  to  me  now.  I  took  a  hold  of  the 
belt  at  the  back  of  her  coat,  just  for  the  hell  of  it,  but  she  wouldn’t  let  me.  She  said,  "Keep 
your  hands  to  yourself,  if  you  don’t  mind."  She  was  still  sore  at  me.  But  not  as  sore  as  she 
was  before.  Anyway,  we  kept  getting  closer  and  closer  to  the  carrousel  and  you  could 
start  to  hear  that  nutty  music  it  always  plays.  It  was  playing  "Oh,  Marie!"  It  played  that 
same  song  about  fifty  years  ago  when  I  was  a  little  kid.  That's  one  nice  thing  about 
carrousels,  they  always  play  the  same  songs. 

"I  thought  the  carrousel  was  closed  in  the  wintertime,"  old  Phoebe  said.  It  was  the 
first  time  she  practically  said  anything.  She  probably  forgot  she  was  supposed  to  be  sore 
at  me. 

"Maybe  because  it's  around  Christmas,"  I  said. 

She  didn’t  say  anything  when  I  said  that.  She  probably  remembered  she  was 
supposed  to  be  sore  at  me. 

"Do  you  want  to  go  for  a  ride  on  it?"  I  said.  I  knew  she  probably  did.  When  she 
was  a  tiny  little  kid,  and  Allie  and  D.B.  and  I  used  to  go  to  the  park  with  her,  she  was 
mad  about  the  carrousel.  You  couldn’t  get  her  off  the  goddam  thing. 

"I'm  too  big."  she  said.  I  thought  she  wasn't  going  to  answer  me,  but  she  did. 

"No,  you're  not.  Go  on.  I'll  wait  for  ya.  Go  on,"  I  said.  We  were  right  there  then. 
There  were  a  few  kids  riding  on  it,  mostly  very  little  kids,  and  a  few  parents  were  waiting 
around  outside,  sitting  on  the  benches  and  all.  What  I  did  was,  I  went  up  to  the  window 
where  they  sell  the  tickets  and  bought  old  Phoebe  a  ticket.  Then  I  gave  it  to  her.  She  was 
standing  right  next  to  me.  "Here,"  I  said.  "Wait  a  second— take  the  rest  of  your  dough, 
too."  I  started  giving  her  the  rest  of  the  dough  she’d  lent  me. 

"You  keep  it.  Keep  it  for  me,"  she  said.  Then  she  said  right  afterward— "Please." 

That’s  depressing,  when  somebody  says  "please"  to  you.  I  mean  if  it's  Phoebe  or 
somebody.  That  depressed  the  hell  out  of  me.  But  I  put  the  dough  back  in  my  pocket. 

"Aren't  you  gonna  ride,  too?"  she  asked  me.  She  was  looking  at  me  sort  of  funny. 
You  could  tell  she  wasn't  too  sore  at  me  any  more. 

"Maybe  I  will  the  next  time.  I'll  watch  ya,"  I  said.  "Got  your  ticket?" 

"Yes." 

"Go  ahead,  then— I'll  be  on  this  bench  right  over  here.  I'll  watch  ya."  I  went  over 
and  sat  down  on  this  bench,  and  she  went  and  got  on  the  carrousel.  She  walked  all  around 
it.  I  mean  she  walked  once  all  the  way  around  it.  Then  she  sat  down  on  this  big,  brown, 
beat-up-looking  old  horse.  Then  the  carrousel  started,  and  I  watched  her  go  around  and 
around.  There  were  only  about  five  or  six  other  kids  on  the  ride,  and  the  song  the 
carrousel  was  playing  was  "Smoke  Gets  in  Your  Eyes."  It  was  playing  it  very  jazzy  and 
funny.  All  the  kids  kept  trying  to  grab  for  the  gold  ring,  and  so  was  old  Phoebe,  and  I  was 


sort  of  afraid  she’d  fall  off  the  goddam  horse,  but  I  didn't  say  anything  or  do  anything. 

The  thing  with  kids  is,  if  they  want  to  grab  the  gold  ring,  you  have  to  let  them  do  it,  and 
not  say  anything.  If  they  fall  off  they  fall  off,  but  it's  bad  if  you  say  anything  to  them. 

When  the  ride  was  over  she  got  off  her  horse  and  came  over  to  me.  "You  ride 
once,  too,  this  time,"  she  said. 

"No,  I'll  just  watch  ya.  I  think  I'll  just  watch,"  I  said.  I  gave  her  some  more  of  her 
dough.  "Here.  Get  some  more  tickets." 

She  took  the  dough  off  me.  "I'm  not  mad  at  you  any  more,"  she  said. 

"I  know.  Hurry  up— the  thing's  gonna  start  again." 

Then  all  of  a  sudden  she  gave  me  a  kiss.  Then  she  held  her  hand  out,  and  said, 

"It’s  raining.  It's  starting  to  rain." 

"I  know." 

Then  what  she  did— it  damn  near  killed  me— she  reached  in  my  coat  pocket  and 
took  out  my  red  hunting  hat  and  put  it  on  my  head. 

"Don’t  you  want  it?"  I  said. 

"You  can  wear  it  a  while." 

"Okay.  Hurry  up,  though,  now.  You're  gonna  miss  your  ride.  You  won’t  get  your 
own  horse  or  anything." 

She  kept  hanging  around,  though. 

"Did  you  mean  it  what  you  said?  You  really  aren't  going  away  anywhere?  Are 
you  really  going  home  afterwards?"  she  asked  me. 

"Yeah,"  I  said.  I  meant  it,  too.  I  wasn’t  lying  to  her.  I  really  did  go  home 
afterwards.  "Hurry  up,  now,"  I  said.  "The  thing's  starting." 

She  ran  and  bought  her  ticket  and  got  back  on  the  goddam  carrousel  just  in  time. 
Then  she  walked  all  the  way  around  it  till  she  got  her  own  horse  back.  Then  she  got  on  it. 
She  waved  to  me  and  I  waved  back. 

Boy,  it  began  to  rain  like  a  bastard.  In  buckets,  I  swear  to  God.  All  the  parents  and 
mothers  and  everybody  went  over  and  stood  right  under  the  roof  of  the  carrousel,  so  they 
wouldn't  get  soaked  to  the  skin  or  anything,  but  I  stuck  around  on  the  bench  for  quite  a 
while.  I  got  pretty  soaking  wet,  especially  my  neck  and  my  pants.  My  hunting  hat  really 
gave  me  quite  a  lot  of  protection,  in  a  way;  but  I  got  soaked  anyway.  I  didn’t  care,  though. 
I  felt  so  damn  happy  all  of  sudden,  the  way  old  Phoebe  kept  going  around  and  around.  I 
was  damn  near  bawling,  I  felt  so  damn  happy,  if  you  want  to  know  the  truth.  I  don't  know 
why.  It  was  just  that  she  looked  so  damn  nice,  the  way  she  kept  going  around  and  around, 
in  her  blue  coat  and  all.  God,  I  wish  you  could've  been  there. 


26 


That’s  all  I'm  going  to  tell  about.  I  could  probably  tell  you  what  I  did  after  I  went 
home,  and  how  I  got  sick  and  all,  and  what  school  I'm  supposed  to  go  to  next  fall,  after  I 
get  out  of  here,  but  I  don't  feel  like  it.  I  really  don't.  That  stuff  doesn’t  interest  me  too 
much  right  now. 

A  lot  of  people,  especially  this  one  psychoanalyst  guy  they  have  here,  keeps 
asking  me  if  I'm  going  apply  myself  when  I  go  back  to  school  next  September.  It’s  such  a 
stupid  question,  in  my  opinion.  I  mean  how  do  you  know  what  you're  going  to  do  till  you 


do  it?  The  answer  is,  you  don’t.  I  think  I  am,  but  how  do  I  know?  I  swear  it's  a  stupid 
question. 

D.B.  isn’t  as  bad  as  the  rest  of  them,  but  he  keeps  asking  me  a  lot  of  questions, 
too.  He  drove  over  last  Saturday  with  this  English  babe  that's  in  this  new  picture  he's 
writing.  She  was  pretty  affected,  but  very  good-looking.  Anyway,  one  time  when  she 
went  to  the  ladies'  room  way  the  hell  down  in  the  other  wing  D.B.  asked  me  what  I 
thought  about  all  this  stuff  I  just  finished  telling  you  about.  I  didn’t  know  what  the  hell  to 
say.  If  you  want  to  know  the  truth,  I  don’t  know  what  I  think  about  it.  I'm  sorry  I  told  so 
many  people  about  it.  About  all  I  know  is,  I  sort  of  miss  everybody  I  told  about.  Even  old 
Stradlater  and  Ackley,  for  instance.  I  think  I  even  miss  that  goddam  Maurice.  It's  funny. 
Don't  ever  tell  anybody  anything.  If  you  do,  you  start  missing  everybody.